Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n apostolical_a church_n tradition_n 4,989 5 9.5918 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A59916 The infallibility of the Holy Scripture asserted, and the pretended infallibility of the Church of Rome refuted in answer to two papers and two treatises of Father Johnson, a Romanist, about the ground thereof / by John Sherman. Sherman, John, d. 1663. 1664 (1664) Wing S3386; ESTC R24161 665,157 994

There are 76 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

because_o the_o scripture_n can_v not_o deceive_v whosoever_o do_v fear_n lest_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n may_v ask_v counsel_n touch_v it_o of_o the_o church_n who_o without_o any_o doubt_n the_o scripture_n itself_o do_v show_v the_o same_o s._n aug._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 6._o say_v no_o lover_n of_o peace_n will_v be_v against_o the_o church_n and_o ep._n 118._o c._n 5._o he_o plain_o term_v it_o most_o insolent_a madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n hold_v i_o will_v insist_v no_o long_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n of_o which_o i_o may_v pour_v a_o whole_a shower_n against_o you_o lest_o i_o receive_v the_o ordinary_a answer_n that_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v one_o of_o their_o navi_fw-la spot_n or_o blemish_n and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v reject_v but_o will_v ●●ge_v your_o own_o author_n and_o protestant_n to_o who_o perhaps_o you_o will_v give_v more_o credit_n calvin_n upon_o esay_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o 59_o chap._n my_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thy_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n say_v our_o lord_n from_o henceforward_o and_o for_o ever_o say_v he_o promise_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o inestimable_a good_a but_o that_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o support_v with_o heavenly_a doctrine_n again_o soon_o after_o the_o promise_n be_v such_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v so_o assist_v the_o church_n and_o have_v such_o care_n of_o she_o that_o he_o will_v never_o suffer_v she_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o his_o scholar_n beza_n de_fw-la haeret_fw-la à_fw-la civili_fw-la magistratu_fw-la puniendis_fw-la p._n 69._o confess_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o make_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n d._n saravia_n in_o defence_n tract_n de_fw-fr div_o ministr_n gradib_fw-la p._n 8._o say_v the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o bear_v rule_n in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o true_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n from_o he_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v fetch_v the_o true_a interpretation_n and_o since_o he_o can_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o who_o rule_v the_o primitive_a church_n and_o govern_v the_o same_o by_o bishop_n those_o now_o to_o reject_v be_v not_o certes_o consonant_a to_o verity_n our_o lutheran_n adversary_n of_o wittenberg_n harm_n of_o confess_v sect._n 10._o p._n 332_o 333._o confess_v witten_n art_n 30._o not_o only_o confess_v the_o church_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o interpret_v the_o same_o but_o also_o affirm_v that_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o her_o husband_n christ_n a_o certain_a rule_n to_o wit_n the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a preach_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n according_a unto_o the_o which_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o interpret_v those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v obscure_a and_o to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n field_n also_o l._n 4._o c._n 19_o &_o 20._o sect._n the_o second_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n descend_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n according_a unto_o which_o he_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n expound_v and_o we_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o she_o have_v follow_v this_o rule_n have_v such_o assistance_n from_o god_n holy_a spirit_n furthermore_o the_o same_o dr._n field_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n profess_v thus_o see_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o nature_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o what_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o household_n of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o they_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n for_o brevity_n i_o will_v omit_v many_o other_o of_o our_o adversary_n who_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o will_v now_o press_v hard_a upon_o you_o sure_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o creed_n the_o church_n be_v holy_a if_o the_o scripture_n she_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o our_o saviour_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n which_o eulogy_n and_o indeed_o glorious_a title_n will_v nothing_o well_o become_v she_o if_o she_o can_v teach_v we_o that_o which_o be_v false_a this_o scripture_n also_o give_v we_o these_o know_a doctrine_n and_o direction_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3._o v._n 15_o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o matth._n 16._o v._n 18._o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n matth._n 18._o v._n 17._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o luke_o 10._o v._o 16._o loe_o i_o be_o with_o you_o even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 28._o v._n 20._o i_o will_v ask_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n jo._n 14._o v._n 16._o and_o again_o yet_o many_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o can_v bear_v they_o now_o but_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n come_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n jo._n 16._o v._n 12_o 13._o to_o omit_v many_o other_o the_o like_a passage_n be_v scripture_n now_o this_o church_n who_o authority_n be_v thus_o warrant_v do_v precede_v the_o scripture_n which_o for_o a_o great_a part_n thereof_o be_v write_v but_o upon_o emergent_a occasion_n as_o field_n hook_n covel_n and_o other_o our_o adversary_n have_v confess_v which_o occasion_n have_v they_o not_o be_v perhaps_o we_o never_o have_v know_v this_o scripture_n suppose_v then_o we_o have_v live_v in_o those_o time_n when_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o scripture_n as_o many_o do_v some_o part_n thereof_o be_v not_o write_v above_o sixty_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n ought_v we_o not_o then_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o church_n tradition_n and_o preach_v word_n this_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n before_o the_o word_n be_v see_v in_o writing_n and_o the_o like_a i_o may_v say_v by_o the_o other_o place_n before_o cite_v which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o the_o church_n before_o ever_o they_o be_v write_v by_o all_o which_o place_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o and_o we_o refer_v to_o the_o say_a church_n as_o a_o guide_n in_o all_o our_o doubt_n and_o all_o these_o word_n of_o god_n be_v no_o less_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o obey_v before_o they_o be_v write_v then_o since_o even_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v part_n of_o the_o credenda_fw-la it_o propose_v nor_o can_v we_o at_o this_o day_n have_v know_v which_o book_n be_v true_a now_o canonical_a which_o spurious_a but_o by_o the_o church_n decision_n and_o proposal_n as_o the_o say_v learned_a mr._n hooker_n and_o other_o our_o adversary_n do_v acknowledge_v again_o who_o do_v not_o ground_n his_o belief_n upon_o the_o church_n upon_o what_o do_v he_o ground_n it_o but_o upon_o his_o own_o fancy_n or_o private_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o true_a source_n and_o nurse_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o such_o as_o these_o may_v indeed_o be_v find_v upon_o ancient_a account_n as_o helvidius_n vigilantius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o heretic_n as_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v then_o account_v they_o now_o to_o that_o which_o be_v insinuate_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sometime_o acknowledge_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v so_o now_o but_o this_o do_v no_o way_n hinder_v the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n for_o the_o church_n be_v both_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o also_o the_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v above_o confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n
that_o the_o invisible_a church_n shall_v not_o perish_v which_o be_v true_a although_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v under_o a_o possibility_n to_o err_v since_o every_o error_n be_v not_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n in_o the_o 25._o number_n you_o tell_v i_o what_o you_o have_v say_v before_o but_o that_o you_o have_v give_v i_o some_o additional_a testimony_n in_o the_o supplement_n of_o the_o last_o which_o have_v their_o answer_n without_o repetition_n only_o you_o no_o where_o i_o think_v find_v that_o saint_n jerome_n do_v receive_v all_o those_o book_n which_o you_o receive_v for_o canonical_a and_o for_o those_o author_n which_o hold_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n and_o those_o several_a property_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n you_o will_v give_v i_o leave_v with_o judicious_a man_n to_o suspect_v eusebius_n believe_v your_o cardinal_n herein_o bellarmin_n in_o his_o de_fw-fr scriptoribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la p._n 94.5_o 6._o where_o he_o bring_v the_o attestation_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n and_o saint_n jerome_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o saint_n jerome_n call_v he_o not_o only_o a_o arrian_n but_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o arrian_n sometime_o sometime_o the_o ensign-bearer_n yea_o the_o 7._o synod_n he_o say_v and_o the_o apostolical_a legate_n reject_v his_o authority_n as_o be_v a_o arrian_n heretic_n as_o he_o say_v and_o as_o for_o augustine_n expression_n that_o the_o rely_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v the_o most_o true_a and_o inviolable_a rule_n of_o faith_n you_o refer_v it_o to_o your_o 16._o number_n and_o there_o refer_v i_o to_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n contra_fw-la cresconium_fw-la which_o i_o can_v see_v there_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o disert_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v respective_o to_o those_o case_n wherein_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o clear_o pass_v the_o verdict_n in_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o best_a rule_n we_o can_v then_o have_v as_o towards_o practice_n but_o this_o in_o his_o opinion_n do_v not_o absolute_o leave_v we_o to_o follow_v tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n unless_o he_o contradict_v himself_o as_o you_o shall_v see_v at_o the_o end_n but_o you_o be_v afraid_a of_o want_n of_o number_n to_o make_v noise_n because_o you_o say_v i_o say_v you_o have_v no_o other_o testimony_n but_o saint_n augustine_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o you_o have_v none_o but_o he_o absolute_o but_o you_o have_v none_o but_o his_o that_o i_o can_v see_v of_o those_o you_o produce_v neither_o him_z indeed_o if_o you_o please_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o you_o see_v therefore_o we_o shall_v look_v over_o your_o reinforcing_a his_n and_o the_o main_a testimony_n for_o your_o cause_n in_o my_o answer_n whereunto_o i_o see_v yet_o no_o place_n for_o amendment_n or_o abatement_n i_o say_v if_o you_o consider_v the_o whole_a ten●●r_n of_o the_o chapter_n you_o may_v be_v incline_v to_o think_v that_o it_o come_v from_o he_o in_o some_o heat_n of_o dispute_n and_o methinks_v i_o may_v think_v so_o still_o your_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o answer_v evidence_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v against_o they_o when_o they_o please_v that_o such_o passage_n come_v from_o they_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o sure_o we_o may_v have_v that_o liberty_n when_o there_o be_v such_o occasion_n give_v for_o we_o to_o interpret_v they_o as_o here_o if_o we_o consider_v how_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o himself_o for_o a_o former_a respect_n to_o that_o epistle_n and_o also_o if_o we_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o short_a return_n of_o discourse_n in_o this_o epistle_n and_o also_o if_o we_o mark_v his_o check_n and_o correct_v and_o take_v up_o himself_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n with_o a_o absit_fw-la sed_fw-la absit_fw-la ut_fw-la ego_fw-la evangelio_n non_fw-la credam_fw-la and_o if_o this_o answer_n do_v not_o weigh_v with_o you_o than_o i_o give_v you_o another_o that_o this_o may_v be_v speak_v of_o himself_o not_o in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la as_o then_o but_o in_o sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la as_o in_o order_n to_o that_o time_n when_o he_o be_v a_o manichee_n himself_o to_o which_o purpose_n i_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v familiar_a to_o he_o and_o other_o writer_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o express_v a_o tense_n more_o than_o past_a by_o the_o imperfect_a and_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o when_o he_o be_v a_o manichee_n he_o will_v not_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v move_v he_o to_o it_o one_o place_n of_o this_o usage_n i_o find_v to_o be_v in_o a_o chapter_n you_o quote_v in_o his_o de_fw-fr predestinatione_fw-la sanct._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o s_o 14._o qui_fw-la igitur_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la ferutemur_fw-la opuscula_fw-la qui_fw-la priusquam_fw-la ista_fw-la haresis_fw-la ●riretur_fw-la non_fw-la habuerunt_fw-la necessitatem_fw-la in_o hâc_fw-la difficili_fw-la ad_fw-la solvendum_fw-la quastione_fw-la versari_fw-la quod_fw-la procul_fw-la dubio_fw-la facerem_fw-la si_fw-la respondere_fw-la talibus_fw-la cogerentur_fw-la where_o you_o have_v the_o imperfect_a tense_n for_o the_o tense_n more_o past_a facerent_fw-la for_o fecissent_fw-la and_o so_o the_o other_o so_o in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o retract_v cap._n 51._o profecto_fw-la non_fw-la dixissem_fw-la si_fw-la jam_fw-la ●uns_fw-la essem_fw-la literis_fw-la sucris_n ita_fw-la eruditus_fw-la ut_fw-la recolerem_fw-la where_o you_o have_v essem_fw-la for_o fuissem_fw-la and_o so_o the_o other_o and_o also_o by_o the_o way_n let_v i_o observe_v somewhat_o from_o those_o two_o place_n towards_o the_o main_a question_n beside_o the_o use_n of_o they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o criticism_n for_o by_o the_o former_a you_o have_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o doctrine_n receive_v will_v not_o make_v a_o end_n of_o our_o difference_n since_o the_o question_n be_v not_o then_o start_v and_o also_o by_o the_o second_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o we_o can_v swallow_v all_o that_o be_v say_v by_o saint_n austin_n without_o chew_v since_o he_o say_v himself_o that_o have_v he_o be_v so_o well_o instruct_v he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v this_o and_o that_o and_o indeed_o his_o book_n of_o retractation_n be_v book_n against_o you_o and_o do_v conclude_v whole_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o take_v whatsoever_o the_o father_n write_v to_o be_v as_o true_a as_o gospel_n yea_o some_o such_o book_n of_o retractation_n all_o of_o they_o may_v have_v make_v as_o some_o think_v origen_n do_v although_o they_o be_v perish_v as_o to_o we_o but_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o give_v you_o to_o that_o passage_n of_o saint_n austin_n will_v not_o content_v you_o therefore_o you_o endeavour_v to_o show_v at_o large_a that_o they_o will_v not_o serve_v you_o say_v unless_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o that_o ground_n he_o must_v needs_o seem_v to_o say_v nothing_o against_o his_o adversary_n what_o ground_n do_v you_o mean_v what_o that_o he_o be_v move_v by_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n as_o you_o will_v conclude_v at_o every_o turn_n no_o suppose_v he_o not_o to_o speak_v in_o aestu_fw-la sermonis_fw-la yet_o what_o he_o say_v against_o his_o adversary_n be_v reasonable_a without_o urge_v the_o infallible_a authority_n for_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v by_o he_o as_o a_o condition_n towards_o the_o reception_n of_o any_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v that_o which_o he_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o as_o upon_o a_o infallible_a ground_n you_o may_v know_v the_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la be_v not_o a_o cause_n although_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o without_o it_o yet_o be_v not_o this_o the_o cause_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o make_v what_o you_o can_v of_o the_o place_n it_o will_v not_o afford_v you_o a_o firm_a foundation_n if_o his_o authority_n can_v do_v it_o you_o say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o first_o argument_n to_o show_v that_o his_o adversary_n by_o cite_v text_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n to_o prove_v manichaeus_n a_o true_a apostle_n can_v prove_v nothing_o against_o those_o who_o as_o yet_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n so_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o what_o then_o because_o the_o adversary_n can_v prove_v nothing_o by_o scripture_n to_o those_o that_o deny_v it_o therefore_o saint_n austin_n must_v infer_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o he_o must_v believe_v the_o gospel_n upon_o no_o other_o ground_n what_o consequence_n be_v this_o as_o if_o because_o saint_n augustine_n adversary_n care_v not_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o we_o must_v be_v guilty_a of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o have_v so_o much_o wrong_v the_o church_n as_o nothing_o more_o this_o
apostolical_a or_o that_o those_o who_o bring_v new_a doctrine_n be_v as_o well_o inspire_v as_o the_o apostle_n the_o roman_a church_n shall_v now_o be_v apostolical_a and_o if_o there_o be_v now_o as_o great_a a_o necessity_n of_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o they_o then_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o apostolical_a office_n have_v continue_v in_o the_o number_n of_o twelve_o and_o so_o all_o the_o apostle_n shall_v have_v have_v successor_n which_o they_o must_v not_o say_v who_o maintain_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v that_o instance_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n teach_v the_o me●●as_v which_o also_o the_o scripture_n teach_v come_v up_o to_o the_o case_n first_o because_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v but_o a_o singular_a person_n but_o the_o church_n now_o be_v consider_v under_o a_o promise_n of_o continual_a succession_n and_o as_o be_v pretend_v by_o they_o with_o the_o perpetual_a gift_n of_o infallibility_n therefore_o though_o there_o be_v scripture_n then_o beside_o johns_n testimony_n yet_o what_o need_v of_o it_o now_o if_o there_o be_v a_o constant_a infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n second_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o case_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la scripturae_fw-la in_o regard_n o●_n scripture_n which_o be_v not_o then_o complete_v therefore_o there_o may_v be_v more_o necessity_n of_o st._n johns_n testimony_n and_o of_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n but_o now_o the_o canon_n be_v consign_v what_o need_v of_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o infallible_a direction_n stand_v in_o the_o church_n what_o need_v of_o a_o stand_a rule_n it_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o commonitorium_fw-la as_o the_o cardinal_n so_o the_o scripture_n shall_v give_v we_o but_o a_o application_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n the_o scripture_n that_o must_v not_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o direct_a and_o plain_a way_n that_o fool_n can_v err_v they_o may_v err_v by_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v err_v by_o the_o church_n therefore_o in_o effect_n not_o only_o will_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o scripture_n but_o there_o will_v be_v need_n of_o none_o but_o more_o close_o that_o which_o be_v not_o of_o use_n without_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o the_o church_n may_v be_v without_o be_v not_o necessary_a the_o scripture_n be_v of_o no_o use_n without_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n may_v be_v without_o scripture_n therefore_o according_a to_o their_o premise_n the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o be_v necessary_a and_o how_o far_o be_v it_o from_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o necessary_a if_o to_o accuse_v scripture_n be_v to_o accuse_v god_n as_o nilus_n before_o then_o to_o say_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o accuse_v god_n of_o inspire_v so_o many_o penman_n for_o no_o necessary_a purpose_n for_o although_o after_o all_o mean_n of_o faith_n still_o million_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o he_o say_v yet_o since_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n no_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o as_o take_v from_o the_o church_n since_o the_o word_n not_o write_v take_v up_o so_o much_o of_o necessary_a matter_n since_o the_o p●tfecter_n and_o the_o wise_a be_v to_o be_v sublimate_v by_o tradition_n since_o the_o common_a people_n be_v not_o to_o be_v conversant_a in_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n what_o necessary_a purpose_n do_v the_o scripture_n serve_v to_o it_o be_v true_a superflua_fw-la non_fw-la nocent_a as_o the_o rule_n be_v and_o utile_fw-la per_fw-la inutile_fw-la non_fw-la vitiatur_fw-la true_a but_o yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o their_o principle_n the_o scripture_n will_v be_v superfluous_a for_o that_o which_o be_v more_o than_o be_v necessary_a be_v not_o necessary_a that_o which_o be_v not_o necessary_a what_o be_v it_o therefore_o if_o any_o of_o their_o man_n shall_v be_v find_v to_o be_v traditores_fw-la bibliorum_fw-la as_o some_o be_v of_o old_a the_o roman_a donatist_n will_v never_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o they_o he_o go_v on_o the_o church_n be_v not_o more_o enthusiastical_a now_o than_o she_o be_v for_o four_o thousand_o year_n before_o she_o have_v all_o the_o promise_n which_o christ_n make_v she_o of_o a_o assistance_n which_o shall_v be_v at_o least_o as_o speacill_a and_o full_a as_o she_o ever_o have_v before_o ans_fw-fr this_o be_v positive_o no_o answer_n but_o somewhat_o by_o compare_n we_o press_v it_o the_o church_n in_o that_o time_n do_v not_o the_o communi_fw-la challenge_v immediate_a inspiration_n therefore_o that_o church_n which_o do_v so_o now_o be_v more_o enthusiastical_a second_o it_o be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n since_o there_o be_v not_o now_o that_o need_n after_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_v three_o we_o return_v they_o their_o argument_n what_o assistance_n the_o church_n have_v former_o it_o have_v now_o the_o church_n former_o have_v not_o the_o communi_fw-la in_o fallible_a assistance_n therefore_o not_o now_o for_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o rational_o to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o common_a account_n of_o the_o church_n in_o our_o case_n let_v they_o choose_v which_o they_o will_v stand_v to_o if_o they_o put_v they_o into_o the_o promiscuous_a account_n of_o the_o church_n let_v they_o now_o show_v we_o such_o a_o church_n if_o they_o account_v they_o extraordinary_a let_v they_o show_v ordinary_o such_o and_o he_o confound_v himself_o in_o what_o follow_v before_o she_o deliver_v only_o what_o she_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n and_o by_o scripture_n she_o have_v receive_v scripture_n by_o tradition_n too_o have_v she_o not_o why_o do_v he_o then_o divide_v scripture_n from_o tradition_n in_o the_o way_n of_o its_o come_n to_o we_o for_o the_o chief_a reckon_n they_o make_v to_o we_o of_o scripture_n be_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o tradition_n but_o he_o mean_v tradition_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la materiae_fw-la it_o may_v be_v because_o they_o think_v tradition_n contain_v other_o matter_n than_o scripture_n equal_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o interpret_n which_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n true_o intend_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n do_v assist_v she_o so_o that_o here_o be_v no_o new_a revelation_n claim_v to_o be_v make_v to_o she_o but_o a_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o propose_v faithful_o what_o be_v former_o reveal_v ans_fw-fr he_o can_v well_o clear_v himself_o of_o enthusiasm_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o tradition_n any_o thing_n beside_o the_o word_n write_v equal_o to_o be_v believe_v be_v matter_n of_o enthusiasm_n but_o they_o pretend_v somewhat_o beside_o the_o word_n write_v equal_o to_o be_v believe_v therefore_o be_v they_o in_o danger_n of_o enthusiasm_n and_o i_o do_v not_o see_v well_o how_o they_o can_v answer_v it_o but_o now_o he_o endeavour_v to_o purge_v himself_o of_o this_o accusation_n in_o point_n of_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n they_o say_v they_o do_v not_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o revelation_n but_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n well_o but_o how_o shall_v we_o blind_a soul_n be_v assure_v infallible_o of_o this_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o may_v not_o examine_v it_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o private_a discretion_n may_v we_o if_o we_o may_v than_o this_o be_v gain_v must_v we_o believe_v it_o yes_o why_o because_o god_n have_v it_o to_o be_v his_o will_n that_o we_o shall_v absolute_o believe_v the_o church_n show_v i_o where_o by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o question_n by_o the_o scripture_n what_o text_n those_o produce_v but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o be_v right_o interpret_v according_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n what_o will_v they_o say_v now_o nothing_o but_o the_o church_n have_v infallible_a assistance_n and_o this_o they_o must_v believe_v by_o a_o revelation_n without_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v a_o enthusiasm_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v this_o privilege_n above_o other_o church_n make_n it_o a_o private_a revelation_n again_o though_o there_o be_v several_a way_n of_o revelation_n yet_o i_o will_v ask_v how_o many_o way_n there_o be_v of_o infallible_a assistance_n distinguish_v from_o revelation_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o or_o else_o conclude_v against_o themselves_o that_o they_o must_v have_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o revelation_n because_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n the_o penman_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v infallible_a assistance_n but_o that_o be_v by_o revelation_n let_v we_o know_v what_o infallible_a assistance_n there_o be_v without_o a_o revelation_n special_o since_o stapelton_n and_o some_o other_o likely_a will_v have_v the_o
experience_n as_o universal_a as_o that_o whereof_o mr._n cressy_n speak_v do_v also_o demonstrate_v it_o as_o impossible_a that_o any_o present_a church_n visible_a much_o less_o that_o his_o shall_v put_v a_o end_n to_o a_o debate_n between_o multitude_n of_o person_n who_o interest_n and_o bias_n be_v multifarious_o divide_v as_o well_o as_o they._n man_n must_v equal_o agree_v which_o they_o never_o will_v first_o what_o be_v to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o present_a visible_a church_n and_o after_o that_o that_o she_o be_v infallible_a before_o she_o can_v possible_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o their_o dissension_n in_o their_o debate_n but_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o the_o present_a church_n visible_a do_v he_o mean_v all_o the_o church_n that_o do_v submit_v unto_o the_o pope_n as_o their_o sovereign_a pastor_n either_o in_o or_o out_o of_o a_o general_n council_n if_o the_o first_o he_o must_v mean_v either_o a_o write_a or_o speak_a council_n if_o the_o former_a then_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o present_a church_n visible_a as_o here_o he_o do_v then_o there_o need_v no_o more_o than_o one_o but_o that_o by_o all_o mean_n must_v be_v a_o stand_a general_n council_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o then_o the_o church_n be_v never_o able_a to_o make_v her_o member_n the_o better_a for_o her_o infallibility_n or_o to_o prove_v she_o have_v such_o a_o privilege_n by_o be_v able_a to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o a_o debate_n between_o multitude_n of_o different_a interest_n and_o judgement_n in_o several_a nation_n either_o before_o the_o nicaene_n council_n which_o be_v the_o first_o that_o be_v general_n or_o since_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o trent_n which_o they_o avow_v to_o be_v the_o last_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v only_o a_o speak_a council_n than_o he_o confess_v that_o at_o present_a there_o be_v no_o such_o present_a visible_a church_n as_o can_v infallible_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o debate_n above_o mention_v even_o because_o there_o be_v no_o such_o general_n council_n which_o be_v so_o where_o be_v the_o boast_a infallibility_n how_o shall_v we_o find_v or_o comprehend_v it_o or_o how_o be_v any_o creature_n the_o wise_a for_o it_o and_o if_o he_o mean_v what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o my_o first_o dilemma_n all_o the_o church_n that_o own_o the_o pope_n as_o their_o sovereign_a pastor_n not_o in_o but_o out_o of_o a_o general_n council_n then_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o conclave_n or_o college_n of_o cardinal_n which_o by_o the_o way_n be_v a_o conventicle_n though_o not_o a_o council_n not_o concilium_fw-la but_o conciliabulum_fw-la must_v be_v the_o sole_a proper_a speak_a judge_n who_o can_v end_v such_o a_o debate_n as_o before_o we_o speak_v of_o so_o that_o in_o he_o as_o in_o her_o head_n the_o present_a visible_a church_n do_v entire_o lodge_v at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o her_o infallible_a judgement_n which_o none_o but_o the_o pope_n out_o of_o a_o council_n can_v have_v or_o utter_v but_o thus_o the_o romanist_n absurdity_n will_v be_v more_o shameful_a than_o before_o for_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n if_o not_o a_o heathen_a pope_n marcellinus_n be_v the_o first_o and_o pope_n liberius_n the_o second_o and_o there_o be_v no_o better_o argue_v than_o to_o the_o aptitude_n from_o the_o act._n nay_o in_o some_o of_o the_o 30_o schism_n which_o 50._o which_o onuphr_n in_o chro._n p._n 50._o onuphrius_n reckon_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o word_n protestant_n be_v ever_o hear_v of_o when_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n do_v sit_v at_o once_o it_o be_v even_o impossible_a to_o determine_v which_o pope_n be_v the_o true_a and_o which_o the_o false_a the_o council_n of_o 127._o of_o council_n constantiense_n praecipuè_fw-la congregatum_fw-la extinguendi_fw-la schismatis_fw-la causâ_fw-la quis_fw-la esset_fw-la verus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la vix_fw-la agnoscebat_fw-la v._o hist_n council_n à_fw-fr paulo_n v._o edit_n to._n 4._o p._n 127._o constance_n and_o seqq._n and_o statim_fw-la illud_fw-la in_o controversiam_fw-la venit_fw-la num_fw-la synodus_fw-la pisana_fw-la in_o illos_fw-la potuerit_fw-la animadvertere_fw-la cùm_fw-la eorum_fw-la alteruter_fw-la verus_fw-la esset_fw-la pontifex_fw-la sed_fw-la uter_fw-la be_v esset_fw-la non_fw-la constaret_fw-la ibid._n p._n seqq._n pisa_n whereof_o the_o former_a by_o the_o way_n be_v a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o catalogue_n set_v forth_o by_o pope_n paulus_n quintus_fw-la be_v utter_o at_o a_o loss_n in_o their_o debate_n of_o this_o matter_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v avoidable_a that_o mr._n cressy_n must_v not_o dare_v to_o avow_v this_o last_o notion_n of_o the_o present_a visible_a church_n as_o well_o because_o it_o be_v not_o that_o to_o which_o he_o dare_v say_v the_o last_o recourse_n be_v to_o be_v have_v as_o because_o she_o can_v too_o easy_o declare_v her_o sense_n in_o another_o way_n than_o as_o she_o be_v ever_o represent_v by_o her_o pastor_n out_o of_o all_o nation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o a_o general_n council_n which_o yet_o the_o present_a visible_a church_n can_v never_o do_v say_v mr._n cressy_n chap._n 9_o p._n 95._o but_o when_o i_o say_v he_o must_v not_o dare_v to_o avow_v this_o last_o notion_n of_o the_o present_a visible_a church_n to_o which_o he_o give_v the_o last_o recourse_n and_o to_o which_o he_o ascribe_v infallibility_n i_o mean_v he_o must_v not_o for_o the_o future_a not_o but_o that_o for_o the_o present_a he_o dare_v to_o do_v it_o because_o he_o tell_v we_o express_o p._n 97._o and_o as_o dogmatical_o too_o as_o without_o all_o proof_n that_o the_o present_a superior_n living_n and_o speak_v must_v conclude_v all_o controversy_n their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n their_o testimony_n of_o tradition_n must_v more_o than_o put_v to_o silence_v all_o contradiction_n of_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n it_o must_v also_o subdue_v their_o mind_n to_o a_o assent_n and_o this_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o a_o anathema_n or_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v say_v by_o mr._n cressy_n concern_v the_o live_n and_o speak_v judge_n of_o his_o church_n judge_n for_o the_o time_n be_v in_o every_o age._n quite_o forget_v what_o he_o have_v say_v not_o long_o before_o p._n 95._o that_o reason_n inspiration_n and_o example_n of_o primitive_a father_n must_v joint_o make_v up_o the_o only_a guide_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v infallible_a for_o unless_o they_o all_o concur_v as_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o p._n 93._o together_o with_o the_o present_a visible_a governor_n to_o who_o he_o there_o give_v a_o judge_a determine_a power_n that_o which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v reason_n and_o inspiration_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n may_v deceive_v and_o misguide_v we_o now_o beside_o that_o this_o say_n destroy_v the_o former_a where_o no_o less_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o present_a visible_a superior_n living_n and_o speak_v than_o here_o be_v attribute_v to_o all_o four_o requisite_n in_o conjunction_n we_o know_v that_o reason_n may_v be_v deceive_v inspiration_n be_v counterfeit_a by_o some_o unclean_a spirit_n which_o fallible_a reason_n must_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o primitive_a father_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o present_a superior_n much_o more_o than_o primitive_a and_o many_o fallible_a guide_n can_v never_o make_v up_o one_o infallible_a any_o more_o than_o many_o planet_n can_v make_v one_o sun_n or_o many_o act_n of_o finite_a knowledge_n one_o true_a omniscience_n for_o as_o mr._n cressy_n do_v confess_v that_o infallibility_n and_o omniscience_n be_v incommunicable_a attribute_n of_o god_n himself_o p._n 98._o so_o he_o imply'_v a_o contradiction_n when_o he_o say_v they_o be_v communicable_a to_o any_o creature_n such_o as_o be_v his_o present_a visible_a church_n and_o another_o contradiction_n as_o bad_a or_o worse_o when_o he_o say_v that_o a_o man_n although_o of_o much_o ignorance_n may_v in_o a_o sort_n be_v omniscient_a within_o his_o sphere_n p._n 99_o which_o be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o all_o thing_n because_o he_o may_v so_o know_v they_o all_o as_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o some_o but_o then_o with_o the_o help_n of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mean_a man_n be_v as_o omniscient_a as_o be_v his_o roman_a catholic_n church_n because_o within_o his_o determinate_a sphere_n he_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o all_o he_o know_v and_o of_o more_o than_o she_o know_v the_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o knowledge_n so_o again_o when_o he_o will_v show_v how_o a_o creature_n may_v be_v infallible_a though_o he_o have_v say_v that_o god_n himself_o be_v incommunicable_o such_o p._n 98._o he_o have_v no_o better_a a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
luke_n 10.16_o we_o say_v first_o this_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v right_o apply_v to_o the_o business_n we_o be_v about_o for_o this_o be_v direct_v not_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n or_o elder_n which_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n second_o if_o you_o do_v extend_v it_o to_o the_o representative_a church_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o command_v subjection_n of_o judgement_n always_o to_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v but_o not_o to_o despise_v they_o as_o be_v intimate_v by_o what_o follow_v and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o we_o may_v differ_v without_o despise_v and_o three_o if_o you_o will_v from_o hence_o argue_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v determine_v in_o a_o council_n be_v also_o determine_v by_o christ_n than_o honorius_n be_v by_o christ_n determine_v a_o heretic_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o practics_n of_o the_o six_o ecumenical_a synod_n as_o nilus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o a_o general_n council_n then_o resolve_v nilus_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o hear_v a_o general_n council_n for_o if_o that_o general_n council_n do_v not_o err_v as_o by_o your_o argument_n it_o must_v not_o than_o the_o pope_n do_v err_v as_o for_o the_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o you_o produce_v of_o christ_n be_v with_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o his_o promise_n of_o lead_v his_o church_n into_o all_o truth_n we_o answer_v together_o first_o though_o the_o promise_n be_v extendible_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o understand_v it_o so_o as_o that_o there_o shall_v always_o be_v equality_n of_o assistance_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v hard_o to_o affirm_v since_o we_o can_v say_v that_o there_o be_v such_o necessity_n for_o such_o assistance_n or_o such_o disposition_n in_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o receive_v such_o assistance_n second_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o sufficient_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n to_o their_o end_n of_o happiness_n although_o not_o without_o possibility_n of_o error_n for_o every_o simple_a error_n do_v not_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o salvation_n and_o then_o it_o may_v also_o recover_v itself_o from_o error_n by_o more_o perusal_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o it_o may_v at_o all_o err_v it_o have_v not_o the_o property_n of_o a_o ground_n of_o faith_n nor_o a_o just_a capacity_n of_o a_o infallible_a communication_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v you_o go_v on_o now_o this_o church_n who_o authority_n be_v thus_o warrant_v do_v precede_v the_o scripture_n answ_n warrant_v as_o a_o church_n but_o not_o as_o so_o not_o as_o infallible_a do_v precede_v the_o scripture_n which_o for_o a_o great_a part_n be_v write_v upon_o emergent_a occasion_n as_o you_o say_v answ_n as_o for_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o emergent_a occasion_n you_o may_v be_v further_o refer_v to_o doctor_n field_n who_o you_o make_v use_v of_o against_o i_o whatsoever_o the_o occasion_n be_v the_o end_n be_v to_o make_v what_o be_v write_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o as_o for_o your_o objection_n and_o inference_n upon_o it_o we_o answer_v with_o a_o distinction_n the_o scripture_n be_v considerable_a two_o way_n either_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n or_o secondary_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n by_o writing_n in_o the_o first_o regard_n the_o scripture_n do_v precede_v the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v beget_v by_o it_o which_o to_o they_o be_v as_o certain_a as_o the_o write_v to_o we_o and_o if_o you_o can_v make_v your_o tradition_n of_o proper_a name_n equal_o certain_a you_o will_v say_v somewhat_o and_o as_o for_o scripture_n that_o which_o be_v write_v do_v bind_v though_o it_o do_v not_o proper_o bind_v as_o write_v you_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n before_o it_o be_v write_v and_o so_o you_o say_v may_v be_v say_v of_o other_o passage_n we_o answer_v as_o that_o place_n express_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o call_v since_o first_o we_o find_v it_o in_o term_n in_o saint_n paul_n epistle_n but_o if_o so_o or_o other_o like_a be_v use_v before_o the_o answer_n before_o will_v serve_v by_o all_o which_o place_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o and_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o guide_n in_o all_o our_o doubt_n so_o you_o say_v and_o so_o we_o say_v where_o be_v the_o adversary_n how_o do_v this_o conclude_v contradictory_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n but_o not_o direct_o in_o every_o place_n you_o name_n nor_o in_o any_o be_v it_o so_o commend_v to_o we_o as_o to_o ground_v our_o faith_n we_o confess_v we_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o minister_n for_o direction_n and_o to_o the_o governor_n for_o jurisdiction_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o latter_a master_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o who_o we_o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o a_o blind_a obedience_n of_o universal_a assent_n or_o practice_n we_o take_v their_o advice_n but_o we_o be_v not_o by_o they_o determine_v in_o our_o faith_n we_o may_v believe_v what_o they_o say_v but_o not_o because_o they_o say_v it_o as_o it_o be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n so_o it_o draw_v we_o if_o they_o make_v it_o probable_a that_o it_o be_v so_o because_o they_o say_v it_o yet_o it_o have_v not_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o shall_v be_v very_o tender_a of_o incompliance_n with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o yet_o i_o must_v have_v for_o my_o warrant_n of_o faith_n the_o lord_n say_v and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n from_o a_o general_n council_n yet_o have_v they_o no_o infallible_a judgement_n you_o proceed_v even_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n answer_v this_o be_v touch_v before_o in_o the_o case_n of_o saint_n austin_n and_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n answer_v as_o before_o by_z doctor_z field_n indeed_o we_o take_v the_o canonical_a book_n by_o tradition_n from_o the_o church_n but_o we_o do_v not_o take_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a by_o tradition_n from_o the_o church_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v i_o as_o to_o the_o negative_a not_o to_o dissent_v but_o assent_n be_v settle_v to_o they_o as_o such_o in_o the_o way_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v such_o in_o thy_o light_n we_o shall_v see_v light_a as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psalm_n 36.9_o or_o by_o thy_o light_n so_o by_o scripture_n we_o see_v scripture_n next_o follow_v the_o expostulation_n which_o may_v be_v put_v into_o this_o discourse_n either_o we_o ground_n our_o belief_n upon_o the_o church_n or_o upon_o our_o own_o fancy_n and_o private_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n answer_v we_o deny_v your_o disjunction_n we_o ground_n our_o belief_n neither_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o nor_o upon_o fancy_n neither_o as_o some_o have_v do_v who_o have_v be_v better_a friend_n to_o roman_n than_o they_o have_v be_v to_o we_o as_o doctor_n whitaker_n tell_v campian_n upon_o a_o like_a imputation_n of_o anabaptastical_a fancy_n we_o differ_v from_o you_o because_o we_o allow_v to_o private_a christian_n a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n or_o discern_v which_o sure_o be_v commend_v in_o that_o precept_n prove_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o 5.21_o we_o differ_v from_o those_o who_o magnify_v their_o private_a interpretation_n because_o we_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v direct_v by_o their_o minister_n and_o order_v by_o the_o bishop_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n chief_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n wherein_o be_v the_o high_a power_n of_o oyer_n and_o terminer_n as_o we_o may_v speak_v of_o hear_v and_o end_v difference_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o can_v say_v that_o we_o be_v absolute_o bind_v unto_o their_o canon_n we_o have_v the_o judgement_n of_o private_a discretion_n and_o they_o not_o the_o judgement_n of_o infallibility_n and_o if_o you_o can_v say_v that_o they_o be_v absolute_o without_o any_o doubt_n but_o true_a without_o doubt_n we_o can_v say_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o absolute_o believe_v they_o every_o possible_a defect_n of_o certainty_n in_o the_o object_n exclude_v faith_n the_o certainty_n whereof_o admit_v no_o falsity_n therefore_o can_v we_o not_o present_o yield_v or_o assent_v to_o whatsoever_o be_v by_o they_o define_v
be_v strangle_v see_v here_o among_o necessary_a thing_n one_o be_v to_o abstain_v from_o blood_n which_o christian_n do_v not_o nor_o think_v not_o to_o be_v do_v for_o they_o free_o eat_v black_a pudding_n and_o also_o to_o abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v as_o when_o we_o strangle_v chicken_n and_o eat_v they_o free_o if_o you_o tell_v i_o that_o scripture_n only_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o judge_n follow_v no_o other_o as_o infallible_a woe_n be_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n who_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o work_v upon_o saturdaye_n unlawful_a on_o sunday_n lawful_a to_o eat_v blood_n and_o strangle_v thing_n unlawful_a to_o abstain_v from_o they_o as_o still_o forbid_v woe_n i_o say_v to_o our_o opinion_n for_o it_o not_o only_o will_v not_o be_v judge_v as_o undoubted_o true_a by_o scripture_n but_o also_o it_o will_v and_o that_o undoubted_o be_v judge_v false_a by_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v i_o pray_v tell_v i_o here_o how_o man_n of_o mean_a capacity_n yea_o how_o man_n of_o the_o great_a capacity_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o find_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o scripture_n only_o what_o be_v infallible_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o these_o point_n in_o which_o so_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o jew_n damnable_o differ_v from_o we_o do_v not_o all_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n ground_v upon_o scripture_n clear_a enough_o as_o they_o say_v both_o hold_n and_o swear_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o king_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n can_v any_o point_n in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o high_a concernment_n to_o the_o church_n then_o to_o know_v for_o certain_a their_o own_o head_n and_o yet_o this_o point_n be_v now_o no_o long_o ascertain_v we_o by_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o scripture_n for_o another_o example_n what_o controversy_n can_v more_o import_v then_o to_o be_v undoubted_o and_o by_o infallible_a authority_n secure_v which_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a and_o the_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n and_o which_o be_v not_o you_o say_v there_o be_v no_o infallibility_n of_o any_o verity_n to_o be_v have_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n but_o i_o say_v that_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n no_o infallibility_n can_v be_v have_v concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n wherefore_o either_o we_o can_v know_v this_o most_o important_a point_n of_o all_o point_n infallible_o or_o else_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n be_v whole_o silent_a we_o dispute_v and_o differ_v high_o about_o the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n whether_o they_o be_v the_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n or_o no._n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o how_o shall_v this_o grand_a controversy_n be_v decide_v and_o decide_v infallible_o by_o the_o ●udgement_n of_o scripture_n luther_n deny_v the_o apocalypse_n to_o be_v true_a scripture_n we_o all_o in_o england_n stand_v out_o against_o he_o i_o pray_v tell_v i_o what_o scripture_n we_o have_v against_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a without_o beg_v the_o question_n which_o be_v call_v into_o controversy_n we_o all_o believe_v the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n not_o only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n but_o also_o to_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n as_o also_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n mark_v to_o be_v write_v by_o st._n mark_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v deny_v this_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n can_v we_o cite_v against_o he_o or_o what_o infallible_a ground_n have_v we_o of_o this_o our_o belief_n the_o marcionist_n the_o cerdonist_n the_o manichaean_o do_v absolute_o deny_v st._n matthews_n gospel_n to_o be_v god_n word_n this_o controversy_n you_o say_v and_o all_o other_o controversy_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v end_v by_o the_o scripture_n i_o ask_v what_o place_n of_o scripture_n will_v end_v this_o controversy_n and_o all_o other_o controversy_n about_o all_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v almost_o all_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o some_o heretic_n or_o other_o and_o as_o for_o st._n matthew_n you_o must_v know_v that_o all_o ancient_a writer_n no_o one_o except_v do_v say_v that_o he_o do_v write_v in_o hebrew_n and_o yet_o neither_o his_o hebrew_a gospel_n nor_o any_o one_o certain_a copy_n of_o it_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o world_n tell_v i_o then_o upon_o what_o undoubted_a ground_n you_o believe_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o st._n matthews_n gospel_n only_o the_o greek_a translation_n which_o we_o have_v be_v make_v by_o god_n know_v who_o for_o we_o know_v not_o he_o may_v be_v a_o faithful_a or_o unfaithful_a translator_n he_o may_v use_v a_o false_a uncorrect_a copy_n he_o may_v mistake_v in_o many_o place_n by_o ignorance_n in_o many_o by_o negligence_n or_o malice_n upon_o what_o infallible_a ground_n shall_v a_o convert_a manichaean_n as_o st._n austin_n for_o example_n believe_v this_o greek_a gospel_n which_o we_o have_v by_o what_o scripture_n will_v you_o press_v he_o to_o it_o yea_o upon_o what_o scripture_n do_v you_o yourselves_o believe_v this_o gospel_n this_o greek_a translation_n of_o s._n matthew_n if_o you_o tell_v i_o saint_n matthew_n do_v write_v in_o greek_a i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o all_o antiquity_n no_o one_o ancient_a author_n except_v say_v the_o contrary_n how_o will_v you_o then_o ground_n infallible_a belief_n upon_o your_o so_o new_a and_o so_o uncertain_a opinion_n when_o this_o question_n be_v move_v whether_o any_o book_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n or_o no_o the_o holy_a father_n can_v never_o find_v any_o more_o undoubted_a ground_n then_o that_o the_o church_n do_v allow_v or_o not_o allow_v of_o such_o book_n to_o be_v hold_v for_o god_n undoubted_a word_n upon_o this_o ground_n st._n athanasius_n in_o fine_a synopsis_fw-la receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n and_o the_o other_o three_o gospel_n and_o reject_v the_o gospel_n of_o st._n thomas_n upon_o this_o ground_n tertullian_n st._n hierome_n st._n austin_n and_o st._n leo_n profess_v themselves_o to_o admit_v such_o and_o to_o deny_v other_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a upon_o this_o ground_n it_o be_v that_o eusebius_n hist_o eccles_n l._n 3.19_o say_v such_o scripture_n be_v hold_v for_o true_a genuine_a and_o manifest_o allow_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o because_o they_o be_v so_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o by_o this_o evident_a note_n or_o mark_v they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o behold_v the_o most_o perspicuous_a mark_n by_o which_o scripture_n can_v be_v infallible_o know_v to_o be_v or_o not_o be_v god_n undoubted_a word_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o st._n austin_n give_v a_o reason_n to_o the_o manichaean_o who_o believe_v some_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n why_o he_o cite_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o believe_v not_o say_v thus_o which_o book_n of_o the_o act_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o i_o to_o believe_v if_o i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v the_o catholic_n authority_n in_o like_a manner_n commend_v both_o these_o scripture_n to_o i_o so_o he_o contra_fw-la ep._n fund_z c._n 4._o by_o this_o the_o author_n of_o the_o reply_n may_v see_v how_o insufficient_a his_o answer_n pag._n 25._o be_v when_o he_o say_v indeed_o we_o take_v the_o canonical_a book_n by_o tradition_n from_o the_o church_n but_o we_o do_v not_o take_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a upon_o her_o tradition_n but_o assent_n be_v settle_v in_o they_o as_o canonical_a in_o the_o way_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v such_o in_o thy_o light_n we_o shall_v see_v light_a so_o by_o scripture_n we_o shall_v see_v scripture_n so_o he_o but_o not_o so_o any_o one_o of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v most_o often_o press_v to_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o they_o believe_v such_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a why_o not_o none_o of_o these_o profess_a themselves_o to_o be_v so_o sharp_a sight_v that_o by_o see_v only_o canonical_a scripture_n they_o can_v see_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o that_o so_o manifest_o as_o to_o ground_v their_o faith_n upon_o it_o you_o by_o the_o apocalypse_v see_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a your_o most_o illuminate_v luther_n can_v not_o see_v it_o to_o be_v so_o by_o that_o light_n by_o all_o the_o light_n he_o have_v he_o judge_v st._n james_n his_o epistle_n to_o be_v make_v of_o straw_n yet_o you_o see_v in_o it_o a_o light_n show_v undoubted_o it_o to_o be_v god_n word_n you_o can_v see_v the_o two_o first_o book_n of_o macchabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a yet_o st._n austin_n believe_v they_o to_o be_v so_o for_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 47._o receive_v they_o for_o
their_o soul_n upon_o that_o their_o conceive_a certainty_n thus_o you_o see_v when_o the_o scripture_n in_o four_o several_a place_n deliver_v these_o four_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n man_n will_v hold_v it_o to_o be_v clear_a that_o so_o clear_a word_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o will_v venture_v their_o salvation_n upon_o this_o their_o imagination_n in_o this_o and_o many_o other_o point_n we_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a for_o we_o the_o lutheran_n say_v it_o be_v clear_a for_o they_o the_o calvinist_n say_v it_o be_v clear_a for_o they_o we_o have_v confer_v place_n with_o place_n we_o have_v look_v in_o the_o original_n and_o after_o all_o this_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o decide_v this_o controversy_n but_o when_o all_o be_v do_v we_o be_v as_o far_o from_o agree_v and_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o undoubted_a knowledge_n of_o the_o most_o important_a truth_n as_o we_o be_v at_o the_o beginning_n another_o very_a strong_a argument_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v this_o that_o there_o be_v many_o point_n the_o believe_v of_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o point_n be_v not_o where_o set_v down_o clear_o in_o scripture_n for_o first_o you_o make_v it_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o all_o point_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o by_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o end_v they_o all_o i_o ask_v where_o be_v this_o point_n of_o point_n which_o you_o make_v the_o ground_n of_o your_o belief_n where_o be_v it_o i_o say_v set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o clear_o that_o no_o prudent_a doubt_n can_v be_v make_v but_o that_o such_o word_n clear_o say_v what_o you_o say_v do_v not_o saint_n athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n put_v down_o as_o a_o undoubted_a article_n of_o catholic_n faith_n which_o faith_n as_o he_o say_v without_o a_o man_n hold_v it_o entire_o and_o inviolable_o without_o all_o doubt_n he_o shall_v perish_v eternal_o do_v he_o not_o put_v down_o there_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v not_o beget_v that_o god_n the_o son_n be_v not_o make_v but_o beget_v by_o his_o father_n only_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v neither_o make_v nor_o beget_v but_o do_v proceed_v and_o that_o both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o that_o he_o who_o will_v be_v save_v must_v believe_v thus_o and_o yet_o how_o far_o be_v these_o most_o hard_a point_n from_o be_v clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o also_o that_o god_n the_o son_n be_v consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n be_v a_o certain_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o no_o where_n clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n but_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o consequent_o be_v believe_v infallible_a i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o the_o necessary_a commandment_n of_o keep_v the_o sunday_n in_o place_n of_o the_o saturday_n be_v no_o where_n in_o scripture_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n how_o then_o can_v i_o believe_v this_o for_o the_o scripture_n or_o for_o any_o clear_a place_n of_o it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o place_n to_o be_v find_v i_o have_v also_o show_v that_o it_o be_v no_o where_n in_o scripture_n set_v down_o at_o all_o much_o less_o set_v down_o clear_o and_o manifest_o which_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a which_o not_o how_o then_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o give_v no_o testimony_n at_o all_o of_o this_o point_n can_v i_o believe_v such_o book_n undoubted_o to_o be_v such_o not_o to_o be_v canonical_a baptism_n of_o child_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n be_v a_o prime_a point_n of_o belief_n and_o yet_o you_o can_v believe_v this_o prime_a point_n upon_o any_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o place_n but_o you_o must_v all_o say_v with_o the_o great_a saint_n austin_n that_o though_o nothing_o for_o certain_a can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o this_o point_n yet_o in_o this_o point_n the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o faith_n be_v keep_v by_o we_o when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o church_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n do_v commend_v contra_fw-la crescon_n l_o 1.13_o and_o this_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n he_o call_v the_o most_o true_a and_o inviolable_a rule_n of_o truth_n he_o hold_v therefore_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o infallible_a that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o ground_n for_o faith_n he_o be_v teach_v so_o by_o saint_n paul_n 2_o thes_n 2._o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v either_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o epistle_n upon_o which_o place_n saint_n chrysostome_n have_v teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v many_o thing_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n not_o set_v down_o any_o where_n in_o writing_n he_o say_v that_o these_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v worthy_a of_o the_o same_o belief_n which_o those_o deserve_v which_o be_v write_v it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n seek_v no_o further_a so_o he_o but_o you_o say_v i_o must_v seek_v further_a to_o find_v this_o in_o scripture_n yet_o saint_n chrysostome_n tell_v i_o that_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v god_n word_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n as_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o if_o it_o be_v his_o write_a word_n for_o it_o be_v the_o be_v his_o word_n and_o not_o the_o be_v of_o his_o write_a word_n which_o make_v it_o infallible_o true_a well_o then_o it_o have_v be_v make_v clear_a by_o all_o these_o reason_n and_o authority_n that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v intend_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o our_o controversy_n in_o faith_n and_o that_o their_o read_n can_v be_v that_o holy_a way_n a_o way_n so_o direct_a unto_o we_o that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o let_v we_o see_v where_o this_o way_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n to_o define_v all_o controversy_n with_o infallible_a authority_n so_o that_o all_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v their_o interior_a judgement_n in_o which_o all_o faith_n consist_v to_o this_o authority_n it_o be_v high_a treason_n against_o christ_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o a_o authority_n institute_v by_o he_o purposely_o to_o oblige_v all_o to_o this_o submission_n i_o say_v this_o judge_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n this_o i_o will_v prove_v first_o and_o this_o be_v prove_v i_o will_v show_v brief_o that_o no_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a can_v prudent_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v this_o catholic_a church_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n her_o be_v judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n i_o allege_v first_o those_o word_n matth._n 16._o v._n 18._o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o st._n peter_n by_o name_n thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o that_o be_v those_o gate_n of_o hell_n out_o of_o which_o so_o many_o damnable_a error_n shall_v issue_v shall_v never_o prevail_v by_o induce_v any_o damnable_a error_n into_o that_o church_n which_o i_o will_v build_v upon_o thou_o o_o peter_n and_o thy_o successor_n which_o i_o add_v because_o this_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o st._n peter_n only_o for_o then_o this_o fair_a building_n have_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n when_o st._n peter_n have_v die_v they_o who_o do_v say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v fall_v into_o damnable_a error_n do_v say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v prevail_v against_o it_o for_o what_o great_a fall_n can_v it_o have_v then_o by_o damnable_a error_n to_o make_v its_o member_n all_o fall_n into_o hell_n and_o in_o what_o manner_n can_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n more_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o yet_o we_o be_v sure_a by_o god_n word_n that_o shall_v never_o happen_v wherefore_o in_o this_o church_n we_o embrace_v most_o ground_o all_o thing_n propose_v by_o it_o to_o be_v believe_v here_o you_o see_v our_o judge_n christ_n church_n have_v god_n warrant_n to_o warrant_v she_o from_o bring_v in_o any_o damnable_a error_n by_o her_o judgement_n all_o may_v therefore_o secure_o obey_v but_o that_o none_o can_v secure_o disobey_v her_o judgement_n christ_n also_o do_v warrant_v we_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n but_o one_o for_o matth._n 18._o v._n 17._o he_o say_v tell_v the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o
will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n here_o you_o see_v all_o cause_n of_o great_a importance_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o judge_n for_o if_o even_o private_a complaint_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v into_o her_o tribunal_n and_o if_o for_o disobedience_n after_o her_o judgement_n give_v of_o they_o a_o man_n be_v to_o be_v hold_n for_o a_o publican_n or_o heathen_a much_o more_o be_v enormious_o hurtful_a crime_n such_o as_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o heresy_n to_o be_v carry_v to_o her_o tribunal_n and_o those_o who_o in_o so_o much_o more_o import_v matter_n disobey_v be_v also_o much_o more_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o publican_n and_o heathen_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v think_v that_o after_o this_o his_o condemnation_n he_o may_v stand_v well_o in_o his_o interior_a persist_v still_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n and_o do_v so_o stand_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v amen_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o prelate_n of_o my_o church_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v also_o be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n you_o see_v i_o have_v find_v a_o judge_n so_o secure_o to_o be_v follow_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o so_o unsafe_o to_o be_v disobey_v that_o his_o sentence_n give_v upon_o earth_n be_v sure_o to_o be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n this_o also_o can_v not_o be_v true_a if_o this_o judge_n be_v fallible_a in_o such_o prime_a cause_n as_o most_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o all_o such_o cause_n be_v those_o which_o may_v bring_v in_o damnable_a error_n conformable_o to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n her_o be_v our_o judge_n saint_n austin_n de_fw-la civit._fw-la l._n 20.9_o expound_v to_o our_o purpose_n those_o word_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n or_o revelation_n cap._n 20._o ver_fw-la 4._o i_o see_v seat_n and_o they_o sit_v upon_o they_o and_o judgement_n be_v give_v they_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o of_o the_o seat_n of_o prelate_n and_o the_o prelate_n themselves_o by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v now_o govern_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v all_o this_o which_o i_o have_v say_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n you_o will_v the_o less_o wonder_n at_o if_o you_o note_v that_o even_o in_o the_o old_a law_n it_o be_v say_v the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v require_v the_o law_n from_o his_o mouth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n mal_n 2._o note_v here_o a_o gross_a corruption_n of_o the_o english_a bible_n which_o read_v these_o word_n the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n whereas_o the_o original_n speak_v clear_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v judge_n yet_o your_o most_o corruptd_a english_a scripture_n can_v be_v allow_v for_o judge_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o those_o who_o do_v understand_v only_o english_a can_v judge_v of_o nothing_o by_o their_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o must_v trust_v their_o minister_n to_o the_o full_a as_o much_o even_o in_o this_o high_a point_n as_o we_o do_v our_o priest_n in_o any_o point_n but_o let_v we_o proceed_v you_o see_v first_o that_o i_o have_v find_v a_o way_n so_o direct_a that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o for_o any_o man_n may_v ask_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v the_o know_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o then_o let_v he_o rest_v secure_o when_o he_o know_v that_o second_o you_o see_v i_o have_v find_v such_o a_o judge_n as_o all_o true_a believer_n have_v for_o all_o their_o controversy_n for_o more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n together_o before_o moses_n do_v write_v the_o first_o book_n of_o scripture_n all_o which_o time_n you_o must_v needs_o make_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o here_o be_v no_o write_a word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o their_o faith_n can_v be_v build_v and_o yet_o saint_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 4._o speak_v of_o those_o who_o live_v in_o those_o age_n before_o all_o scripture_n say_v they_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v clear_a for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o same_o whether_o it_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o pen_n or_o by_o the_o tongue_n write_v or_o not_o write_v and_o what_o say_v st._n irenaus_n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o the_o scripture_n must_v we_o not_o have_v follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o those_o to_o who_o charge_n they_o leave_v the_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v to_o this_o order_n of_o tradition_n by_o the_o unwritten_a word_n many_o of_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v assent_v who_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n without_o any_o writing_n or_o ink_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o keep_v diligent_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n so_o st._n irenaeus_n who_o you_o see_v hold_v manifest_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_o true_a which_o he_o say_v that_o upon_o this_o ground_n the_o faith_n of_o whole_a nation_n have_v rely_v this_o ground_n therefore_o be_v infallible_a all_o nation_n faith_n rely_v on_o this_o even_o two_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o before_o the_o first_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o the_o faith_n of_o many_o other_o nation_n who_o since_o their_o writing_n have_v believe_v and_o do_v believe_v the_o true_a faith_n for_o how_o many_o of_o they_o never_o do_v see_v the_o scripture_n at_o all_o or_o never_o do_v see_v they_o in_o a_o language_n which_o they_o can_v understand_v neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n or_o their_o successor_n take_v any_o care_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n communicate_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o such_o language_n as_o they_o can_v all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n understand_v they_o think_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v if_o this_o rule_n be_v fallible_a we_o must_v therefore_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a three_o i_o have_v not_o only_o find_v a_o judge_n so_o clear_o point_v out_o the_o way_n that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o but_o such_o a_o judge_n as_o no_o exception_n can_v be_v take_v against_o his_o sufficiency_n for_o no_o other_o judge_n be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o thousand_o of_o year_n among_o the_o most_o true_a believer_n and_o afterward_o among_o whole_a nation_n four_o i_o have_v find_v a_o judge_n to_o who_o christ_n have_v give_v a_o certain_a promise_n to_o teach_v no_o damnable_a error_n by_o which_o doctrine_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v prevail_v against_o she_o five_o i_o have_v find_v a_o judge_n who_o all_o man_n be_v oblige_v i_o say_v oblige_v by_o interior_a assent_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o obey_v under_o pain_n of_o be_v hold_v here_o for_o heathen_n or_o publican_n and_o look_v upon_o as_o such_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o heaven_n bind_v what_o the_o church_n bind_v six_o i_o have_v find_v a_o live_a judge_n who_o can_v be_v inform_v of_o all_o controversy_n arise_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o who_o can_v hear_v i_o and_o you_o and_o be_v hear_v by_o i_o and_o you_o that_o neither_o i_o nor_o you_o can_v doubt_v of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o church_n or_o if_o we_o doubt_v we_o can_v propose_v our_o doubt_n and_o she_o will_v tell_v we_o clear_o her_o meaning_n whereas_o the_o bible_n can_v neither_o hear_v a_o thousand_o new_a controversy_n which_o arise_v daily_o nor_o be_v hear_v clear_o to_o give_v any_o certain_a sentence_n in_o they_o but_o only_o say_v the_o same_o still_o which_o she_o say_v even_o before_o the_o controversy_n begin_v and_o about_o which_o sentence_n of_o she_o all_o the_o controversy_n do_v arise_v neither_o do_v the_o bible_n give_v any_o such_o judgement_n as_o will_v suffice_v to_o hold_v these_o and_o these_o man_n who_o teach_v these_o and_o these_o error_n for_o heathen_n and_o publican_n which_o the_o church_n do_v so_o clear_o and_o so_o manifest_o that_o they_o themselves_o can_v deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n together_o with_o their_o doctrine_n but_o all_o they_o can_v do_v be_v to_o rail_v against_o their_o judge_n which_o the_o damn_a shall_v do_v against_o christ_n their_o judge_n i_o see_v no_o exception_n there_o can_v be_v make_v against_o this_o judge_n only_o you_o will_v tell_v i_o that_o infallibility_n be_v whole_o necessary_a for_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n which_o i_o
also_o confess_v yet_o i_o also_o say_v that_o this_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v infallible_a but_o withal_o i_o will_v have_v every_o one_o know_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v oblige_v to_o no_o more_o then_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n define_v with_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n can_v err_v for_o it_o be_v no_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n can_v err_v when_o he_o define_v without_o a_o general_n council_n now_o that_o this_o definition_n of_o a_o whole_a general_n council_n be_v infallible_a ought_v not_o to_o seem_v strange_a to_o any_o christian_n for_o who_o can_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o christ_n for_o the_o secure_a direction_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n who_o the_o apostle_n convert_v shall_v give_v this_o infallibility_n to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v regard_v so_o little_a the_o secure_a direction_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n who_o be_v to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o for_o their_o sake_n &_o for_o the_o secure_a direction_n of_o their_o soul_n he_o will_v not_o give_v this_o infallibility_n so_o much_o as_o to_o one_o man_n no_o not_o to_o all_o the_o prelate_n of_o christianity_n assemble_v together_o with_o their_o head_n to_o define_v matter_n most_o necessary_a and_o in_o which_o all_o error_n will_v be_v most_o pernicious_a who_o i_o say_v can_v think_v this_o strange_a especial_o be_v this_o gift_n of_o infallibility_n be_v give_v not_o for_o their_o private_a sake_n to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v but_o for_o the_o universal_a good_a and_o necessary_a direction_n concord_n and_o perpetual_a unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n you_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o give_v infallibility_n of_o doctrine_n to_o all_o those_o who_o do_v write_v any_o small_a part_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a scripture_n he_o give_v it_o to_o david_n though_o he_o be_v a_o adulterer_n he_o give_v it_o to_o solomon_n who_o prove_v not_o only_o a_o most_o vicious_a man_n in_o life_n but_o who_o for_o his_o own_o person_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n come_v to_o fall_v into_o worship_v of_o idol_n this_o you_o will_v not_o have_v think_v strange_a but_o you_o will_v hold_v it_o incredible_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v this_o infallibility_n not_o to_o one_o man_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n let_v we_o pass_v on_o further_a yet_o and_o see_v how_o firm_o this_o infallibility_n be_v ground_v i_o have_v above_o show_v how_o strong_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o those_o word_n of_o god_n promise_v a_o holy_a way_n a_o way_n so_o direct_a unto_o we_o that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o see_v here_o the_o three_o number_n in_o the_o eight_o number_n i_o have_v show_v that_o we_o can_v ground_v that_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v the_o sabbath_n to_o be_v change_v to_o the_o sunday_n upon_o scripture_n but_o we_o must_v ground_v it_o upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o infallible_a we_o have_v no_o infallible_a ground_n at_o all_o for_o this_o point_n and_o in_o the_o nine_o number_n i_o have_v show_v the_o selfsame_a to_o be_v about_o eat_v blood_n or_o chicken_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v strangle_v in_o the_o 11_o 12_o and_o 13._o number_n i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o can_v know_v which_o be_v true_a scripture_n which_o be_v false_a which_o book_n be_v infallible_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o not_o for_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o one_o text_n in_o which_o it_o tell_v we_o this_o and_o therefore_o for_o this_o important_a point_n of_o faith_n we_o can_v find_v no_o other_o sure_a ground_n than_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n for_o a_o fallible_a tradition_n may_v deceive_v we_o in_o the_o 14._o number_n i_o have_v show_v that_o when_o controversy_n arise_v as_o most_o and_o most_o important_a controversy_n do_v arise_v about_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n even_o after_o we_o have_v confer_v all_o place_n together_o and_o look_v upon_o the_o original_a language_n the_o the_o controversy_n still_o remain_v undecided_a and_o no_o infallible_a way_n can_v be_v find_v to_o decide_v they_o by_o scripture_n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o infallible_a way_n to_o decide_v they_o if_o the_o decision_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o infallible_a this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o to_o the_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n luther_n himself_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n write_v thus_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o any_o private_a man_n that_o he_o have_v the_o revelation_n of_o the_o father_n the_o church_n alone_o it_o be_v of_o which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o doubt_v so_o he_o in_o the_o 15._o number_n i_o have_v show_v that_o there_o be_v many_o point_n necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n which_o point_n be_v not_o at_o all_o set_v down_o in_o any_o clear_a scripture_n for_o these_o point_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o other_o ground_n then_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n if_o this_o be_v not_o infallible_a than_o we_o have_v only_o fallible_a ground_n which_o can_v be_v a_o ground_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o 16._o number_n i_o have_v confirm_v the_o same_o doctrine_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o saint_n austin_n and_o saint_n chrysostome_n in_o the_o 17._o number_n i_o have_v prove_v this_o doctrine_n clear_o out_o of_o god_n promise_n that_o he_o will_v build_v this_o his_o church_n upon_o a_o rock_n and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v easy_o do_v if_o the_o church_n can_v come_v to_o teach_v damnable_a error_n carry_v she_o and_o her_o child_n into_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n itself_o the_o same_o in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o have_v prove_v by_o god_n command_v we_o to_o tell_v the_o church_n and_o command_v we_o to_o hold_v all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n as_o publican_n and_o heathen_n and_o by_o make_v good_a in_o heaven_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n give_v upon_o earth_n which_o he_o will_v not_o do_v if_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v at_o any_o time_n fail_v in_o her_o definition_n and_o that_o in_o point_n damnable_o erroneous_a in_o the_o 18._o number_n i_o have_v allege_v other_o text_n still_o prove_v the_o same_o in_o the_o 19_o number_n i_o have_v show_v that_o for_o two_o thousand_o year_n together_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v the_o true_a believer_n have_v no_o other_o sure_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v fallible_a the_o very_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n have_v be_v groundless_a and_o none_o at_o all_o the_o first_o believer_n also_o and_o many_o whole_a nation_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n than_o the_o say_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o there_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o saint_n irenaeus_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a of_o itself_o for_o they_o do_v not_o build_v their_o faith_n on_o any_o scripture_n thus_o far_o i_o have_v go_v already_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n now_o i_o go_v on_o with_o those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n 1_o tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o where_o the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n may_v not_o man_n rely_v secure_o upon_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n may_v they_o not_o ground_n themselves_o assure_o on_o the_o ground_n of_o truth_n no_o ground_n be_v sure_a ground_n and_o more_o infallible_a than_o the_o ground_n of_o truth_n itself_o yea_o my_o adversary_n have_v find_v a_o place_n in_o st._n irenaeus_n call_v the_o scripture_n the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o faith_n do_v infer_v that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o than_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o this_o consequence_n be_v strong_a which_o i_o deny_v not_o then_o be_v it_o yet_o a_o strong_a that_o the_o truth_n be_v no_o where_n sure_a ground_v then_o upon_o the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n but_o my_o adversary_n will_v take_v this_o place_n of_o st._n paul_n from_o i_o because_o he_o say_v this_o expression_n may_v very_o reasonable_o be_v refer_v not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o so_o be_v a_o hebrew_n form_n etc._n etc._n sure_o he_o forget_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o write_v in_o hebrew_n but_o in_o greek_a and_o then_o again_o no_o hebrew_n form_n in_o the_o world_n can_v make_v the_o sense_n he_o intend_v what_o can_v be_v
ever_o now_o of_o no_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n but_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n church_n this_o can_v be_v understand_v this_o church_n therefore_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o and_o consequent_o at_o no_o time_n it_o shall_v fall_v into_o damnable_a error_n for_o than_o it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v it_o do_v not_o stand_v but_o be_v fall_v most_o damnable_o again_o in_o isaiah_n 29._o god_n do_v clear_o declare_v his_o covenant_n with_o his_o church_n according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o saint_n paul_n himself_o rom._n 11.26_o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n with_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n my_o spirit_n which_o be_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n say_v the_o lord_n from_o henceforth_o and_o for_o ever_o but_o how_o can_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n more_o depart_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n then_o if_o she_o shall_v with_o her_o mouth_n teach_v damnable_a error_n from_o this_o therefore_o he_o secure_v his_o church_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o hence_o saint_n austin_n say_v l._n the_o unitat._n eccl._n cap._n 6_o 7_o 12_o &_o 13._o see_v he_o also_o l._n 20._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la cap._n 8._o in_o psalm_n 85._o &_o de_fw-la utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 8._o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v overthrow_v as_o it_o be_v if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o shall_v teach_v any_o damnable_a error_n do_v rob_v christ_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o inheritance_n buy_v with_o his_o precious_a blood_n yea_o saint_n hierom_n cont_n lucifer_n c._n 6._o go_v far_o and_o aver_v that_o he_o that_o so_o say_v do_v make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o poor_a miserable_a christ_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o assertion_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n bereave_v the_o whole_a incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o their_o effect_n and_o end_v which_o be_v principal_o to_o find_v a_o church_n and_o kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n which_o shall_v endure_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o direct_a man_n in_o all_o truth_n to_o salvation_n wherefore_o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v perish_v take_v away_o this_o effect_n and_o prerogative_n from_o his_o incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n and_o avouch_v that_o at_o some_o time_n man_n have_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o attain_v to_o everlasting_a bliss_n which_o be_v also_o repugnant_a to_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o also_o make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o make_v the_o devil_n strong_a than_o christ_n and_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v overthrow_v christ_n church_n and_o kingdom_n which_o our_o lord_n promise_v shall_v never_o be_v conquer_v that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v believe_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o of_o a_o authority_n sufficient_a to_o ground_n faith_n upon_o appear_v by_o their_o rely_v only_o upon_o her_o authority_n in_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o believe_v such_o and_o such_o book_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o upon_o this_o only_a ground_n they_o ground_n this_o their_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o 12._o number_n i_o have_v show_v saint_n athanasius_n saint_n hierome_n saint_n austin_n tertullian_n and_o eusebius_n to_o have_v receive_v such_o book_n for_o god_n word_n and_o to_o have_v not_o receive_v other_o and_o to_o have_v receive_v such_o with_o veneration_n of_o divine_a authority_n as_o st._n austin_n speak_v and_o upon_o this_o infallible_a authority_n they_o all_o believe_v god_n the_o father_n not_o to_o be_v beget_v god_n the_o son_n to_o be_v beget_v by_o his_o father_n only_o and_o to_o be_v consubstantial_a to_o he_o and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o to_o be_v beget_v but_o to_o proceed_v from_o both_o father_n and_o son_n upon_o this_o infallible_a authority_n they_o all_o hold_v child_n to_o be_v baptize_v though_o nothing_o for_o certain_a can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o this_o point_n but_o only_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v this_o to_o be_v do_v as_o in_o the_o 16_o numb_a have_v show_v out_o of_o st._n austin_n who_o there_o call_v this_o rely_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n the_o most_o true_a &_o inviolable_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n there_o also_o say_v that_o these_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n infallible_a only_o in_o her_o authority_n be_v as_o worthy_a of_o faith_n and_o credit_n as_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o 19_o numb_a i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o st._n irenaeus_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o believe_v although_o no_o scripture_n have_v be_v write_v as_o we_o be_v now_o and_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o whole_a nation_n be_v ground_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o consequent_o on_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n who_o word_n he_o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 22th_o number_n i_o sum_n up_o all_o these_o authority_n that_o my_o adversary_n may_v not_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n austin_n be_v single_a when_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v god_n word_n upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o her_o authority_n be_v by_o so_o many_o father_n acknowledge_v infallible_a then_o st._n austin_n be_v not_o single_a in_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n but_o because_o that_o place_n of_o st._n austin_n speak_v home_o and_o because_o my_o adversary_n say_v that_o if_o we_o take_v this_o passage_n by_o itself_o it_o seem_v to_o speak_v high_a but_o say_v he_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o tenor_n of_o saint_n augustine_n discourse_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n it_o be_v like_a we_o will_v begin_v to_o think_v that_o it_o come_v from_o he_o in_o some_o heat_n of_o spirit_n to_o overcome_v his_o adversary_n for_o these_o cause_n i_o say_v i_o will_v consider_v the_o tenor_n of_o st._n augustine_n discourse_n in_o this_o whole_a chapter_n and_o i_o will_v show_v manifest_o that_o this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v so_o far_o from_o come_v out_o from_o he_o in_o some_o heat_n of_o spirit_n to_o overcome_v his_o adversary_n that_o he_o make_v it_o the_o very_a prime_a ground_n of_o his_o discourse_n and_o without_o he_o will_v stand_v to_o that_o ground_n he_o there_o must_v needs_o seem_v to_o say_v nothing_o against_o his_o adversary_n this_o chapter_n be_v the_o four_o chapter_n cont._n ep._n manichaei_n the_o whole_a substance_n of_o it_o be_v this_o the_o epistle_n of_o manichaeus_n begin_v thus_o manichaeus_n the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n the_o father_n i_o ask_v therefore_o say_v saint_n austin_n who_o this_o manichaeus_n be_v you_o will_v answer_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o perhaps_o you_o will_v read_v the_o gospel_n unto_o i_o endeavour_v thence_o to_o prove_v it_o and_o what_o if_o you_o do_v fall_v upon_o one_o who_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n what_o will_v you_o do_v then_o if_o such_o a_o one_o say_v i_o do_v not_o believe_v you_o this_o be_v his_o first_o argument_n to_o show_v that_o his_o adversary_n by_o cite_v text_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n to_o prove_v manichaeus_n a_o true_a apostle_n can_v prove_v nothing_o against_o those_o who_o as_o yet_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n then_o he_o go_v on_o but_o because_o i_o be_o not_o one_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o this_o answer_n can_v serve_v i_o notwithstanding_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o i_o be_o such_o a_o one_o that_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v move_v i_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o answer_n you_o shall_v see_v how_o he_o build_v upon_o this_o and_o only_o this_o ground_n it_o follow_v then_o thus_o i_o have_v therefore_o obey_v those_o catholic_n pastor_n say_v believe_v the_o gospel_n the_o most_o important_a point_n of_o point_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o obey_v they_o say_v to_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v manichaeus_n then_o upon_o this_o ground_n he_o press_v home_o say_v choose_v which_o you_o will_v if_o you_o say_v believe_v the_o catholic_n than_o i_o must_v not_o believe_v you_o for_o they_o teach_v i_o not_o to_o give_v faith_n to_o you_o wherefore_o believe_v they_o as_o i_o do_v i_o can_v believe_v you_o now_o if_o you_o say_v do_v not_o believe_v the_o catholic_n than_o you_o do_v not_o go_v consequent_o to_o force_v i_o by_o the_o gospel_n to_o give_v faith_n to_o manichaeus_n
many_o have_v differ_v from_o themselves_o be_v then_o this_o the_o way_n that_o fool_n can_v err_v if_o wise_a man_n go_v this_o way_n sure_o this_o be_v their_o first_o error_n that_o they_o go_v this_o way_n wherein_o nothing_o be_v find_v but_o perplexity_n and_o unsatisfiednesse_n neither_o can_v they_o sober_o raise_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o prime_a descent_n without_o interruption_n from_o the_o apostolic_a age_n if_o all_o be_v well_o consider_v such_o a_o confidence_n let_v i_o give_v a_o check_n to_o by_o application_n of_o a_o story_n a_o christian_a prince_n be_v much_o seduce_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o man_n who_o profess_v a_o vast_a art_n of_o give_v a_o certain_a account_n of_o many_o age_n before_o and_o a_o trifle_a courtier_n perceive_v his_o humour_n make_v he_o believe_v that_o his_o pedigree_n in_o ancient_a race_n of_o royal_a blood_n may_v be_v fetch_v from_o noah_n ark_n wherewith_o he_o be_v great_o delight_v forthwith_o lay_v aside_o all_o business_n and_o give_v himself_o to_o the_o search_n of_o the_o thing_n so_o earnest_o that_o he_o suffer_v none_o to_o interrupt_v he_o whosoever_o no_o not_o ambassador_n which_o be_v send_v to_o he_o about_o most_o weighty_a affair_n many_o marvel_v hereat_o but_o none_o dare_v speak_v their_o mind_n till_o at_o length_n his_o cook_n who_o he_o use_v sometime_o as_o his_o fool_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o thing_n he_o go_v about_o be_v nothing_o for_o his_o honour_n for_o now_o say_v he_o i_o worship_v your_o majesty_n as_o a_o god_n but_o if_o we_o go_v once_o to_o noah_n ark_n we_o must_v there_o yourself_o and_o i_o both_o be_v akin_a this_o the_o story_n which_o be_v so_o long_o that_o it_o reach_v you_o from_o top_n to_o toe_n for_o you_o will_v by_o a_o very_a long_a series_n derive_v your_o authority_n as_o it_o be_v from_o noah_n ark_n which_o you_o think_v represent_v your_o church_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n you_o will_v run_v it_o up_o from_o very_a many_o succession_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o nothing_o will_v content_v you_o but_o this_o ancient_a original_a you_o lay_v aside_o all_o other_o proof_n in_o comparison_n of_o this_o succession_n not_o so_o much_o of_o doctrine_n indeed_o as_o of_o church_n ambassador_n that_o be_v send_v to_o you_o with_o scripture_n you_o will_v not_o hear_v unless_o your_o church_n may_v have_v the_o power_n of_o interpretation_n infallible_o in_o your_o own_o cause_n but_o let_v some_o of_o the_o pope_n servant_n who_o he_o make_v his_o fool_n inform_v he_o that_o that_o which_o he_o go_v about_o be_v little_a for_o his_o honour_n for_o now_o they_o worship_v he_o as_o a_o god_n but_o if_o they_o come_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o will_v be_v find_v no_o such_o distance_n betwixt_o he_o and_o other_o and_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v express_v will_v be_v able_a to_o disinherit_v your_o point_n of_o difference_n former_o name_v with_o invocation_n of_o saint_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o do_v we_o find_v they_o where_o may_v we_o read_v they_o therefore_o urge_v not_o antiquity_n unless_o truth_n go_v along_o with_o it_o on_o your_o side_n and_o do_v not_o any_o more_o strain_v the_o consent_n of_o age_n for_o doctrine_n which_o as_o we_o may_v speak_v will_v be_v out_o of_o breath_n long_o before_o they_o come_v to_o that_o mighty_a height_n of_o the_o apostolic_a time_n as_o for_o your_o instance_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n err_v by_o persuasion_n of_o that_o which_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v scripture_n and_o st._n augustine_n crisis_n of_o his_o error_n i_o answer_v first_o you_o see_v here_o saint_n cyprian_n a_o prime_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v then_o ground_n his_o opinion_n upon_o scripture_n without_o recourse_n to_o tradition_n and_o this_o make_v for_o we_o that_o he_o think_v it_o no_o injury_n to_o the_o church_n to_o vary_v from_o what_o be_v hold_v or_o practise_v upon_o respect_n to_o scripture_n he_o undertake_v to_o think_v and_o do_v otherwise_o then_o christendom_n then_o in_o the_o point_n of_o rebaptisation_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o accuse_v as_o a_o heretic_n second_o he_o err_v gross_o and_o yet_o not_o dangerous_o because_o he_o hold_v his_o opinion_n without_o malignance_n to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o may_v we_o without_o peril_n of_o salvation_n and_o if_o you_o say_v the_o case_n be_v different_a betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o because_o that_o point_n wherein_o he_o go_v not_o with_o the_o church_n be_v not_o then_o define_v by_o a_o council_n we_o answer_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o of_o the_o time_n in_o the_o church_n before_o there_o be_v any_o council_n and_o therefore_o in_o those_o time_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o action_n be_v without_o a_o council_n and_o therefore_o this_o answer_n do_v not_o satisfy_v or_o they_o be_v rule_v only_o by_o scripture_n which_o may_v satisfy_v you_o three_o he_o err_v not_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o act_n when_o he_o plead_v scripture_n but_o in_o the_o misapplication_n of_o scripture_n to_o that_o case_n and_o therefore_o this_o argument_n come_v to_o the_o fallacy_n of_o accident_n and_o this_o make_v no_o prejudice_n against_o scripture_n which_o in_o itself_o be_v contrary_a to_o error_n without_o defectibilitie_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o indeed_o follow_v scripture_n can_v err_v because_o it_o be_v infallible_a so_o can_v we_o say_v of_o the_o church_n for_o aught_o yet_o we_o see_v by_o your_o discourse_n four_o this_o make_v no_o more_o disadvantage_n to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o scripture_n then_o that_o the_o pelagian_o for_o their_o opinion_n urge_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o cause_v saint_n austin_n to_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o they_o vobis_fw-la pelagianis_fw-la when_o you_o pelagian_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v the_o father_n speak_v more_o secure_o namely_o of_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n nay_o sure_o it_o make_v a_o great_a deal_n less_o for_o the_o father_n if_o in_o this_o he_o have_v follow_v the_o father_n who_o the_o bitagians_n quote_v have_v err_v not_o by_o his_o interpretation_n of_o they_o but_z it_o seem_v by_o their_o inconfideratenesse_n but_o we_o can_v charge_v scripture_n with_o any_o such_o fault_n and_o therefore_o saint_n cyprian_n err_v by_o misinterpretation_n and_o here_o also_o by_o the_o way_n we_o see_v how_o fallible_a a_o rule_n be_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n since_o if_o saint_n austin_n have_v order_v his_o belief_n thereby_o he_o have_v be_v overtake_v with_o pelagianism_n now_o as_o for_o saint_n augustine_n crisis_n concern_v this_o of_o saint_n cyprian_n that_o if_o he_o have_v live_v to_o see_v the_o determination_n of_o a_o plenary_a council_n he_o will_v for_o his_o great_a humility_n and_o charity_n straightway_o have_v yield_v and_o prefer_v the_o general_n council_n before_o his_o judgement_n to_o this_o beside_o what_o we_o now_o say_v about_o the_o undefinednesse_n of_o it_o by_o a_o council_n we_o say_v it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v have_v yield_v and_o this_o yet_o accrue_v not_o unto_o your_o cause_n much_o for_o first_o saint_n austin_n say_v for_o his_o great_a humility_n and_o charity_n he_o will_v have_v yield_v and_o this_o manner_n of_o expression_n you_o may_v perceive_v do_v abstract_a from_o a_o necessity_n of_o duty_n under_o bond_n of_o duty_n these_o virtue_n have_v no_o freedom_n he_o be_v so_o humble_a of_o mind_n that_o he_o will_v have_v think_v better_a of_o they_o he_o be_v so_o charitable_a that_o for_o this_o he_o will_v have_v offend_v none_o in_o this_o case_n but_o do_v this_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o sink_v his_o opinion_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o definition_n no_o no._n humility_n and_o charity_n have_v in_o they_o no_o formality_n influxive_a unto_o faith_n for_o this_o be_v seat_v in_o the_o understanding_n but_o to_o peace_n therefore_o this_o yield_n of_o his_o suppose_v upon_o the_o case_n will_v have_v only_o concern_v his_o person_n as_o not_o to_o have_v oppose_v here_o not_o his_o judgement_n as_o if_o this_o shall_v necessary_o have_v be_v overcome_v by_o their_o authority_n for_o the_o person_n may_v be_v bind_v when_o the_o conscience_n can_v be_v bind_v so_o may_v the_o person_n yield_v as_o to_o the_o omission_n of_o opposite_a act_n when_o the_o understanding_n yet_o keep_v its_o former_a due_a apprehension_n second_o this_o business_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n be_v such_o as_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o practice_n not_o clear_o decide_v by_o scripture_n but_o this_o avail_v not_o to_o a_o universal_a conclusion_n of_o rule_v our_o faith_n by_o the_o church_n which_o although_o you_o at_o the_o beginning_n do_v seem_v to_o wave_v yet_o here_o will_v in_o your_o discourse_n insinuate_v and_o wind_v in_o the_o sum_n of_o
ground_n establish_v the_o necessarinesse_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n i_o need_v go_v no_o further_o till_o this_o be_v make_v sure_o i_o need_v not_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o your_o assumption_n indeed_o if_o i_o may_v be_v so_o free_a a_o presumption_n yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v take_v it_o amiss_o or_o ill_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o to_o it_o by_o itself_o i_o shall_v not_o let_v it_o pass_v without_o some_o notice_n of_o it_o but_o what_o you_o say_v at_o first_o here_o that_o if_o we_o find_v out_o this_o judge_n we_o can_v never_o remain_v in_o any_o doubt_n for_o without_o all_o doubt_n we_o must_v stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o judge_n what_o reason_n soever_o our_o private_a judgement_n or_o discretion_n may_v suggest_v so_o you_o this_o spoil_n all_o and_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n against_o you_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v little_a else_o then_o contradictio_fw-la in_o adjecto_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v if_o we_o must_v submit_v our_o judgement_n to_o a_o infallible_a judge_n pretend_v whatsoever_o reason_n of_o scripture_n i_o mean_v we_o have_v to_o the_o contrary_a then_o there_o be_v no_o such_o judge_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o in_o our_o judgement_n to_o assent_v to_o that_o for_o which_o we_o see_v reason_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_n take_v reason_n simple_o and_o so_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o must_v quiescere_fw-la as_o the_o school_n phrase_n be_v as_o a_o principle_n because_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o aquinat_fw-la at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o sum_n but_o take_v reason_n as_o a_o instrument_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o what_o moment_n we_o find_v in_o scripture_n for_o any_o opinion_n we_o can_v sink_v in_o any_o determination_n on_o earth_n as_o far_o as_o the_o understanding_n see_v appearance_n of_o truth_n it_o do_v necessary_o leap_v and_o run_v to_o it_o and_o will_v not_o leave_v it_o for_o any_o authority_n under_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o while_o the_o reason_n of_o authority_n be_v not_o so_o clear_o draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o opinion_n in_o his_o own_o judgement_n it_o can_v give_v up_o its_o assent_n and_o if_o we_o be_v by_o duty_n to_o go_v your_o way_n of_o absolute_a credence_n to_o the_o dictate_v of_o your_o judge_n we_o must_v then_o if_o he_o say_v vice_n be_v virtue_n say_v so_o too_o as_o your_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n determin_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n cap._n 5._o and_o thus_o you_o again_o see_v whither_o your_o blind_a obedience_n will_v lead_v you_o even_o from_o darkness_n to_o darkness_n in_o the_o seven_o number_n you_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n a_o agreement_n with_o all_o heretic_n that_o have_v rise_v up_o against_o the_o church_n because_o we_o as_o all_o protestant_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n by_o which_o all_o doubt_n and_o difference_n and_o controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v with_o infallible_a authority_n to_o this_o saint_n austin_n answer_v l._n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la cap._n 38._o we_o also_o answer_v to_o this_o charge_n first_o as_o before_z that_o heretic_n have_v urge_v authority_n too_o and_o therefore_o by_o your_o argument_n you_o must_v quit_v your_o way_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o else_o grant_v we_o our_o way_n of_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o second_o do_v it_o follow_v rational_o that_o because_o the_o heretic_n have_v misapply_v scripture_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o right_o apply_v it_o if_o the_o standard_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o ill_a purpose_n of_o measure_v steal_a commodity_n therefore_o shall_v not_o other_o measure_n be_v rule_v hereby_o it_o be_v accidental_a to_o scripture_n to_o be_v thus_o abuse_v shall_v it_o therefore_o loose_v its_o proper_a privilege_n because_o as_o saint_n peter_n say_v some_o who_o be_v unlearned_a and_o unsettle_a wrist_n scripture_n to_o their_o destruction_n therefore_o those_o who_o be_v learned_a and_o settle_a may_v not_o improve_v it_o to_o their_o salvation_n because_o robber_n make_v use_v of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o action_n unrighteous_a and_o wicked_a therefore_o honest_a man_n may_v not_o use_v the_o light_n for_o their_o lawful_a employment_n be_v this_o good_a reason_n you_o have_v sure_o raise_v your_o discourse_n to_o the_o height_n if_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v not_o urge_v scripture_n because_o the_o devil_n do_v urge_v it_o unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n so_o one_o indeed_o conclude_v as_o if_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o apprehend_v what_o kind_n of_o argument_n our_o saviour_n will_v own_v and_o what_o reject_v therefore_o do_v he_o not_o set_v upon_o he_o with_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v note_v neither_o do_v christ_n reply_v upon_o he_o with_o tradition_n but_o with_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o better_a argument_n that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v our_o rule_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v be_v order_v by_o three_o the_o heretic_n do_v not_o press_v that_o which_o be_v true_a scripture_n but_o either_o corrupt_v it_o as_o tertullian_n observe_v in_o his_o prescription_n or_o take_v only_o so_o much_o as_o be_v for_o their_o use_n or_o pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o so_o that_o if_o scripture_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o sense_n they_o do_v not_o bring_v scripture_n for_o their_o proof_n but_o that_o which_o be_v not_o scripture_n four_o why_o do_v bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o your_o writer_n so_o frequent_o endeavour_v to_o uphold_v their_o doctrine_n by_o scripture_n if_o because_o the_o heretic_n use_v it_o we_o must_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o plead_v scripture_n by_o the_o traditional_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o their_o own_o interpretation_n when_o scripture_n seem_v to_o they_o to_o speak_v for_o they_o than_o they_o produce_v scripture_n but_o when_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o clear_a testimony_n against_o they_o then_o little_a respect_n be_v give_v thereunto_o five_o if_o controversy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v end_v by_o scripture_n which_o the_o heretic_n plead_v then_o how_o be_v they_o to_o be_v end_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n yes_o you_o will_v say_v but_o how_o shall_v heretic_n know_v if_o they_o doubt_v what_o or_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n it_o must_v be_v by_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o our_o last_o recourse_n must_v be_v to_o scripture_n again_o if_o heretic_n must_v be_v persuade_v by_o the_o church_n then_o be_v they_o lead_v if_o not_o by_o their_o private_a judgement_n yet_o by_o private_a judgement_n of_o other_o for_o beside_o that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o private_a man_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a if_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o scripture_n in_o way_n of_o contradistinction_n have_v itself_o by_o manner_n of_o private_a judgement_n all_o the_o public_a power_n it_o have_v it_o have_v by_o god_n and_o scripture_n then_o here_o again_o we_o must_v end_v again_o how_o shall_v heretic_n know_v that_o all_o controversy_n be_v to_o be_v end_v by_o the_o church_n they_o must_v know_v it_o either_o by_o their_o own_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n which_o you_o deny_v to_o we_o or_o by_o the_o church_n what_o in_o its_o own_o cause_n or_o by_o scripture_n so_o we_o must_v resolve_v ourselves_o in_o scripture_n analytical_o we_o must_v bottom_n there_o synthetical_o we_o must_v begin_v there_o six_o this_o practice_n of_o heretic_n if_o it_o have_v reason_n to_o make_v we_o forsake_v scripture_n have_v it_o not_o reason_n also_o to_o make_v you_o retract_v your_o expression_n of_o yourself_o as_o towards_o scripture_n that_o you_o do_v profess_v all_o reverence_n and_o all_o credit_n to_o be_v due_a to_o scripture_n as_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n insomuch_o that_o you_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v your_o life_n in_o defence_n of_o any_o thing_n contain_v herein_o will_v you_o stand_v to_o your_o word_n if_o you_o will_v then_o must_v you_o believe_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a be_v declare_v therein_o sufficient_o for_o what_o say_v the_o scripture_n by_o saint_n paul_n gal._n 1.8_o if_o i_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v to_o you_o any_o other_o doctrine_n beside_o what_o you_o have_v receive_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n and_o what_o then_o become_v of_o your_o unwritten_a word_n on_o behalf_n whereof_o you_o wise_o cry_v up_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n for_o as_o for_o the_o distinction_n of_o your_o man_n hereupon_o that_o the_o text_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o which_o be_v against_o it_o not_o of_o that_o which_o be_v beside_o it_o be_v invalid_a for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o text_n beside_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
as_o out_o of_o the_o three_o book_n chap._n 19_o be_v not_o there_o according_a to_o that_o of_o robert_n steven_n in_o greek_a which_o come_v out_o lutetiae_n parisiorum_n cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la regis_fw-la in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n indeed_o of_o the_o same_o book_n there_o be_v somewhat_o of_o josephus_n that_o he_o give_v the_o number_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o which_o be_v uncontradict_v by_o the_o ebrew_o in_o the_o same_o word_n by_o they_o teach_v as_o out_o of_o ancient_a tradition_n but_o here_o we_o have_v but_o josephus_n his_o opinion_n second_o this_o be_v but_o for_o the_o old_a testament_n not_o the_o whole_a scripture_n three_o this_o be_v but_o as_o out_o of_o tradition_n four_o you_o will_v not_o find_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n all_o your_o apocryphal_a book_n the_o number_n he_o make_v to_o be_v 22._o in_o which_o number_n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o four_o cat._n exclude_v all_o but_o baruch_n five_o after_o so_o much_o time_n which_o be_v past_a he_o say_v no_o man_n dare_v add_v or_o take_v away_o or_o change_v any_o of_o they_o and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n that_o he_o follow_v tradition_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o err_v if_o you_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a for_o he_o do_v not_o there_o speak_v of_o scripture_n your_o flourish_n then_o as_o hereupon_o must_v yet_o vanish_v and_o beside_o all_o sign_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v a_o certainty_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o evident_a sign_n it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o church_n receive_v some_o thing_n and_o hold_v they_o too_o which_o you_o will_v not_o hold_v as_o infant_n communion_n and_o the_o millenary_a opinion_n therefore_o can_v we_o not_o be_v assure_v in_o way_n of_o faith_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o falsity_n by_o the_o church_n that_o of_o saint_n austin_n will_v be_v include_v in_o the_o disquisition_n of_o the_o main_a testimony_n of_o that_o epistle_n and_o to_o your_o question_n which_o of_o the_o father_n when_o they_o be_v ask_v do_v answer_v that_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o canonical_a book_n upon_o our_o ground_n that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a paper_n of_o saint_n origen_n and_o saint_n athanasius_n remain_v good_a until_o it_o be_v answer_v in_o your_o thirteen_o number_n you_o object_n luther_n not_o see_v the_o apocalypse_v and_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n to_o be_v canonical_a by_o their_o own_o light_n we_o answer_v first_o a_o negative_a argument_n from_o one_o be_v easy_o deny_v to_o be_v cogent_a when_o we_o can_v yield_v it_o to_o the_o church_n because_o he_o do_v not_o see_v they_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o be_v see_v be_v no_o argument_n second_o you_o see_v then_o hereby_o that_o we_o do_v not_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n blind_o as_o you_o do_v the_o church_n in_o whatsoever_o it_o propose_v second_o the_o apocalypse_v be_v doubt_v of_o by_o other_o also_o as_o you_o know_v by_o ecclesiastical_a history_n although_o now_o it_o be_v universal_o receive_v so_o also_o may_v luther_n afterward_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o to_o be_v canonical_a and_o three_o also_o other_o book_n have_v be_v scruple_v notwithstanding_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o how_o be_v that_o a_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n saint_n austin_n you_o make_v use_v of_o afterward_o for_o the_o canonicalnesse_n of_o the_o macchabee_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o also_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n to_o this_o we_o need_v say_v no_o more_o than_o have_v be_v say_v save_v only_o we_o may_v hence_o observe_v how_o uncertain_a we_o be_v of_o a_o ground_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n when_o one_o say_v that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o answer_v you_o saint_n jerome_n upon_o the_o point_n as_o before_o and_o saint_n jerome_n i_o hope_v yet_o be_v a_o catholic_n and_o be_v not_o damn_v because_o he_o do_v not_o embrace_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a to_o saint_n austin_n why_o not_o to_o saint_n jerome_n or_o one_o may_v see_v that_o which_o be_v infallible_a and_o the_o other_o not_o then_o be_v your_o former_a objection_n thereby_o take_v away_o and_o you_o will_v hold_v saint_n austin_n no_o otherwise_o to_o have_v hold_v the_o macchabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a than_o he_o hold_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n to_o be_v canonical_a and_o you_o will_v hold_v that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a as_o saint_n austin_n hold_v the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n to_o be_v canonical_a this_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v agree_v to_o without_o dispute_n well_o then_o be_v please_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o what_o abatement_n and_o deducting_n may_v be_v find_v in_o saint_n austin_n upon_o the_o place_n in_o regard_n of_o equality_n of_o respect_n which_o you_o think_v he_o give_v to_o this_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o to_o canonical_a scripture_n first_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v exception_n take_v at_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o book_n even_o in_o their_o opinion_n of_o st._n augustine_n judgement_n thereupon_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v quasi_fw-la &_o excepta_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o if_o if_o this_o attestation_n be_v except_v the_o thing_n itself_o be_v not_o clear_a which_o we_o will_v have_v from_o hence_o to_o be_v teach_v namely_o this_o he_o be_v take_v away_o that_o wickedness_n may_v not_o alter_v his_o understanding_n which_o saint_n cyprian_a he_o say_v have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o when_o he_o have_v discourse_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o sentence_n he_o infer_v which_o thing_n be_v so_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v which_o have_v merit_v to_o be_v read_v of_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o degree_n of_o reader_n of_o the_o church_n by_o so_o long_a antiquity_n and_o then_o follow_v your_o word_n only_o you_o may_v excuse_v i_o if_o second_o i_o be_v a_o little_a critical_a for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v there_o that_o it_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o but_o it_o be_v hear_v of_o all_o with_o veneration_n of_o divine_a authority_n if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n why_o do_v you_o not_o use_v the_o word_n if_o you_o do_v falsify_v than_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v some_o difference_n and_o outward_o they_o may_v give_v respect_n to_o it_o as_o canonical_a although_o whether_o in_o their_o apprehension_n they_o do_v esteem_v it_o as_o such_o may_v be_v a_o question_n but_o three_o you_o see_v it_o here_o to_o be_v somewhat_o distinguish_v from_o book_n canonical_a and_o to_o depend_v upon_o prescription_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n four_o those_o who_o be_v tractatour_n next_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v prefer_v this_o book_n before_o themselves_o which_o use_v this_o as_o a_o witness_n do_v believe_v that_o they_o bring_v no_o other_o than_o a_o divine_a testimony_n so_o the_o father_n whereby_o be_v intimate_v that_o this_o be_v as_o deutero_fw-la canonical_a as_o it_o be_v express_v and_o not_o of_o proper_a name_n canonical_a and_o also_o herein_o be_v signify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o again_o this_o book_n have_v merit_v to_o be_v read_v by_o so_o great_a a_o numerositie_n of_o year_n and_o afterward_o he_o call_v this_o sentence_n ancient_o christian_n so_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n you_o see_v some_o difference_n make_v betwixt_o this_o book_n and_o other_o by_o themselves_o canonical_a 14._o de_fw-fr predestinatione_fw-la sancto_fw-it rum_o cap._n 14._o peruse_v then_o the_o whole_a chapter_n and_o you_o will_v see_v how_o little_a advantage_n you_o can_v make_v thereof_o indeed_o there_o be_v in_o the_o chapter_n a_o word_n which_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o i_o have_v render_v according_a to_o your_o mind_n it_o be_v mereri_fw-la and_o yet_o i_o think_v i_o have_v interpret_v it_o discreet_o by_o merit_v that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o same_o latitude_n but_o i_o put_v you_o to_o your_o choice_n how_o the_o father_n use_v the_o word_n you_o know_v for_o obtain_v but_o if_o you_o will_v have_v it_o here_o to_o be_v construe_v by_o plain_a deserve_n than_o we_o have_v a_o argument_n against_o you_o for_o if_o the_o book_n deserve_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n than_o be_v it_o not_o account_v as_o divine_a and_o canonical_a because_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n because_o it_o do_v deserve_v it_o by_o the_o matter_n if_o you_o will_v not_o understand_v it_o here_o of_o plain_a deserve_n then_o
judge_n be_v there_o no_o more_o likelihood_n of_o a_o figurative_a sense_n in_o the_o word_n than_o there_o be_v of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o accident_n without_o the_o subject_a or_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o in_o thousand_o of_o place_n at_o once_o but_o you_o contend_v the_o improbability_n of_o this_o sense_n because_o he_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n sure_o this_o make_v no_o prejudice_n against_o we_o for_o this_o be_v necessary_a towards_o the_o consecrate_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o that_o wine_n otherwise_o there_o will_v have_v be_v a_o consecration_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o communi_fw-la and_o therefore_o he_o speak_v demonstrative_o and_o this_o demonstration_n make_v the_o subject_a no_o less_o capable_a of_o a_o figure_n then_o the_o predicate_v and_o what_o difference_n behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n or_o this_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n so_o in_o the_o 9_o to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o 20._o verse_n moses_n have_v take_v the_o blood_n of_o calf_n and_o goat_n say_v this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n be_v that_o blood_n transubstantiate_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o when_o one_o take_v his_o testament_n may_v he_o not_o say_v this_o be_v my_o will_n although_o it_o be_v but_o the_o sign_n of_o his_o will._n you_o take_v notice_n also_o of_o the_o different_a opinion_n there_o be_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o take_v it_o to_o ourselves_o who_o have_v not_o such_o variety_n of_o conceit_n therein_o neither_o can_v you_o i_o be_o sure_a justify_v your_o infallibility_n by_o your_o accord_n herein_o since_o some_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v transubstantiate_v and_o therefore_o have_v they_o a_o proviso_n of_o a_o conditionate_n adoration_n adoro_fw-la te_fw-la si_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la christus_fw-la and_o so_o many_o among_o you_o differ_v about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o change_n whether_o by_o production_n which_o suppose_v as_o be_v note_v the_o body_n not_o to_o praeexiste_v and_o this_o be_v false_a or_o by_o adduction_n which_o suppose_v against_o transubstantiation_n or_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o conservative_n conversion_n which_o be_v little_a else_o then_o a_o contradiction_n in_o adjecto_fw-la therefore_o answer_v yourself_o how_o be_v it_o more_o clear_o define_v by_o the_o church_n which_o be_v scarce_o in_o debate_n till_o the_o time_n of_o berengarius_fw-la do_v the_o church_n all_o that_o while_o want_v necessary_n to_o salvation_n but_o last_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v plead_v scripture_n for_o this_o point_n on_o your_o side_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v scotus_n and_o your_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n who_o say_v that_o scotus_n hold_v transubstantiation_n can_v not_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o he_o himself_o think_v it_o not_o improbable_a therefore_o herein_o you_o can_v in_o their_o judgement_n convince_v we_o by_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o till_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a it_o be_v no_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v not_o before_o the_o lateran_n council_n as_o scotus_n affirm_v by_o beauties_n confession_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr sacramento_n eucharistia_n but_o if_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o declare_v in_o scripture_n than_o our_o opinion_n negative_a to_o you_o be_v more_o secure_a and_o be_v not_o conclude_v not_o to_o be_v in_o scripture_n though_o you_o or_o other_o will_v not_o profess_v it_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o your_o 15._o number_n you_o go_v over_o a_o former_a argument_n again_o to_o which_o the_o former_a answer_n may_v serve_v as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o your_o paragraph_n concern_v all_o the_o point_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n creed_n which_o be_v not_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o will_v be_v save_v must_v think_v thus_o i_o answer_v although_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o be_v not_o in_o terminis_fw-la find_v in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o according_a to_o aequivalence_n may_v as_o well_o as_o transubstantiation_n when_o you_o will_v endeavour_v to_o make_v it_o out_o by_o scripture_n second_o although_o we_o believe_v what_o be_v say_v in_o his_o creed_n yet_o therefore_o be_v we_o not_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n since_o he_o will_v have_v hold_v it_o although_o the_o church_n have_v not_o as_o he_o do_v sometime_o differ_v from_o the_o common_a profession_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 16._o paragraph_n you_o say_v somewhat_o which_o you_o have_v say_v before_o to_o it_o we_o say_v nothing_o but_o you_o raise_v a_o new_a opposition_n baptism_n of_o child_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n be_v a_o prime_a point_n of_o belief_n and_o yet_o you_o can_v believe_v this_o prime_a point_n of_o belief_n by_o any_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o you_o mean_v all_o necessary_a point_n be_v not_o clear_o believe_v by_o scripture_n therefore_o by_o the_o church_n this_o must_v be_v your_o dissertation_n and_o your_o minor_a proposition_n you_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n austin_n we_o answer_v first_o to_o your_o major_n by_o distinguish_v a_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n in_o general_n it_o be_v necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o precept_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o mean_a to_o the_o child_n so_o as_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o baptize_v it_o be_v undoubted_o damn_v the_o former_a respect_n the_o parent_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o it_o for_o their_o child_n but_o if_o they_o do_v not_o or_o the_o child_n be_v take_v away_o as_o many_o be_v before_o it_o can_v be_v do_v by_o a_o lawful_a minister_n we_o can_v conclude_v it_o or_o they_o absolute_o perish_v since_o it_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o age_n at_o the_o primitive_a institution_n saint_n mark_v the_o 16.16_o whosoever_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v not_o also_o and_o be_v not_o baptise_a for_o many_o there_o be_v and_o case_n may_v be_v put_v that_o there_o may_v be_v more_o which_o can_v not_o have_v baptism_n before_o they_o die_v as_o appear_v by_o your_o vicarium_fw-la baptisma_fw-la which_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o then_o though_o we_o may_v well_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o if_o infant_n right_o baptise_a die_v such_o they_o be_v certain_o save_v yet_o can_v we_o not_o as_o reasonable_o pass_v the_o verdict_n of_o damnation_n upon_o those_o which_o be_v not_o baptise_a as_o to_o your_o assumption_n we_o also_o distinguish_v if_o you_o mean_v we_o can_v believe_v this_o poedobaptisme_n by_o any_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n namely_o in_o terminis_fw-la terminantibus_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v express_o we_o grant_v it_o but_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o your_o purpose_n and_o if_o you_o mean_v it_o can_v be_v clear_o believe_v because_o by_o consequence_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v or_o because_o it_o can_v be_v clear_o believe_v since_o it_o be_v believe_v by_o consequence_n then_o we_o deny_v your_o assumption_n in_o both_o regard_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_o infer_v from_o scripture_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o principle_n and_o therefore_o clear_o we_o may_v believe_v it_o now_o the_o institution_n of_o baptism_n in_o general_n by_o christ_n the_o substitution_n of_o it_o to_o circumcision_n since_o there_o be_v the_o same_o covenant_n in_o substance_n to_o both_o testament_n be_v a_o sufficient_a principle_n to_o infer_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n of_o infant_n beside_o what_o may_v be_v suppose_v by_o baptise_v whole_a family_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v in_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o no_o object_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n and_o therefore_o saint_n augustine_n testimony_n will_v come_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o though_o they_o have_v nothing_o for_o certain_a allege_v out_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n in_o this_o point_n yet_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n be_v keep_v when_o they_o do_v that_o which_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n namely_o so_o far_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n keep_v the_o truth_n in_o clear_v that_o which_o be_v not_o plain_a in_o scripture_n which_o church_n the_o scripture_n do_v commend_v as_o he_o but_o be_v it_o commend_v for_o infallibility_n if_o not_o this_o testimony_n and_o all_o your_o testimony_n and_o all_o your_o instance_n which_o you_o have_v of_o thing_n not_o determine_v in_o scripture_n but_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n will_v do_v you_o no_o good_a for_o you_o
must_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v infallible_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n because_o you_o will_v conclude_v your_o postulate_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n now_o than_o if_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o infallible_o determine_v the_o instance_n thereof_o be_v of_o no_o use_n to_o you_o and_o you_o may_v consider_v that_o we_o may_v in_o thing_n of_o practice_n which_o in_o their_o nature_n be_v of_o free_a observation_n as_o be_v neither_o command_v or_o forbid_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o shall_v follow_v the_o church_n therefore_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o a_o issue_n either_o this_o poedobaptisme_n be_v infallible_o follow_v by_o the_o church_n or_o not_o if_o infallible_o it_o be_v so_o by_o the_o moment_n of_o paedobaptism_n in_o scripture_n although_o not_o perspicuous_a if_o not_o infallible_o yet_o may_v they_o follow_v the_o church_n and_o shall_v in_o this_o case_n because_o if_o it_o have_v be_v free_a to_o they_o to_o have_v do_v so_o or_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o thing_n yet_o shall_v they_o have_v go_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_a much_o more_o shall_v they_o conform_v in_o this_o which_o have_v that_o reason_n in_o the_o analogy_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n need_v not_o move_v we_o wheresoever_o we_o find_v it_o for_o i_o can_v find_v it_o by_o your_o direction_n give_v i_o some_o better_a direction_n to_o find_v the_o follow_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o most_o true_a and_o inviolable_a rule_n of_o truth_n reduplicative_o namely_o upon_o its_o own_o account_n and_o in_o thing_n necessary_a then_o i_o shall_v say_v more_o or_o yield_v he_o hold_v therefore_o you_o say_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o infallible_a that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o ground_n of_o faith_n here_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v say_v first_o that_o he_o hold_v so_o of_o tradition_n which_o by_o other_o testimony_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v since_o second_o he_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o therefore_o of_o tradition_n since_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n austin_n do_v not_o draw_v after_o they_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n in_o your_o sense_n which_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o write_a word_n as_o this_o do_v for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o and_o you_o believe_v saint_n paul_n teach_v he_o so_o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o 2.15_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v premise_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n not_o depend_v upon_o the_o word_n write_v do_v oblige_v faith_n equal_o to_o scripture_n now_o we_o say_v that_o these_o tradition_n may_v respect_v order_n and_o ceremony_n or_o history_n and_o so_o come_v not_o within_o compass_n of_o the_o question_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n second_o though_o it_o will_v not_o please_v estius_n upon_o the_o place_n yet_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n which_o be_v first_o preach_v then_o write_v and_o then_o shall_v hold_v it_o or_o they_o as_o first_o preach_v then_o write_v and_o this_o be_v a_o second_o answer_n in_o the_o place_n do_v come_v into_o our_o question_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o the_o syriack_n render_v it_o mandate_n commandment_n which_o do_v not_o signify_v formal_o matter_n of_o faith_n three_o the_o thessalonian_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o what_o they_o have_v from_o he_o by_o word_n be_v such_o as_o they_o shall_v believe_v equal_o to_o what_o be_v write_v but_o so_o can_v we_o be_v of_o your_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o you_o say_v be_v hand_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n make_v we_o as_o sure_a of_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o communication_n to_o we_o then_o urge_v our_o obedience_n equal_a and_o this_o will_v give_v you_o a_o account_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o place_n who_o mean_v not_o otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v from_o god_n by_o he_o whether_o in_o word_n or_o writing_n they_o shall_v hold_v which_o they_o can_v believe_v we_o can_v not_o for_o such_o tradition_n have_v n●t_o that_o certainty_n of_o they_o read_v the_o whole_a of_o he_o upon_o that_o text_n and_o also_o do_v not_o pass_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o modesty_n herein_o we_o may_v think_v it_o worthy_a of_o belief_n namely_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o whether_o he_o mean_v it_o of_o thing_n of_o discipline_n and_o order_n wherein_o we_o deny_v not_o conformity_n to_o the_o church_n we_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o but_o there_o come_v not_o up_o to_o our_o question_n for_o they_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n and_o do_v not_o equal_o oblige_v and_o hitherto_o now_o you_o have_v go_v about_o to_o assure_v christian_n of_o a_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n now_o in_o your_o 17._o paragr_n you_o will_v assume_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o judge_n then_o the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o catholic_a prudent_o the_o text_n you_o name_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v that_o of_o saint_n matthew_n in_o his_o 16_o chap._n the_o 18_o verse_n i_o say_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v to_o s._n peter_n by_o name_n thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o now_o sure_o you_o be_v at_o your_o strong_a hold_n which_o you_o think_v can_v be_v undermine_v or_o storm_v true_a if_o your_o application_n of_o it_o be_v as_o sure_a as_o it_o but_o we_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o answer_v you_o in_o this_o assault_n first_o we_o deny_v your_o interpretation_n of_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n you_o interpret_v the_o greek_a that_o be_v a_o rock_n it_o be_v deny_v the_o greek_a word_n do_v not_o ordinary_o and_o not_o here_o signify_v a_o rock_n and_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o take_v this_o argument_n cephas_n signify_v a_o stone_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d petrus_n signify_v as_o cephas_n therefore_o a_o stone_n both_o proposition_n you_o have_v prove_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o s._n john_n 1.42_o 43._o as_o in_o the_o syriack_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n that_o be_v a_o stone_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o the_o greek_a which_o be_v interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o stone_n and_o because_o cephas_n be_v know_v in_o siriack_a to_o signify_v a_o stone_n therefore_o the_o syriack_n do_v not_o add_v these_o word_n which_o be_v interpret_v and_o that_o petrus_n signify_v as_o cephas_n you_o have_v there_o for_o cephas_n be_v interpret_v by_o petrus_n therefore_o your_o interpretation_n be_v not_o right_a second_o if_o you_o say_v as_o you_o do_v before_o that_o the_o hebrew_n be_v the_o original_a of_o saint_n matthew_n gospel_n then_o be_v you_o not_o near_o oblige_v to_o the_o syriack_n which_o be_v but_o a_o dialect_n thereof_o nay_o likely_a the_o very_a dialect_n of_o hebrew_n wherein_o it_o be_v first_o write_v if_o not_o in_o greek_a and_o then_o not_o only_o can_v you_o not_o interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o rock_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neither_o and_o than_o you_o can_v render_v the_o follow_a word_n as_o you_o do_v and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o syriack_n be_v letter_n for_o letter_n the_o same_o both_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o word_n which_o you_o render_v a_o rock_n be_v the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d both_o and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v stand_v to_o the_o syriack_n it_o will_v come_v to_o this_o thou_o be_v a_o stone_n and_o upon_o this_o stone_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o this_o will_v have_v fair_a correspondence_n with_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n in_o the_o same_o metaphor_n ephes_n 2.20_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n so_o that_o the_o privilege_n of_o saint_n peter_n here_o be_v only_o this_o to_o lay_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o stone_n in_o this_o foundation_n nay_o three_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o new_a testament_n more_o than_o once_o signify_v a_o stone_n rom._n 9_o last_o it_o be_v synonymical_o join_v there_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v join_v also_o to_o the_o same_o metaphor_n in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o this_o must_v signify_v a_o
formality_n of_o speech_n do_v import_v a_o promise_n in_o the_o future_a not_o a_o duty_n in_o the_o subjunctive_a yet_o the_o promise_n do_v not_o include_v a_o impossibility_n of_o error_n no_o more_o than_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o your_o church_n as_o you_o suppose_v do_v exclude_v all_o error_n but_o that_o which_o be_v destructive_a three_o the_o future_a in_o the_o hebrew_n do_v not_o contradict_v a_o subjunctive_a in_o the_o interpretation_n when_o the_o scope_n bear_v it_o since_o the_o hebrew_n as_o you_o may_v know_v have_v no_o proper_a subjunctive_a and_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o scope_n to_o understand_v it_o as_o of_o duty_n they_o shall_v keep_v knowledge_n whereupon_o ●●ey_n be_v charge_v for_o breach_n of_o duty_n therefore_o our_o interpretation_n in_o this_o be_v more_o sound_a than_o your_o dispute_n upon_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o which_o you_o say_v in_o your_o 19_o number_n that_o any_o man_n may_v ask_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v the_o know_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n &_o then_o let_v he_o rest_v secure_o when_o he_o know_v that_o that_o be_v unreasonable_a because_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o infallible_a may_v he_o not_o rest_v more_o secure_o in_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o as_o before_o infallible_a the_o scripture_n be_v in_o all_o which_o it_o propose_v but_o the_o church_n you_o say_v be_v not_o in_o danger_n of_o take_v in_o any_o damnative_a error_n well_o but_o the_o scripture_n set_v out_o none_o at_o all_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o determine_v in_o scripture_n well_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o determine_v in_o the_o church_n but_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n which_o may_v keep_v we_o from_o damnative_a error_n well_o and_o be_v not_o all_o thing_n necessary_a teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n why_o then_o not_o to_o the_o law_n and_o testimony_n why_o to_o the_o cistern_n when_o we_o may_v have_v it_o at_o the_o fountain_n why_o not_o to_o the_o scripture_n particular_o when_o what_o authority_n the_o church_n have_v it_o have_v from_o the_o scripture_n in_o general_n and_o why_o do_v your_o church_n take_v away_o from_o the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o scripture_n and_o why_o may_v not_o we_o be_v inform_v as_o sufficient_o by_o our_o priest_n as_o you_o by_o you_o notwithstanding_o this_o text_n especial_o since_o we_o go_v by_o scripture_n you_o by_o tradition_n or_o humane_a definition_n and_o if_o the_o priest_n of_o you_o be_v infallible_a can_v you_o say_v infallible_o that_o they_o will_v not_o deceive_v you_o how_o miserable_o then_o do_v you_o provide_v for_o the_o poor_a people_n when_o you_o will_v have_v they_o require_v at_o their_o mouth_n not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o come_v on_o in_o the_o same_o number_n about_o tradition_n before_o scripture_n be_v answer_v before_o it_o be_v write_v the_o word_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v beget_v by_o it_o and_o when_o there_o be_v now_o as_o much_o need_n and_o as_o great_a certainty_n of_o tradition_n as_o former_o then_o urge_v it_o and_o i_o thank_v you_o for_o saint_n irenaeus_n testimony_n i_o do_v not_o lie_v at_o catch_n but_o the_o most_o convince_a dispute_n be_v by_o our_o adversary_n principle_n not_o the_o father_n but_o you_o as_o you_o apply_v they_o for_o we_o can_v make_v very_o good_a use_n of_o his_o word_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o we_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v tradition_n more_o certain_o convey_v to_o we_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v before_o it_o be_v write_v and_o this_o confirm_v for_o i_o what_o be_v say_v before_o but_o now_o i_o assume_v the_o scripture_n be_v now_o leave_v to_o we_o therefore_o be_v there_o no_o need_n of_o certain_a conveyance_n of_o tradition_n to_o we_o sure_o you_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o help_v we_o for_o your_o own_o good_a neither_o can_v we_o believe_v that_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n you_o speak_v of_o do_v rely_v only_o upon_o tradition_n they_o may_v be_v commend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o tradition_n and_o then_o not_o believe_v it_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o tradition_n for_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n tradition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unwritten_a be_v of_o equal_a authority_n to_o scripture_n second_o if_o you_o say_v salvation_n be_v write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o may_v be_v mean_v to_o be_v do_v not_o only_o beside_o scripture_n but_o beside_o tradition_n and_o thus_o be_v it_o do_v extraordinary_o but_o why_o three_o may_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n infuse_v faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n into_o those_o nation_n by_o some_o of_o those_o who_o be_v apostle_n or_o send_v from_o they_o to_o preach_v it_o and_o then_o the_o tradition_n you_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v write_v and_o so_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o question_n of_o tradition_n of_o proper_a name_n which_o you_o say_v be_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v write_v though_o not_o against_o it_o and_o then_o your_o discourse_n be_v fallacious_a from_o that_o which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o gospel_n deliver_v to_o that_o which_o be_v beside_o it_o deliver_v which_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n tradition_n if_o it_o do_v deceive_v you_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o consequent_o deceive_v i_o but_o if_o you_o mean_v tradition_n here_o only_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o communicate_v the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n without_o writing_n than_o the_o former_a answer_n may_v satisfy_v you_o that_o tradition_n be_v then_o more_o certain_a and_o they_o be_v more_o assure_v of_o it_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n than_o we_o be_v now_o and_o also_o it_o may_v be_v to_o they_o as_o the_o star_n to_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o lead_v they_o to_o christ_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o star_n they_o be_v guide_v to_o christ_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o he_o they_o see_v he_o not_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o star_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o day_n so_o some_o may_v be_v direct_v to_o the_o gospel_n by_o tradition_n before_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n and_o then_o believe_v it_o by_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n you_o add_v also_o neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n or_o their_o successor_n take_v any_o care_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n communicate_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o such_o language_n as_o they_o can_v all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n understand_v so_o you_o this_o be_v ready_o deny_v for_o god_n do_v take_v care_n that_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o it_o at_o least_o be_v first_o write_v in_o greek_a and_o the_o greek_a you_o know_v in_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v contradistinguish_v to_o the_o jew_n because_o so_o many_o of_o the_o world_n beside_o the_o jew_n be_v greek_n and_o the_o greek_n language_n be_v the_o most_o common_a then_o and_o therefore_o say_v tully_n in_o his_o oration_n for_o the_o poet_n archias_n graeca_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la leguntur_fw-la and_o god_n by_o his_o gracious_a providence_n have_v take_v care_n that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v translate_v into_o divers_a language_n as_o you_o may_v know_v that_o so_o several_a nation_n may_v have_v it_o familiar_a to_o they_o in_o their_o own_o tongue_n which_o must_v condemn_v your_o church_n for_o not_o permit_v of_o it_o ordinary_o to_o the_o people_n in_o their_o own_o dialect_n and_o also_o do_v conclude_v that_o tradition_n be_v no_o infallible_a provision_n for_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o how_o shall_v the_o people_n undoubted_o know_v that_o the_o tradition_n be_v clear_o discern_v true_a from_o they_o which_o be_v false_a and_o also_o that_o they_o be_v faithful_o hand_v through_o so_o many_o century_n to_o the_o present_a time_n and_o yet_o if_o so_o this_o will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a for_o your_o use_n unless_o you_o or_o other_o can_v find_v these_o two_o point_n more_o one_o how_o to_o evade_v a_o circle_n by_o prove_v the_o tradition_n by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n by_o the_o tradition_n and_o the_o second_o this_o that_o those_o tradition_n have_v infallible_o decide_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o we_o which_o the_o ancient_n do_v not_o profess_o handle_v as_o have_v not_o provocation_n thereunto_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v touch_v by_o the_o by_o you_o may_v know_v the_o rule_n aliud_fw-la agentis_fw-la parva_fw-la autoritas_fw-la in_o your_o 20._o number_n you_o make_v a_o recapitulation_n of_o what_o you_o think_v you_o have_v do_v and_o i_o think_v you_o have_v undo_v until_o you_o come_v to_o sixthly_a i_o have_v find_v a_o lawful_a judge_n who_o can_v be_v inform_v of_o all_o controversy_n
the_o not_o be_v a_o rule_n upon_o this_o account_n the_o tradition_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n can_v be_v a_o rule_n because_o they_o have_v be_v abuse_v three_o we_o do_v not_o intend_v the_o use_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o rest_v in_o that_o upon_o a_o interpretation_n nor_o do_v we_o oppose_v it_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o say_v this_o must_v be_v satisfy_v in_o article_n and_o matter_n of_o faith_n notwithstanding_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n by_o consonance_n thereof_o to_o scripture_n otherwise_o it_o can_v give_v the_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n every_o one_o must_v be_v persuade_v in_o his_o own_o mind_n although_o he_o do_v not_o make_v his_o own_o sense_n this_o private_a judgement_n shall_v neither_o be_v blind_a nor_o heady_a it_o respect_v authority_n but_o join_v only_o with_o appearance_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o which_o you_o say_v to_o the_o seven_o answer_n be_v examine_v before_o that_o which_o you_o say_v to_o the_o eight_o answer_n will_v not_o serve_v to_o save_v you_o from_o differ_v from_o yourself_o which_o indeed_o if_o it_o be_v in_o way_n of_o retractation_n will_v not_o be_v reprehensible_a as_o saint_n austin_n speak_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o retractation_n neque_fw-la enim_fw-la nisi_fw-la imprudens_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o neither_o will_v any_o but_o a_o unwise_a man_n reprehend_v i_o because_o i_o reprehend_v my_o error_n but_o if_o you_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o see_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o you_o and_o you_o you_o may_v thus_o before_o you_o say_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o believe_v be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n since_o you_o have_v say_v in_o your_o second_o paper_n that_o it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n why_o do_v you_o not_o keep_v your_o term_n as_o a_o disputant_n shall_v do_v but_o you_o say_v your_o reply_n be_v exceed_o easy_a the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v god_n reveal_v and_o god_n reveal_v by_o his_o church_n as_o he_o first_o cause_v our_o first_o belief_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o by_o his_o church_n such_o and_o such_o book_n be_v infallible_o his_o word_n so_o you_o now_o then_o if_o you_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o cause_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o although_o god_n do_v reveal_v by_o his_o church_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o ground_n of_o faith_n but_o god_n authority_n for_o the_o church_n be_v but_o as_o a_o messenger_n or_o ambassador_n which_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v for_o himself_o but_o for_o his_o letter_n of_o credence_n from_o his_o master_n and_o so_o be_v it_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o be_v make_v out_o by_o that_o you_o say_v to_o compound_v your_o variance_n you_o say_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v god_n reveal_v and_o god_n reveal_v by_o his_o church_n as_o he_o first_o cause_v our_o first_o belief_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o by_o his_o church_n such_o and_o such_o book_n be_v infallible_o his_o word_n then_o the_o authority_n be_v he_o whereby_o we_o believe_v and_o not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v but_o ministerial_a and_o by_o your_o own_o argument_n be_v you_o undo_v for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n because_o by_o the_o church_n we_o believe_v such_o and_o such_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a as_o you_o have_v say_v before_o and_o also_o here_o below_o in_o this_o reply_n to_o my_o eight_o answer_n then_o also_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n because_o we_o must_v first_o believe_v god_n authority_n reveal_v it_o to_o his_o church_n before_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o argument_n of_o you_o here_o it_o be_v false_a for_o we_o must_v first_o believe_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n as_o such_o have_v all_o from_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o therefore_o by_o your_o own_o argument_n be_v you_o undo_v again_o for_o if_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v first_o than_o the_o scripture_n not_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n may_v be_v dispute_v not_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o do_v understand_v by_o way_n of_o intelligence_n through_o a_o supernatural_a light_n and_o can_v demonstrate_v as_o we_o may_v the_o church_n by_o principle_n of_o scripture_n again_o you_o seem_v to_o differ_v from_o yourself_o because_o now_o you_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o all_o particular_n causal_o because_o by_o it_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n but_o before_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o catholic_n which_o you_o mean_v general_o must_v consist_v in_o submit_v his_o understanding_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n and_o in_o believe_v every_o thing_n because_o she_o propose_v it_o so_o your_o first_o paper_n in_o terminis_fw-la terminantibus_fw-la but_o now_o when_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n we_o may_v believe_v that_o which_o be_v plain_a in_o it_o by_o itself_o because_o it_o say_v it_o not_o because_o the_o church_n say_v it_o do_v not_o you_o now_o somewhat_o yield_v not_o to_o i_o but_o to_o truth_n truth_n will_v be_v too_o hard_a for_o any_o one_o that_o have_v not_o commit_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o also_o will_v it_o be_v too_o hard_a for_o he_o though_o he_o deny_v it_o consider_v then_o what_o you_o have_v say_v and_o what_o you_o think_v and_o judge_v how_o the_o master_n of_o your_o church_n will_v answer_v it_o at_o god_n tribunal_n for_o that_o everlasting_a cheat_v of_o simple_a soul_n with_o the_o mystery_n of_o implicit_a faith_n and_o that_o also_o which_o you_o so_o much_o repeat_v that_o we_o must_v receive_v canonical_a book_n by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o grow_v beyond_o the_o height_n of_o a_o postulate_v it_o have_v be_v often_o deny_v you_o upon_o necessity_n and_o it_o do_v not_o obtain_v it_o seem_v universal_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n or_o else_o some_o of_o your_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v not_o account_v canonical_a for_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o four_o catechese_n where_o he_o speak_v in_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o account_v not_o in_o the_o number_n the_o maccabee_n you_o speak_v of_o nor_o some_o other_o yea_o for_o the_o reception_n of_o book_n canonical_a saint_n jerome_n give_v another_o reason_n of_o embrace_v but_o four_o gospel_n in_o his_o preface_n upon_o the_o comment_n upon_o saint_n matthew_n not_o because_o the_o church_n own_v no_o more_o as_o you_o will_v have_v saint_n austin_n to_o be_v understand_v but_o he_o do_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v but_o four_o by_o compare_n of_o that_o of_o ezekiel_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n about_o the_o four_o beast_n which_o do_v represent_v as_o he_o interpret_v their_o meaning_n the_o four_o evangelist_n you_o go_v on_o and_o say_v god_n reveal_v be_v always_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n before_o every_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o propose_v by_o the_o church_n because_o she_o propose_v it_o so_o that_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v as_o propose_v by_o the_o church_n under_o that_o consideration_n but_o sometime_o god_n reveal_v his_o mind_n by_o scripture_n sometime_o by_o the_o church_n as_o he_o do_v two_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v so_o you_o well_o then_o now_o he_o reveal_v himself_o by_o scripture_n contradistinct_o to_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o church_n contradistinct_o to_o scripture_n which_o you_o put_v in_o one_o behalf_n of_o your_o unwritten_a word_n so_o then_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o immediate_o by_o scripture_n but_o whether_o we_o can_v believe_v he_o immediate_o by_o tradition_n without_o scripture_n want_v conviction_n neither_o do_v you_o exhibit_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o opinion_n by_o that_o which_o follow_v that_o for_o two_o thousand_o year_n and_o upward_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v he_o reveal_v himself_o by_o the_o church_n this_o as_o before_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o sustain_v traditional_a doctrine_n because_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v before_o it_o be_v write_v but_o you_o can_v evince_v that_o the_o word_n not_o write_v be_v as_o certain_a to_o we_o as_o the_o word_n before_o it_o be_v write_v be_v unto_o they_o and_o the_o reason_n may_v be_v take_v from_o
god_n wise_a dispensation_n to_o his_o church_n then_o when_o there_o be_v no_o word_n write_v he_o will_v provide_v that_o that_o whereby_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v rule_v shall_v be_v extraordinary_o convey_v and_o preserve_v but_o now_o when_o there_o be_v a_o word_n write_v which_o be_v a_o most_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o such_o cause_n of_o any_o word_n beside_o it_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o do_v liberal_o grant_v than_o this_o be_v now_o a_o rule_n not_o only_o inclusive_o but_o exclusive_o for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o as_o large_a as_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v rule_v and_o then_o they_o will_v not_o agree_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o relative_n and_o so_o it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n for_o indeed_o the_o property_n of_o a_o rule_n do_v not_o only_o exclude_v less_o but_o also_o more_o it_o speak_v against_o add_v to_o it_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n necessary_a in_o themselves_o as_o well_o as_o against_o the_o negative_a of_o not_o order_v they_o by_o it_o but_o then_o again_o your_o former_a reason_n be_v inconcludent_a because_o god_n reveal_v himself_o to_o his_o church_n several_o before_o he_o reveal_v himself_o by_o his_o church_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n universal_o hold_v namely_o by_o the_o church_n even_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o therefore_o much_o less_o do_v it_o now_o bound_v when_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v write_v show_v the_o like_a inspiration_n to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o prophet_n have_v by_o some_o infallible_a way_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n absolute_o undisputed_o without_o possibility_n of_o contradiction_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n in_o whatsoever_o it_o please_v to_o assert_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n to_o be_v believe_v equal_o to_o scripture_n and_o then_o a_o council_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v without_o scripture_n as_o the_o nicene_n you_o mean_v be_v not_o believe_v or_o to_o be_v believe_v without_o for_o it_o do_v determine_v by_o it_o and_o by_o that_o text_n i_o name_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o which_o saint_n athanasius_n do_v apply_v to_o that_o question_n four_o time_n in_o that_o epistle_n you_o name_v and_o if_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o saint_n peter_n successor_n as_o you_o imagine_v have_v that_o transient_a gift_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n as_o saint_n peter_n have_v than_o you_o may_v say_v peter_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o leo_n as_o infallible_o as_o god_n speak_v by_o he_o then_o the_o arrian_n have_v as_o good_a a_o plea_n for_o their_o opinion_n as_o athanasius_n have_v for_o they_o urge_v the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o more_o council_n as_o athanasius_n mention_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n if_o what_o be_v say_v by_o the_o church_n must_v be_v true_a than_o athanasius_n must_v have_v change_v his_o opinion_n or_o if_o you_o will_v have_v always_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o infallible_a definition_n bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o all_o christian_n to_o believe_v it_o as_o gospel_n then_o must_v we_o believe_v that_o what_o he_o define_v be_v infallible_o true_a what_o because_o he_o can_v err_v no_o more_o than_o those_o forty_o pope_n which_o bellarmin_n speak_v of_o in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n from_o the_o 8._o chapter_n to_o the_o 15._o who_o have_v be_v as_o he_o say_v accuse_v of_o error_n and_o some_o whereof_z none_o can_v say_v that_o all_o the_o distinction_n and_o provision_n which_o have_v be_v devise_v for_o this_o purpose_n can_v possible_o justify_v pope_n zephyrine_n a_o montanist_n than_o he_o err_v if_o not_o a_o montanist_n than_o tertullian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v liberius_n as_o before_o a_o arrian_n so_o athanasius_n so_o jerome_n so_o damasus_n of_o he_o and_o damasus_n can_v not_o err_v as_o you_o hold_v yet_o a_o arrian_n be_v sure_o in_o error_n be_v he_o not_o honorius_n be_v erroneous_a too_o and_o he_o speak_v of_o in_o a_o former_a paper_n he_o a_o monothelite_n as_o melchior_n canus_n say_v some_o catholic_n hold_v and_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o synod_n the_o six_o the_o seven_o the_o eight_o and_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o epistle_n of_o pope_n if_o all_o there_o be_v deceive_v how_o shall_v we_o believe_v authority_n of_o man_n as_o for_o gregory_n the_o three_o bellarmin_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n do_v open_o say_v well_fw-mi certe_fw-la pontificem_fw-la ex_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la lapsum_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la posse_fw-la pontificibus_fw-la accidere_fw-la non_fw-la negamus_fw-la so_o he_o then_o do_v you_o reconcile_v error_n by_o ignorance_n with_o infallibility_n how_o be_v he_o like_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o his_o definition_n when_o he_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o give_v a_o dispensation_n to_o a_o man_n to_o take_v another_o wife_n if_o the_o former_a have_v a_o disease_n that_o make_v she_o not_o able_a for_o the_o conjugal_a debt_n and_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n 4._o chapter_n have_v this_o passage_n omnis_fw-la enim_fw-la homo_fw-la errare_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la etiam_fw-la si_fw-la papa_n sit_fw-la nam_fw-la de_fw-la liberio_fw-la à_fw-fr papa_n constat_fw-la fuisse_fw-la arrianum_n et_fw-la anasterium_fw-la papam_fw-la fuvisse_fw-la nestorianis_fw-la qui_fw-la historias_fw-la legerit_fw-la non_fw-la dubitat_fw-la and_o a_o little_a after_o nam_fw-la cum_fw-la constet_fw-la plures_fw-la eorum_fw-la adeo_fw-la illiteratos_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la grammaticam_fw-la penitus_fw-la ignorent_fw-la qui_fw-la fit_a ut_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la interpretari_fw-la possent_fw-la and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o by_o your_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o other_o several_o or_o together_o know_v the_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o scripture_n infallible_o but_o many_o necessary_a place_n of_o scripture_n do_v not_o as_o you_o imagine_v need_v a_o judge_n or_o not_o infallible_a all_o thing_n also_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o the_o contrary_a you_o have_v not_o show_v and_o therefore_o be_v there_o no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n for_o the_o former_a or_o tradition_n for_o the_o latter_a as_o i_o have_v show_v nevertheless_o you_o proceed_v thus_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n come_v to_o we_o in_o all_o these_o case_n by_o the_o church_n you_o by_o your_o own_o word_n in_o this_o place_n must_v grant_v her_o authority_n to_o be_v our_o ordinary_a cause_n of_o faith_n so_o you_o answer_n as_o you_o suppose_v much_o for_o your_o advantage_n without_o colour_n of_o reason_n so_o you_o confound_v much_o without_o distinction_n first_o the_o term_n revelation_n have_v two_o respect_n one_o to_o the_o agent_n and_o so_o it_o refer_v to_o the_o act_n and_o manner_n thereof_o another_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v that_o be_v the_o object_n the_o revelation_n of_o god_n take_v it_o passive_o for_o the_o object_n the_o matter_n which_o be_v reveal_v come_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n because_o the_o word_n write_v ordinary_o come_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n but_o take_v revelation_n of_o god_n active_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o manner_n to_o bear_v your_o sense_n that_o god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o infallible_o by_o the_o church_n either_o in_o the_o case_n of_o canonical_a book_n or_o of_o doubt_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o it_o do_v not_o come_v by_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o be_v it_o not_o the_o ordinary_a cause_n of_o faith_n which_o must_v rely_v upon_o infallible_a verity_n as_o aquinas_n speak_v in_o his_o first_o part_n first_o question_n eight_o answer_n and_o therefore_o as_o before_o do_v rely_v upon_o the_o revelation_n make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n which_o write_v the_o canonical_a book_n and_o not_o then_o upon_o the_o church_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o receive_v these_o book_n and_o to_o communicate_v they_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v conclude_v to_o be_v as_o a_o instrument_n only_o or_o a_o motive_n of_o this_o faith_n a_o instrument_n by_o its_o office_n and_o a_o motive_n by_o its_o authority_n and_o as_o for_o declare_v undoubted_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o be_v there_o not_o any_o necessity_n of_o a_o judge_n infallible_a which_o you_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v second_o you_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o by_o my_o word_n since_o in_o those_o case_n the_o revelation_n of_o god_n come_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n i_o must_v grant_v her_o authority_n to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a cause_n of_o faith_n and_o you_o say_v also_o that_o by_o my_o word_n in_o this_o place_n i_o must_v grant_v so_o sure_o you_o here_o do_v commit_v
we_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 56._o you_o go_v on_o as_o if_o i_o find_v fault_n with_o scripture_n i_o only_o find_v fault_n with_o those_o who_o affirm_v scripture_n to_o have_v be_v intend_v by_o god_n for_o a_o end_n to_o which_o i_o show_v it_o never_o be_v intend_v because_o if_o it_o have_v be_v intend_v by_o god_n to_o teach_v we_o clear_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o then_o by_o send_v we_o to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o bid_v we_o keep_v our_o receive_a tradition_n it_o will_v have_v set_v the_o thing_n down_o clear_o and_o distinct_o and_o not_o have_v leave_v these_o point_n to_o be_v pick_v out_o one_o out_o of_o one_o book_n another_z out_z of_o another_o no_o man_n know_v direct_o where_n yea_o divers_a book_n contain_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o these_o point_n which_o you_o hold_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n especial_o in_o plain_a and_o clear_a term_n and_o those_o book_n which_o do_v contain_v such_o point_n do_v intermingle_v so_o many_o other_o less_o necessary_a point_n or_o point_n of_o doubtful_a necessity_n with_o those_o which_o be_v whole_o necessary_a without_o ever_o tell_v we_o of_o this_o less_o or_o great_a necessity_n that_o all_o the_o whole_a bible_n must_v be_v very_o careful_o and_o very_o attentive_o read_v over_o which_o be_v impossible_a because_o divers_a whole_a book_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v lose_v before_o a_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o infallible_a knowledge_n of_o such_o point_n as_o you_o will_v say_v be_v necessary_a which_o point_v you_o say_v be_v but_o few_o and_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v many_o and_o divers_a more_o have_v be_v write_v and_o quite_o lose_v and_o how_o can_v we_o tell_v whether_o all_o these_o we_o have_v now_o contain_v all_o point_v necessary_a for_o the_o most_o you_o pretend_v be_v that_o in_o the_o whole_a canon_n all_o point_n necessary_a be_v deliver_v we_o have_v not_o the_o whole_a canon_n but_o diverse_a book_n of_o it_o have_v perish_v therefore_o we_o have_v no_o assurance_n that_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a the_o scripture_n we_o have_v make_v a_o book_n so_o big_a that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n take_v up_o with_o so_o many_o necessary_a affair_n can_v in_o a_o very_a long_a space_n of_o time_n read_v over_o this_o book_n with_o any_o part_n of_o that_o exactness_n which_o according_a to_o your_o own_o principle_n must_v be_v require_v to_o find_v out_o which_o point_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o to_o do_v this_o they_o must_v first_o read_v over_o the_o whole_a canon_n and_o yet_o divers_a book_n of_o it_o be_v lose_v and_o not_o to_o be_v have_v how_o shall_v they_o read_v they_o second_o to_o have_v assurance_n that_o they_o have_v read_v over_o the_o whole_a canon_n they_o must_v read_v over_o such_o book_n as_o we_o hold_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o true_a canon_n to_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v so_o or_o no_o and_o use_v such_o diligence_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n they_o must_v also_o note_v most_o accurate_o all_o place_n which_o may_v perhaps_o clear_o deliver_v a_o necessary_a point_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v confer_v with_o other_o place_n which_o perhaps_o be_v at_o the_o other_o end_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o may_v occur_v to_o i_o when_o i_o less_o observe_v any_o kind_n of_o connexion_n with_o what_o i_o read_v before_o beside_o this_o for_o fear_v translation_n which_o be_v only_o so_o far_o god_n word_n as_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o original_a shall_v be_v take_v by_o i_o for_o god_n true_a word_n i_o must_v consult_v with_o the_o original_a and_o with_o the_o true_a original_a of_o which_o i_o can_v get_v a_o undoubted_a copy_n infallible_o secure_v from_o corruption_n be_v it_o likely_a that_o god_n who_o have_v promise_v we_o a_o way_n so_o direct_v unto_o we_o that_o fool_n can_v err_v by_o it_o will_v intend_v to_o lead_v we_o by_o a_o way_n have_v so_o many_o passage_n open_v to_o error_n these_o difficulty_n show_v that_o god_n do_v not_o intend_v this_o book_n to_o be_v our_o only_a guide_n his_o wisdom_n direct_v he_o to_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o compass_v his_o intention_n even_o our_o ordinary_a wisdom_n if_o we_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o set_v forth_o a_o writing_n to_o end_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n will_v direct_v we_o to_o set_v down_o plain_o and_o clear_o in_o one_o place_n all_o those_o few_o as_o you_o say_v point_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v when_o god_n determine_v to_o set_v down_o all_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n you_o see_v how_o full_o particular_o and_o clear_o he_o set_v they_o down_o in_o leviticus_n point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n import_v incomparable_o more_o than_o point_v of_o mere_a ceremony_n if_o then_o god_n have_v intend_v a_o book_n by_o which_o only_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o deliver_v unto_o we_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n these_o point_n as_o you_o say_v be_v but_o few_o he_o will_v in_o some_o one_o part_n of_o these_o book_n have_v clear_o set_v down_o these_o few_o point_n a_o thousand_o time_n more_o import_v then_o the_o point_n of_o ceremony_n many_o hold_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n john_n be_v write_v after_o his_o apocalyps_n and_o so_o by_o order_n of_o time_n that_o they_o be_v the_o very_a last_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o very_a last_o part_n of_o this_o my_o last_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n saint_n john_n say_v i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o write_v but_o i_o will_v not_o with_o ink_n and_o pen_n write_v they_o but_o i_o trust_v we_o shall_v see_v thou_o short_o and_o we_o shall_v speak_v face_n to_o to_o face_n no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o these_o many_o thing_n which_o st._n john_n have_v to_o write_v be_v thing_n unnecessary_a wherefore_o many_o necessary_a thing_n may_v not_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canon_n and_o yet_o the_o canon_n be_v very_o complete_a in_o order_n to_o its_o true_a end_n and_o also_o in_o order_n to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o controversy_n by_o send_v we_o to_o the_o church_n for_o full_a instruction_n as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o it_o be_v apparent_o false_a which_o you_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v give_v we_o every_o particular_a point_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o whereas_o you_o add_v second_o that_o the_o scripture_n give_v also_o many_o point_v not_o necessary_a you_o mark_v not_o that_o the_o vast_a number_n of_o those_o point_n among_o which_o here_o and_o there_o we_o be_v not_o assure_v where_o the_o necessary_a point_n be_v intermingle_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o the_o end_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o will_v make_v any_o man_n far_o from_o be_v full_o assure_v that_o god_n intention_n be_v by_o this_o book_n alone_o to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n about_o point_n only_o necessary_a which_o may_v far_o more_o easy_o for_o our_o capacity_n have_v be_v do_v in_o some_o one_o chapter_n of_o some_o one_o of_o these_o book_n 57_o after_o this_o you_o urge_v that_o our_o church_n have_v not_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n sir_n our_o doctrine_n be_v that_o the_o church_n can_v decide_v any_o point_n former_o reveal_v when_o any_o necessity_n shall_v require_v it_o or_o the_o declaration_n of_o this_o point_n concern_v our_o salvation_n salvation_n have_v very_o secure_o be_v have_v without_o the_o decision_n of_o those_o point_n you_o speak_v of_o if_o circumstance_n happen_v that_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v without_o their_o decision_n they_o will_v then_o be_v decide_v if_o you_o acknowledge_v a_o real_a necessity_n to_o be_v at_o all_o time_n of_o the_o infallible_a knowledge_n of_o those_o point_n then_o by_o your_o own_o principle_n you_o be_v bind_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a our_o church_n have_v determine_v that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v all_o scripture_n with_o a_o undoubtful_a belief_n either_o you_o must_v say_v these_o point_n be_v not_o necessary_a and_o then_o all_o your_o argument_n fall_v of_o themselves_o or_o else_o you_o must_v say_v these_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o then_o we_o be_v by_o our_o church_n oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o with_o divine_a faith_n i_o add_v that_o our_o whole_a church_n teach_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n confirm_v to_o be_v infallible_a submit_v to_o this_o judge_n appoint_v by_o god_n who_o do_v bid_v we_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v her_o definition_n not_o to_o leave_v you_o ignorant_a of_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o you_o to_o know_v to_o cavil_v at_o she_o you_o will_v
private_a priest_n be_v far_o more_o likely_a to_o teach_v they_o god_n law_n by_o teach_v they_o what_o the_o universal_a church_n hold_v to_o be_v god_n law_n then_o by_o teach_v they_o what_o they_o themselves_o conceive_v to_o be_v god_n law_n as_o you_o will_v have_v they_o do_v 11_o now_o to_o prove_v further_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o competent_a judge_n guide_v we_o no_o less_o secure_o than_o those_o many_o million_o be_v guide_v who_o have_v a_o infallible_a faith_n and_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o faith_n with_o we_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v though_o their_o faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o no_o scripture_n but_o whole_o and_o entire_o on_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o infallible_a church_n i_o urge_v that_o in_o those_o two_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o before_o moses_n do_v write_v the_o very_a first_o book_n of_o scripture_n the_o true_a faith_n of_o all_o the_o true_a believer_n of_o those_o age_n depend_v in_o its_o infallibility_n upon_o their_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o propose_v the_o tradition_n she_o have_v receive_v shall_v we_o allow_v infallibility_n to_o that_o church_n and_o deny_v it_o to_o christ_n church_n shall_v we_o be_v worse_o provide_v for_o in_o so_o main_a a_o point_n in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n what_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v there_o for_o this_o then_o it_o be_v not_o write_v hear_v the_o church_n than_o it_o be_v not_o write_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o nor_o that_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n abide_v with_o she_o then_o teach_v she_o then_o all_o truth_n all_o this_o and_o far_o more_o than_o this_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v write_v now_o of_o christ_n church_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v say_v we_o be_v not_o sufficient_o certify_v of_o her_o infalliblity_n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o how_o then_o be_v they_o certify_v and_o infallible_o certify_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n how_o do_v man_n then_o infallible_o know_v that_o they_o be_v bind_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o that_o church_n show_v i_o then_o what_o you_o demand_v of_o i_o last_o to_o show_v that_o be_v show_v the_o ground_n they_o have_v then_o to_o hold_v their_o church_n infallible_a and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o infallible_o what_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o infallibility_n if_o you_o can_v show_v that_o they_o can_v not_o then_o do_v it_o better_o than_o we_o now_o then_o refuse_v not_o to_o stand_v up_o to_o our_o creed_n your_o answer_n to_o so_o convince_a a_o argument_n be_v most_o unsatisfactory_a and_o it_o will_v make_v a_o man_n think_v your_o intent_n be_v to_o plead_v against_o yourself_o you_o say_v this_o be_v answer_v before_o it_o be_v write_v what_o be_v that_o answer_n it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n in_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v beget_v by_o it_o to_o this_o you_o add_v that_o when_o there_o be_v now_o as_o much_o need_n and_o as_o great_a certainty_n of_o tradition_n as_o former_o than_o i_o may_v urge_v this_o argument_n so_o when_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o you_o say_v be_v before_o all_o writing_n and_o which_o beget_v the_o church_n you_o must_v speak_v of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n this_o unwritten_a word_n be_v that_o very_a thing_n which_o we_o call_v tradition_n and_o indeed_o when_o you_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o word_n as_o must_v be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o exterior_a and_o a_o infallible_a direction_n for_o so_o many_o million_o as_o be_v by_o it_o only_o to_o be_v direct_v in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n before_o any_o scripture_n be_v write_v you_o must_v of_o necessity_n put_v this_o word_n outward_o express_v somewhere_o and_o express_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o may_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v this_o effect_n of_o guide_v whole_a million_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o a_o infallible_a belief_n of_o what_o god_n have_v say_v by_o that_o word_n now_o i_o pray_v find_v i_o out_o any_o word_n of_o god_n any_o where_o existent_a before_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n you_o say_v god_n word_n reveal_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o faith_n they_o then_o have_v faith_n therefore_o they_o then_o have_v god_n word_n reveal_v and_o reveal_v in_o a_o sufficient_a manner_n to_o ground_n divine_a faith_n but_o they_o only_o have_v god_n word_n reveal_v by_o tradition_n therefore_o god_n word_n reveal_v by_o tradition_n be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o ground_n divine_a faith_n by_o this_o unwritten_a word_n that_o be_v by_o this_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n she_o from_o a_o small_a church_n consist_v of_o those_o very_a few_o to_o who_o god_n by_o his_o own_o mouth_n do_v first_o of_o all_o speak_v or_o by_o his_o angel_n grow_v to_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o true_a believer_n and_o so_o the_o church_n be_v beget_v by_o tradition_n upon_o which_o only_o this_o multitude_n that_o be_v the_o church_n do_v judge_v most_o prudent_o that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v by_o so_o powerful_a a_o motive_n persuade_v to_o be_v so_o that_o hence_o you_o may_v see_v that_o this_o very_a motive_n alone_o be_v a_o very_a sufficient_a inducement_n to_o receive_v the_o verity_n recommend_v by_o it_o and_o to_o receive_v they_o with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n for_o this_o be_v the_o only_a inducement_n which_o we_o know_v the_o true_a believer_n to_o have_v have_v for_o those_o 2000_o year_n and_o more_o which_o be_v before_o moses_n do_v write_v the_o first_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o those_o scripture_n which_o be_v write_v from_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o keep_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o this_o time_n last_v two_o thousand_o year_n more_o during_o which_o long_a time_n many_o among_o the_o gentile_n as_o appear_v by_o job_n and_o his_o friend_n have_v true_a divine_a faith_n with_o out_o any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n whole_o unknown_a unto_o they_o this_o faith_n of_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o ground_n but_o god_n unwritten_a word_n deliver_v to_o they_o by_o tradition_n therefore_o god_n unwritten_a word_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n only_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o infallible_a faith_n 12_o and_o whereas_o you_o add_v that_o when_o there_o be_v as_o much_o need_n and_o as_o great_a certainty_n of_o tradition_n as_o former_o than_o i_o may_v urge_v this_o argument_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o need_n or_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n which_o you_o conceive_v to_o have_v be_v great_a than_o now_o do_v not_o make_v the_o tradition_n more_o credible_a those_o who_o have_v read_v very_o much_o in_o very_a many_o credible_a book_n of_o france_n have_v no_o need_n at_o all_o of_o any_o unwritten_a and_o oral_a tradition_n to_o make_v they_o believe_v there_o be_v such_o a_o country_n as_o france_n yet_o these_o man_n who_o we_o will_v suppose_v to_o live_v at_o dover_n do_v as_o certain_o know_v by_o unwritten_a or_o oral_a tradition_n of_o man_n daily_o come_v from_o france_n bringing_z french_z passenger_n french_a commodity_n and_o as_o to_o those_o who_o never_o read_v one_o word_n concern_v france_n not_o be_v able_a to_o read_v at_o all_o and_o those_o who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o read_v at_o all_o be_v not_o less_o assure_v by_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o france_n because_o there_o be_v many_o book_n write_v of_o france_n and_o the_o french_a war_n with_o the_o english_a so_o though_o we_o have_v now_o the_o scripture_n write_v concern_v most_o point_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o less_o help_v by_o tradition_n because_o there_o be_v such_o book_n extant_a and_o good_a sir_n consider_v how_o great_a our_o necessity_n be_v of_o both_o these_o help_n for_o even_o now_o when_o we_o have_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n we_o have_v ever_o have_v with_o they_o a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o horrible_a division_n open_v still_o wide_o and_o wide_o all_o common_o cause_v by_o the_o misinterpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o which_o inconvenience_n they_o be_v not_o subject_a before_o all_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o be_v now_o after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o great_a necessity_n than_o ever_o of_o tradition_n both_o to_o assure_v we_o which_o book_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o not_o which_o be_v the_o true_a which_o the_o false_a copy_n of_o these_o book_n where_o they_o be_v secure_a where_o corrupt_v and_o last_o which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o
they_o and_o which_o not_o for_o the_o sense_n even_o in_o necessary_a matter_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n be_v far_o from_o be_v evident_a again_o tradition_n do_v of_o its_o own_o self_n natural_o continue_v in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o vigour_n after_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v wrirten_v as_o well_o as_o it_o do_v before_o as_o appear_v by_o what_o i_o just_a now_o say_v of_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o which_o many_o man_n only_o know_v france_n or_o spain_n yea_o rather_o the_o increase_n of_o it_o by_o be_v divulge_v in_o write_v by_o most_o credible_a and_o manifold_a author_n do_v very_o much_o strengthen_v this_o former_a tradition_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o wherefore_o god_n must_v purposely_o by_o a_o miracle_n have_v infringe_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n which_o no_o man_n can_v say_v he_o do_v if_o the_o former_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o before_o the_o write_n of_o any_o scripture_n do_v full_o suffice_v alone_a to_o ground_v a_o infallible_a faith_n of_o such_o and_o such_o point_n shall_v grow_v then_o to_o lose_v their_o sufficiency_n in_o order_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n when_o they_o be_v strengthen_v by_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o that_o of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n be_v hence_o be_v confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n teach_v the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n to_o have_v expire_v when_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v finish_v though_o not_o before_o for_o which_o they_o have_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o if_o they_o go_v by_o reason_n they_o be_v to_o say_v tradition_n be_v rather_o more_o strengthen_v yea_o if_o they_o will_v not_o say_v this_o yet_o consequent_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o tradition_n revive_v again_o at_o least_o in_o part_n when_o some_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v lose_v yet_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o say_v that_o tradition_n expire_v at_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o canon_n without_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o god_n do_v express_v this_o unto_o the_o church_n so_o to_o undeceive_v those_o many_o thousand_o who_o have_v then_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o they_o may_v secure_o build_v their_o belief_n upon_o that_o upon_o which_o for_o about_o four_o thousand_o year_n so_o many_o have_v until_o that_o day_n build_v their_o faith_n when_o saint_n paul_n or_o any_o other_o canonical_a writer_n preach_v first_o that_o doctrine_n which_o afterward_o he_o do_v write_v do_v the_o belief_n of_o those_o thousand_o which_o be_v at_o first_o sufficient_o ground_v upon_o his_o preach_n come_v to_o lose_v its_o certainty_n or_o rather_o to_o gain_v a_o new_a degree_n of_o certainty_n when_o saint_n paul_n come_v afterward_o to_o write_v that_o they_o must_v hold_v the_o tradition_n he_o have_v deliver_v to_o they_o 2._o 2_o thess_n 2._o 1_o gal._n 2._o and_o that_o though_o a_o angel_n shall_v come_v and_o teach_v they_o contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v by_o his_o oral_a tradition_n they_o shall_v account_v he_o anathema_n and_o again_o have_v thou_o a_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o 1._o tim._n chap._n 1._o and_o again_o chap._n 2._o the_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v he_o say_v not_o read_z of_o i_o by_o many_o witness_n these_o commend_v to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v fit_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o will_v the_o writing_n of_o such_o scripture_n make_v they_o think_v any_o force_n take_v from_o tradition_n or_o rather_o make_v they_o conceive_v that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v stand_v upon_o now_o more_o than_o ever_o before_o again_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v put_v out_o one_o light_n cost_v he_o nothing_o because_o it_o will_v be_v shine_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n unless_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o hide_a because_o he_o have_v now_o another_o light_n but_o so_o that_o even_o with_o both_o these_o light_n many_o of_o his_o household_n will_v still_o remain_v in_o darkness_n but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o if_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v give_v we_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v a_o more_o certain_a tradition_n give_v unto_o we_o i_o will_v know_v of_o you_o upon_o what_o account_n the_o tradition_n of_o so_o noble_a a_o church_n as_o christ_n church_n be_v shall_v be_v of_o less_o credit_n or_o certainty_n than_o the_o tradition_n of_o that_o far_o less_o noble_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n what_o mean_n have_v they_o then_o give_v by_o god_n to_o secure_v their_o tradition_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 4000_o year_n which_o we_o want_v for_o the_o have_v secure_v our_o tradition_n for_o these_o last_o 1654._o year_n this_o mean_n you_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n assign_v and_o therefore_o by_o all_o mean_n you_o must_v grant_v the_o tradition_n of_o this_o noble_a church_n to_o have_v be_v as_o secure_o preserve_v from_o corruption_n for_o these_o few_o year_n as_o those_o tradition_n of_o a_o far_o less_o noble_a church_n be_v preserve_v without_o corruption_n for_o above_o 4000_o year_n again_o the_o tradition_n of_o christ_n primitive_a church_n before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o sufficient_o promulge_v which_o tradition_n do_v by_o a_o infallible_a authority_n recommend_v all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o her_o sole_a authority_n and_o so_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o first_o church_n before_o there_o be_v any_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o by_o good_a consequence_n she_o in_o the_o first_o place_n recommend_v herauthority_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o divine_a and_o infallible_a and_o all_o the_o true_a believer_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v do_v without_o god_n have_v say_v so_o for_o all_o divine_a belief_n rest_v upon_o the_o say_n of_o god_n god_n therefore_o say_v by_o that_o his_o church_n that_o her_o tradition_n be_v infallible_a for_o her_o authority_n now_o if_o god_n say_v this_o shall_v we_o upon_o your_o fallible_a discourse_n come_v to_o say_v the_o church_n tradition_n be_v now_o no_o long_o infallible_a though_o god_n say_v they_o be_v so_o and_o never_o yet_o express_v the_o cease_n of_o their_o infallibility_n by_o this_o you_o will_v see_v whether_o my_o answer_n have_v help_v you_o or_o your_o reply_n help_v i_o concern_v what_o will_v follow_v out_o of_o st._n irenaeus_n 13._o for_o this_o serve_v for_o make_v good_a what_o i_o say_v out_o of_o st._n irenaeus_n so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v a_o witness_n which_o a_o profane_a author_n may_v have_v be_v of_o what_o happen_v so_o near_o his_o time_n for_o as_o for_o his_o authority_n as_o he_o be_v a_o most_o grave_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o most_o believe_a that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o commend_v to_o write_v as_o most_o true_a i_o do_v not_o press_v it_o against_o you_o yet_o because_o here_o you_o thank_v st._n irenaeus_n for_o his_o testimony_n and_o make_v a_o show_n as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o you_o though_o you_o can_v invent_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o tradition_n shall_v have_v be_v convey_v more_o certain_o suppose_v there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n i_o can_v not_o but_o observe_v how_o so_o soon_o as_o you_o have_v hug_v he_o you_o cast_v he_o off_o again_o with_o small_a respect_n when_o you_o say_v neither_o can_v we_o believe_v that_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v rely_v only_o upon_o tradition_n they_o may_v be_v commend_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o tradition_n and_o then_o not_o believe_v it_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o tradition_n how_o flat_o be_v these_o your_o word_n against_o st._n irenaeus_n who_o clear_o declare_v all_o himself_o to_o tell_v we_o upon_o what_o ground_n we_o must_v have_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v though_o the_o apostle_n have_v never_o write_v any_o scripture_n at_o all_o what_o say_v he_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o the_o scripture_n must_v we_o not_o have_v follow_v that_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o those_o to_o who_o charge_n they_o leave_v the_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v to_o this_o order_n of_o tradition_n by_o the_o unwritten_a word_n many_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v assent_v who_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n without_o any_o writing_n keep_v diligent_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n what_o bring_v he_o this_o example_n of_o these_o barbarous_a nation_n for_o but_o to_o show_v that_o we_o may_v with_o divine_a faith_n believe_v upon_o the_o sole_a account_n of_o that_o very_a tradition_n which_o the_o apostle_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o leave_v the_o church_n government_n although_o the_o apostle_n have_v never_o write_v at_o all_o at_o any_o time_n he_o therefore_o be_v none_o of_o those_o who_o will_v say_v with_o you_o neither_o can_v we_o believe_v that_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n
for_o the_o dead_a all_o inscription_n of_o grave_n all_o will_n and_o testament_n all_o foundation_n of_o pious_a place_n will_v testify_v this_o custom_n far_o more_o strong_o than_o that_o of_o baptism_n yea_o in_o no_o one_o country_n nor_o in_o any_o one_o age_n since_o christ_n until_o this_o last_o follow_v age_n do_v ever_o any_o one_o man_n deny_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a except_o aerius_n count_v for_o this_o his_o opinion_n a_o heretic_n by_o st._n austin_n and_o by_o st._n epiphanius_n as_o you_o know_v very_o well_o hence_o it_o be_v make_v evident_o credible_a to_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o this_o tradition_n of_o baptise_v infant_n and_o much_o more_o the_o tradition_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a come_v to_o we_o from_o the_o apostle_n it_o not_o be_v possible_a for_o all_o true_a believer_n in_o so_o many_o several_a country_n and_o so_o many_o several_a age_n to_o agree_v in_o the_o profession_n and_o daily_a practice_n of_o this_o truth_n without_o they_o have_v receive_v these_o two_o thing_n joint_o with_o their_o first_o faith_n else_o the_o novelty_n and_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o novelty_n will_v in_o some_o time_n or_o some_o place_n have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o posterity_n for_o no_o one_o man_n work_n be_v it_o no_o nor_o no_o one_o hundred_o man_n work_n to_o bring_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o any_o such_o novelty_n with_o so_o unanimous_a and_o no_o where_o contradict_v consent_v the_o ignorant_a people_n will_v have_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o tradition_n also_o make_v evident_o credible_a unto_o they_o by_o the_o public_a unanimous_a and_o universal_a consent_n of_o all_o ancient_a man_n and_o all_o ancient_a monument_n and_o also_o the_o like_a unanimous_a affirmation_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n of_o any_o stand_n who_o will_v all_o and_o every_o where_o profess_v themselves_o assure_v of_o it_o by_o their_o learning_n and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o those_o tradition_n prove_v in_o the_o manner_n i_o now_o say_v this_o make_v the_o matter_n evident_o credible_a to_o the_o ignorant_a wherefore_o they_o shall_v do_v most_o imprudent_o not_o to_o believe_v that_o these_o point_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o suppose_v that_o they_o come_v from_o they_o they_o shall_v do_v a_o damnable_a sin_n not_o to_o believe_v they_o can_v any_o rational_a man_n desire_v a_o more_o rational_a proceed_n how_o many_o true_a believer_n commend_v in_o scripture_n can_v give_v so_o prudent_a a_o reason_n for_o what_o they_o believe_v how_o we_o proceed_v thus_o escape_v clear_o all_o circle_n i_o tell_v you_o the_o last_o chapter_n numb_a 31.32_o now_o as_o you_o must_v grant_v that_o our_o church_n submit_v unto_o as_o infallible_a present_o by_o her_o authority_n decide_v all_o controversy_n so_o her_o tradition_n once_o acknowledge_v as_o infallible_a will_v decide_v the_o point_n question_v the_o scripture_n never_o so_o clear_a can_v never_o decide_v any_o one_o controversy_n until_o it_o be_v first_o acknowledge_v thus_o you_o see_v the_o two_o thing_n which_o you_o here_o desire_a to_o see_v 17._o after_o this_o i_o pass_v to_o another_o quality_n which_o the_o church_n have_v and_o the_o bible_n have_v not_o though_o it_o be_v a_o quality_n primely_a necessary_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n intend_v not_o the_o bible_n but_o the_o church_n to_o be_v our_o judge_n this_o quality_n be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o live_a judge_n who_o can_v be_v inform_v of_o all_o controversy_n arise_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o who_o can_v hear_v i_o and_o you_o and_o be_v hear_v by_o i_o &_o you_o so_o manifest_o that_o neither_o i_o nor_o you_o can_v doubt_v of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o church_n or_o if_o we_o do_v doubt_n we_o can_v propose_v our_o doubt_n and_o she_o will_v explicate_v her_o meaning_n such_o a_o live_a judge_n as_o this_o we_o must_v have_v to_o put_v effectual_o a_o end_n to_o all_o controversy_n that_o can_v arise_v and_o as_o for_o the_o bible_n i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o do_v not_o decide_v all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o bible_n hear_v not_o new_a controversy_n arise_v as_o i_o prove_v by_o this_o clear_a example_n a_o arrian_n sta●●eth_n up_o as_o real_o he_o do_v and_o say_v that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n these_o three_o be_v one_o be_v word_n add_v by_o we_o to_o the_o true_a scripture_n this_o controversy_n and_o a_o thousand_o such_o like_a the_o bible_n hear_v not_o the_o bible_n judge_v not_o for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o it_o in_o all_o the_o bible_n and_o though_o you_o say_v you_o can_v see_v true_a scripture_n by_o its_o light_n you_o shall_v never_o get_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o you_o yourself_o do_v real_o believe_v that_o you_o see_v every_o verse_n in_o scripture_n by_o its_o light_n no_o light_n appear_v so_o dim_a as_o these_o word_n appear_v to_o man_n three_o be_v one_o yet_o beside_o this_o light_n you_o who_o reject_v church_n tradition_n as_o fallible_a you_o i_o say_v have_v leave_v you_o no_o other_o infallible_a ground_n nor_o any_o infallible_a mean_n to_o convince_v the_o arrian_n until_o you_o hold_v the_o church_n infallible_a all_o other_o use_n which_o you_o say_v you_o make_v of_o the_o church_n suffice_v not_o to_o ground_v a_o infallible_a assent_n for_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o you_o make_v any_o private_a man_n and_o consequent_o every_o arrian_n cobbler_n as_o i_o show_v the_o last_o court_n of_o judicature_n in_o give_v the_o final_a sentence_n on_o which_o all_o depend_v for_o he_o must_v be_v the_o last_o judge_n who_o after_o the_o church_n judgement_n must_v give_v sentence_n that_o she_o have_v or_o have_v not_o judge_v against_o scripture_n that_o you_o may_v see_v my_o argument_n be_v not_o peccant_a i_o will_v frame_v both_o the_o premise_n and_o the_o conclusion_n thus_o faith_n be_v a_o infallible_a assent_n controversy_n concern_v faith_n can_v be_v determine_v so_o as_o to_o end_v then_o effectual_o but_o by_o a_o infallible_a live_a judge_n who_o can_v hear_v you_o and_o i_o and_o be_v hear_v by_o you_o and_o i_o but_o no_o other_o than_o the_o church_n can_v with_o any_o ground_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v this_o live_a judge_n therefore_o she_o must_v be_v hold_v to_o be_v this_o judge_n i_o do_v not_o without_o reason_n put_v in_o my_o premise_n the_o term_n of_o infallible_a for_o faith_n be_v a_o infallible_a assent_n must_v needs_o require_v a_o infallible_a authority_n to_o rest_v upon_o this_o authority_n she_o must_v find_v in_o all_o point_n to_o which_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v this_o assent_n but_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v this_o assent_n to_o diverse_a point_n not_o propose_v clear_o in_o scripture_n as_o i_o show_v the_o last_o chapter_n therefore_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v this_o assent_n to_o diverse_a of_o those_o point_n only_o because_o they_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n to_o which_o she_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o infallible_a assent_n without_o due_a assurance_n of_o her_o infallibility_n 48_o you_o object_n that_o the_o church_n tradition_n can_v hear_v you_o and_o i_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n who_o propose_v these_o tradition_n and_o not_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v our_o judge_n you_o ask_v i_o whither_o a_o heretic_n be_v not_o condemn_v by_o himself_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v and_o you_o interpret_v his_o say_n so_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v condemn_v by_o himself_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o he_o have_v in_o he_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o gainsay_v by_o his_o contrary_a error_n and_o so_o he_o be_v condemn_v thereby_o and_o therefore_o that_o can_v judge_n sir_n he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n but_o a_o infidel_n who_o be_v tell_v by_o his_o own_o conscience_n that_o he_o gainsayeth_a the_o scripture_n all_o christian_n be_v ready_a to_o die_v then_o to_o disbelieve_v any_o one_o say_v of_o the_o scripture_n when_o st._n paul_n write_v those_o word_n the_o whole_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v and_o until_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v write_v your_o own_o doctor_n grant_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o i_o wonder_v you_o shall_v say_v the_o church_n at_o the_o write_n of_o this_o by_o st._n paul_n be_v not_o sufficient_o form_v which_o the_o same_o st._n paul_n testify_v to_o have_v be_v form_v before_o his_o conversion_n accuse_v himself_o for_o have_v above_o measure_n persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o before_o his_o conversion_n the_o number_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v multiply_v act._n 6._o yea_o act._n 8._o simon_n magus_n be_v turn_v heretic_n before_o st._n paul_n be_v turn_v
christian_n or_o any_o word_n of_o the_o new_a scripture_n be_v write_v the_o meaning_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v if_o he_o will_v clear_o see_v his_o private_a doctrine_n to_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o know_a public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n then_o shine_v with_o the_o glory_n of_o infinite_a miracle_n stupendous_a conversion_n and_o most_o eminent_a sanctity_n and_o be_v then_o form_v most_o complete_o with_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o infallible_a direction_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n yea_o you_o will_v say_v she_o be_v then_o more_o complete_o furnish_v to_o that_o end_n then_o ever_o she_o be_v since_o that_o time_n 49._o now_o because_o your_o chief_n exception_n against_o the_o church_n be_v our_o judge_n be_v that_o you_o hold_v she_o not_o infallible_a beside_o all_o the_o proof_n i_o have_v already_o bring_v of_o her_o infallibility_n i_o shall_v now_o add_v divers_a more_o but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o must_v a_o little_a more_o full_o tell_v you_o what_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n he_o who_o be_v a_o seeker_n of_o his_o religion_n must_v first_o believe_v the_o universal_a church_n diffuse_v to_o be_v furnish_v by_o god_n with_o true_a infallible_a mean_n to_o direct_v we_o secure_o in_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n wherefore_o he_o most_o prudent_o judge_v himself_o bind_v to_o join_v himself_o to_o she_o in_o faith_n be_v convince_v that_o she_o direct_v most_o secure_o in_o faith_n be_v thus_o also_o a_o seeker_n resolve_v to_o join_v to_o these_o true_a believer_n when_o he_o proceed_v further_a to_o take_v a_o particular_a account_n in_o who_o this_o infallible_a mean_n give_v to_o the_o church_n universal_a of_o direct_v all_o secure_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n do_v consist_v he_o will_v ready_o find_v that_o it_o do_v not_o consist_v in_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o child_n and_o woman_n be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o their_o vote_n in_o no_o man_n opinion_n be_v require_v to_o the_o decide_v any_o controversy_n in_o faith_n the_o laiety_n also_o have_v no_o decisive_a voice_n in_o those_o point_n nor_o every_o inferior_a clergy_n man_n but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v prelate_n overseer_n and_o governor_n over_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o in_o fine_a this_o infallible_a direction_n be_v unanimous_o affirm_v by_o we_o all_o to_o be_v undoubted_o settle_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prime_a pastor_n &_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n assemble_v together_o in_o a_o lawful_a general_a council_n with_o their_o chief_a pastor_n and_o head_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n against_o a_o thing_n so_o easy_o to_o be_v understand_v you_o cry_v out_o aloud_o of_o strange_a intricatenesse_n and_o inextricable_a proceed_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v most_o clown_n of_o this_o land_n do_v easy_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o which_o the_o consent_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v for_o many_o year_n together_o be_v require_v now_o what_o more_o difficulty_n be_v there_o to_o know_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o a_o decree_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o kingdom_n representative_a be_v the_o king_n and_o the_o parliament_n the_o church_n representative_a be_v the_o chief_a bishop_n with_o the_o full_a assembly_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n in_o a_o lawful_a council_n the_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o which_o assembly_n be_v the_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o thing_n so_o clear_a you_o labour_v your_o uttermost_a to_o raise_v a_o thick_a mist_n 50._o first_o you_o object_n who_o can_v be_v certain_a by_o a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n and_o regularity_n of_o a_o pope_n in_o his_o first_o creation_n i_o answer_v that_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o a_o pope_n define_v in_o a_o lawful_a council_n as_o i_o do_v now_o speak_v i_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o pope_n to_o who_o the_o church_n submit_v in_o call_v the_o council_n and_o who_o the_o church_n admit_v as_o her_o lawful_a head_n to_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n these_o very_a act_n supply_v all_o defect_n in_o his_o election_n and_o do_v make_v it_o evident_o credible_a that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a head_n who_o thus_o admit_v define_v with_o the_o council_n as_o their_o acknowledge_a head_n second_o you_o ask_v when_o there_o be_v pope_n against_o pope_n who_o of_o the_o people_n can_v distinguish_v the_o right_a pope_n i_o answer_v that_o he_o shall_v ever_o be_v esteem_v the_o right_a pope_n to_o who_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v unanimous_o obey_v when_o he_o call_v they_o to_o meet_v in_o a_o general_a council_n and_o in_o this_o council_n to_o preside_v over_o they_o to_o to_o have_v two_o such_o pope_n as_o these_o be_v at_o one_o time_n be_v impossible_a and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a time_n in_o which_o a_o pope_n define_v with_o a_o lawful_a council_n what_o you_o say_v of_o pope_n not_o define_v in_o such_o a_o council_n be_v not_o our_o case_n put_v i_o a_o pope_n define_v with_o a_o lawful_a council_n and_o then_o prove_v he_o fallible_a if_o you_o can_v whether_o the_o pope_n definition_n out_o of_o a_o council_n be_v fallible_a or_o infallible_a make_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n only_o this_o be_v evident_a if_o they_o be_v infallible_a out_o of_o a_o council_n they_o be_v infallible_a in_o a_o council_n three_o you_o think_v that_o no_o controversy_n can_v in_o our_o opinion_n be_v decide_v when_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n who_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o you_o ask_v who_o be_v then_o to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o when_o the_o council_n be_v call_v you_o think_v we_o to_o think_v that_o this_o council_n can_v define_v nothing_o without_o a_o pope_n i_o doubt_v not_o sir_n but_o you_o have_v find_v a_o clear_a answer_n to_o all_o this_o in_o bellarm_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la concilis_fw-la chap._n 19_o that_n although_o a_o council_n without_o a_o pope_n can_v define_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n yet_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n it_o can_v judge_v which_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o provide_v the_o church_n of_o a_o true_a pastor_n if_o she_o have_v none_o who_o thus_o provide_v by_o the_o counsel_n authority_n may_v dissolve_v the_o council_n if_o he_o please_v or_o if_o he_o please_v to_o have_v they_o remain_v assemble_v they_o remain_v so_o now_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o can_v define_v as_o well_o as_o other_o counsel_n call_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o meeting_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v or_o declare_v the_o undoubted_a pope_n the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n may_v and_o ought_v to_o meet_v upon_o their_o own_o authority_n and_o assemble_v themselves_o four_o you_o ask_v how_o we_o can_v by_o divine_a faith_n come_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n and_o generality_n of_o counsel_n for_o counsel_n have_v be_v call_v by_o emperor_n not_o by_o pope_n sir_n your_o church_n which_o never_o have_v nor_o shall_v have_v general_a council_n be_v to_o seek_v in_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o they_o our_o church_n almost_o in_o every_o age_n since_o constantine_n have_v be_v visible_o assemble_v in_o general_a counsel_n and_o by_o perpetual_a practice_n have_v be_v sufficient_o inform_v to_o deliver_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o that_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o her_o ancestor_n to_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o true_a council_n and_o to_o deliver_v this_o point_n infallible_o to_o your_o objection_n in_o order_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o scripture_n evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o divine_a institution_n by_o which_o either_o emperor_n be_v assure_v to_o be_v still_o find_v in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o when_o they_o have_v that_o dignity_n they_o be_v by_o divine_a institution_n invest_v with_o a_o power_n to_o call_v counsel_n we_o seek_v for_o this_o divine_a institution_n this_o we_o will_v not_o admit_v until_o it_o can_v be_v show_v in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n the_o fact_n of_o call_v show_v not_o divine_a institution_n second_o as_o for_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v show_v divine_a institution_n act._n 20.28_o bishop_n place_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n over_o all_o the_o flock_n to_o feed_v or_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o 4._o epho_n not_o lay_v magistrate_n but_o only_o ecclesiastical_a be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v we_o by_o christ_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o henceforth_o we_o may_v not_o be_v carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n three_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a institution_n lord_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n no_o nor_o of_o any_o considerable_a part_n
of_o it_o wherefore_o see_v that_o a_o motive_n power_n be_v no_o motive_n power_n any_o further_a than_o it_o can_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v able_a to_o motive_n the_o imperial_a power_n which_o can_v move_v further_a than_o it_o reign_v nor_o ought_v not_o to_o move_v further_o can_v consequent_o command_v any_o further_a than_o his_o territory_n at_o the_o uttermost_a the_o power_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v coextend_v to_o the_o universal_a church_n all_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a be_v to_o be_v move_v must_v be_v move_v by_o such_o a_o power_n as_o this_o be_v if_o emperor_n call_v council_n it_o be_v not_o by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a call_n such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o pope_n call_v they_o by_o at_o the_o very_a self_n same_o time_n but_o the_o emperor_n calling_n be_v only_o political_a proceed_v from_o a_o temporal_a power_n subserve_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o not_o able_a to_o force_v they_o by_o censure_n in_o case_n of_o refuse_v to_o come_v as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n can_v which_o power_n implore_v the_o imperial_a assistance_n to_o concur_v with_o she_o only_o for_o the_o more_o effectual_a execution_n perhaps_o sometime_o emperor_n may_v venture_v to_o call_v dependent_o of_o the_o ratification_n of_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n which_o they_o presume_v will_v be_v assure_o obtain_v in_o so_o just_a necessity_n as_o there_o seem_v to_o press_v for_o a_o speedy_a meeting_n if_o emperor_n be_v present_a in_o counsel_n it_o be_v only_o by_o their_o presence_n and_o good_a countenance_n to_o honour_n encourage_v and_o further_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n and_o to_o pass_v their_o vote_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n you_o add_v something_o else_o now_o but_o it_o come_v again_o present_o five_o you_o object_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o council_n have_v a_o free_a election_n to_o it_o and_o a_o free_a decisive_a vote_n in_o it_o i_o answer_v the_o freedom_n of_o every_o man_n calling_n be_v make_v evident_o credible_a by_o the_o public_a summons_n send_v through_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n obey_v by_o the_o same_o without_o any_o pertinatious_a opposition_n and_o the_o answerable_a public_a appearance_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n every_o one_o exhibit_v the_o public_o authenticated_a testimony_n of_o his_o election_n and_o confirmation_n if_o any_o man_n be_v exclude_v he_o may_v without_o he_o will_v renounce_v his_o right_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o council_n which_o be_v a_o public_a hear_n the_o matter_n can_v but_o be_v know_v many_o yet_o never_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v thus_o injure_v without_o make_v their_o injury_n notorious_a by_o public_a protestation_n and_o such_o like_o remedy_n always_o use_v against_o unjust_a exclusion_n or_o hindrance_n of_o liberty_n in_o vote_v if_o the_o council_n be_v know_v notorious_o to_o use_v such_o proceeding_n we_o be_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o a_o lawful_a council_n again_o as_o private_a man_n proceed_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judgee_v bad_a unless_o they_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o much_o less_o ought_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o church_n representative_a to_o be_v judge_v bad_a without_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o contrary_n and_o when_o such_o evident_a and_o notorious_a ill_a proceed_n be_v not_o apparent_a nothing_o can_v be_v solid_o object_v against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o council_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v as_o a_o lawful_a council_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o provide_v that_o their_o difinition_n be_v not_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o church_n put_v under_o his_o protection_n and_o direction_n you_o only_o look_v what_o the_o inward_a nature_n of_o humane_a malice_n may_v act_v but_o you_o shall_v also_o look_v to_o the_o extrinsical_a overrule_a providence_n promise_v by_o god_n against_o humane_a malice_n and_o weakness_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v all_o these_o faction_n and_o banding_n and_o domineer_a self_n interest_n never_o to_o be_v effectual_o destructive_a of_o that_o secure_a direction_n promise_v by_o god_n to_o his_o church_n though_o hell_n gate_n shall_v be_v set_v wide_o open_a they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o six_o you_o ask_v how_o shall_v ignorant_a people_n be_v divine_o persuade_v that_o the_o council_n be_v general_a i_o answer_v the_o public_a summons_n to_o the_o council_n send_v through_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o public_a appearance_n of_o prelate_n make_v upon_o these_o summons_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n their_o public_a sit_v public_a subscribe_v public_a divulge_v their_o decree_n and_o definition_n acknowledge_v true_o to_o be_v they_o by_o all_o present_a deny_v by_o no_o man_n to_o be_v they_o with_o the_o least_o show_n of_o probability_n no_o more_o than_o such_o a_o act_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o act_n of_o such_o a_o parliament_n all_o these_o motive_n i_o say_v make_v it_o evident_o credible_a to_o the_o ignorant_a and_o to_o the_o learned_a that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n now_o this_o be_v evident_o credible_a to_o be_v her_o definition_n and_o i_o believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n all_o her_o definition_n to_o be_v true_a i_o also_o believe_v this_o definition_n among_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v true_a it_o be_v a_o great_a sign_n you_o be_v ill_o furnish_v with_o strong_a argument_n when_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o in_o thing_n so_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v there_o be_v such_o insuperable_a difficulty_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n definition_n concern_v faith_n be_v never_o oppose_v by_o france_n though_o some_o thing_n ordain_v for_o practice_n seem_v less_o suitable_a to_o the_o particular_a state_n of_o that_o kingdom_n yet_o this_o difficulty_n be_v at_o last_o remove_v seven_o you_o ask_v how_o many_o bishop_n in_o the_o trent_n council_n be_v furnish_v with_o a_o title_n to_o overpower_v the_o rest_n for_o the_o pope_n end_n i_o pray_v sir_n tell_v i_o how_o many_o but_o tell_v i_o by_o credible_a witness_n such_o as_o be_v their_o own_o subscription_n who_o can_v assure_v i_o of_o this_o truth_n and_o when_o you_o have_v tell_v i_o this_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o ask_v what_o one_o of_o they_o be_v as_o much_o as_o suspect_v to_o be_v of_o a_o faith_n different_a from_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o faith_n from_o the_o rest_n how_o then_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v suspect_v to_o have_v act_v against_o faith_n by_o make_v such_o bishop_n again_o do_v the_o make_n of_o such_o bishop_n make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n unable_a to_o order_v thing_n so_o in_o the_o council_n that_o nothing_o shall_v happen_v destructive_a of_o the_o secure_a direction_n undertake_v to_o be_v afford_v for_o ever_o by_o he_o saul_n shall_v soon_o turn_v a_o prophet_n and_o caiphas_n shall_v prophesy_v not_o know_v what_o he_o do_v before_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n send_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n shall_v fail_v in_o his_o duty_n eight_o you_o ask_v how_o the_o church_n be_v provide_v for_o when_o for_o so_o many_o year_n there_o be_v no_o pope_n define_v with_o a_o council_n this_o time_n you_o mean_v be_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o for_o persecution_n no_o council_n can_v be_v gather_v all_o this_o time_n the_o know_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n remain_v so_o fresh_a and_o so_o notorious_a by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n diffuse_v and_o there_o remain_v also_o so_o universal_a a_o respect_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n notorious_o know_v to_o be_v the_o upholder_n of_o true_a doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n want_v not_o mean_n to_o decide_v controversy_n as_o far_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o those_o time_n require_v whence_o the_o quartodecimani_n although_o they_o oppose_v nothing_o set_v down_o clear_o in_o scripture_n be_v judge_v heretic_n for_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o church_n make_v evident_o know_v by_o fresh_a tradition_n now_o as_o the_o church_n can_v want_v council_n for_o so_o many_o year_n so_o it_o can_v want_v council_n for_o the_o short_a space_n of_o schism_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o new_a declaration_n it_o not_o so_o frequent_a at_o least_o in_o any_o high_a degree_n of_o necessity_n call_v for_o instant_a remedy_n and_o a_o reme-of_a this_o nature_n only_o scripture_n alone_o you_o say_v will_v remedy_v this_o necessity_n we_o beside_o scripture_n have_v always_o at_o hand_n the_o many_o definition_n of_o former_a council_n and_o the_o know_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o alone_o serve_v god_n church_n in_o those_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o scripture_n and_o for_o two_o thousand_o year_n more_o serve_v the_o faithful_a among_o the_o gentile_n who_o have_v not_o the_o scripture_n which_o remain_v almost_o sole_o and_o alone_o
which_o be_v hard_o to_o affirm_v since_o we_o can_v see_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o necessity_n for_o such_o assistance_n and_o by_o those_o word_n such_o assistance_n your_o last_o reply_n show_v that_o you_o mean_v assistance_n extend_v to_o infallibility_n sir_n stand_v to_o scripture_n and_o show_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o secure_v they_o from_o all_o error_n in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o he_o promise_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o second_o or_o three_o age_n against_o your_o reason_n we_o have_v our_o reason_n bring_v against_o my_o illimited_a text_n another_o text_n teach_v clear_o that_o my_o text_n ought_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o a_o small_a assistance_n in_o other_o age_n than_o be_v here_o promise_v for_o the_o first_o as_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o prime_a reason_n why_o christ_n give_v this_o infallibility_n it_o be_v great_a in_o age_n remote_a from_o christ_n you_o ask_v why_o then_o be_v our_o tradition_n now_o equal_o infallible_a to_o those_o of_o these_o time_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o prove_v now_o that_o christ_n do_v such_o miracle_n be_v crucify_v do_v rise_v again_o than_o it_o be_v present_o after_o these_o thing_n happen_v yet_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o infallibily_n true_a now_o as_o they_o be_v then_o and_z as_o infallilible_n so_o i_o say_v of_o tradition_n which_o for_o all_o this_o do_v not_o lose_v a_o sufficient_a measure_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n but_o to_o go_v on_o what_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o such_o assistance_n for_o other_o age_n what_o text_n have_v you_o to_o prove_v that_o god_n must_v needs_o give_v no_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a and_o can_v promise_v more_o and_o give_v what_o he_o promise_v i_o know_v you_o will_v say_v this_o infallibility_n in_o age_n after_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o necessary_a because_o the_o scripture_n alone_o will_v serve_v to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n sir_n do_v not_o the_o church_n alone_o serve_v to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v yes_o why_o then_o be_v scripture_n think_v necessary_a by_o you_o even_o for_o this_o end_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v well_o provide_v before_o again_o the_o old_a scripture_n do_v it_o not_o testify_v as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n yes_o to_o what_o end_n then_o be_v saint_n john_n baptist_n send_v to_o testify_v this_o to_o what_o end_n a_o voice_n send_v from_o heaven_n to_o testify_v this_o to_o what_o end_n so_o many_o miracle_n wrought_v to_o testify_v this_o to_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n still_o further_o testify_v this_o mark_v here_o how_o false_a your_o judgement_n be_v in_o think_v god_n will_v promise_v just_a what_o be_v necessary_a and_o no_o more_o sir_n in_o age_n after_o the_o first_o when_o the_o church_n shall_v grow_v from_o a_o grain_n of_o mustardseed_n to_o be_v a_o tree_n of_o vast_a extent_n in_o such_o a_o vast_a compass_n and_o in_o progress_n of_o many_o age_n a_o world_n of_o doubt_n will_v rise_v which_o book_n be_v scripture_n which_o not_o which_o corrupt_a scripture_n which_o not_o which_o be_v the_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o the_o uncorrupted_a scripture_n which_o not_o why_o may_v not_o christ_n for_o any_o thing_n you_o know_v by_o scripture_n think_v this_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o promise_v a_o assistance_n extend_v to_o infallibility_n for_o other_o age_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o first_o age_n will_v a_o authority_n so_o assist_v to_o testify_v all_o this_o infallible_o be_v less_o necessary_a than_o so_o many_o authority_n to_o testify_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n after_o it_o be_v infallible_o testify_v by_o true_a scripture_n and_o all_o these_o testimony_n be_v give_v to_o the_o jew_n as_o ill_o as_o they_o be_v dispose_v how_o then_o can_v you_o say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o she_o for_o want_v of_o this_o disposition_n be_v deprive_v of_o this_o assistance_n in_o all_o age_n but_o the_o first_o what_o you_o add_v of_o tradition_n have_v be_v already_o answer_v see_v also_o number_v twelve_o but_o what_o you_o add_v of_o scripture_n have_v still_o the_o same_o certainty_n be_v apparent_o false_a speak_v as_o you_o speak_v in_o order_n to_o assure_v we_o for_o you_o yourself_o confess_v that_o divers_a book_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o apocalypse_v &c._n &c._n be_v now_o hold_v certain_a which_o be_v not_o hold_v so_o before_o again_o many_o and_o a_o good_a many_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v quite_o lose_v how_o know_v you_o by_o scripture_n only_o that_o no_o necessary_a point_n for_o practice_n or_o belief_n contain_v in_o those_o book_n only_o do_v not_o perish_v with_o the_o book_n themselves_o and_o as_o for_o the_o book_n we_o have_v you_o see_v how_o uncertain_a we_o remain_v about_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o in_o high_a point_n then_o they_o have_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o the_o know_a disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o tell_v they_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v this_o so_o real_o or_o figurative_o only_a these_o word_n baptise_v all_o nation_n do_v or_o do_v not_o include_v infant_n to_o be_v a_o priest_n or_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o have_v power_n to_o sacrifice_v to_o absolve_v or_o be_v it_o not_o now_o time_n make_v these_o hold_v for_o uncertainty_n whereas_o by_o and_o by_o you_o admit_v that_o by_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n be_v secure_a from_o damnable_a error_n though_o not_o from_o all_o simple_a error_n for_o then_o no_o body_n shall_v be_v leave_v for_o god_n to_o be_v withal_o you_o admit_v that_o which_o will_v destroy_v quite_o what_o you_o say_v before_o for_o before_o you_o say_v heresy_n consist_v in_o opposition_n to_o clear_a scripture_n whence_o all_o those_o must_v needs_o be_v heretic_n who_o oppose_v clear_a scripture_n therefore_o all_o those_o who_o hold_v these_o prime_a point_n in_o which_o you_o and_o we_o differ_v with_o we_o against_o you_o be_v heretic_n for_o they_o hold_v these_o point_n which_o as_o you_o say_v be_v against_o clear_a scripture_n but_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n christ_n have_v no_o visible_a church_n baptise_v teach_v all_o nation_n etc._n etc._n but_o those_o who_o hold_v these_o prime_a point_n in_o which_o we_o and_o you_o differ_v wherefore_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o christ_n be_v with_o these_o opposer_n of_o evident_a scripture_n or_o else_o you_o can_v show_v with_o what_o member_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v for_o all_o these_o last_o age_n precede_v the_o reformation_n let_v we_o go_v on_o 30._o what_o kind_n of_o assistance_n christ_n promise_v may_v be_v gather_v behold_v a_o five_o text_n out_o of_o several_a word_n in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o saint_n john_n there_o verse_n 15._o he_o say_v i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o the_o world_n can_v receive_v and_o verse_n 27._o the_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o suggest_v unto_o you_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o and_o chap._n 16._o ver_fw-la 12._o i_o have_v yet_o many_o thing_n to_o say_v unto_o you_o how_o be_v it_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v come_v he_o will_v guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n i_o ask_v now_o according_a to_o these_o text_n how_o long_o be_v this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o abide_v with_o they_o in_o their_o successor_n for_o ever_o say_v the_o text._n shall_v he_o also_o secure_a those_o with_o who_o he_o for_o ever_o abide_v from_o all_o error_n he_o will_v guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n say_v the_o text._n give_v i_o then_o leave_v less_o to_o regard_v what_o you_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n where_o there_o be_v all_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o error_n if_o you_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o fundamental_a error_n i_o reply_v that_o all_o truth_n exclude_v all_o error_n either_o in_o point_n fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a and_o be_v you_o can_v assure_o tell_v i_o which_o point_n be_v fundamental_a which_o not_o which_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n which_o not_o which_o be_v curable_a which_o be_v not_o you_o must_v grant_v i_o that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o all_o point_n and_o fear_v not_o to_o believe_v she_o she_o will_v guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v secure_o follow_v she_o in_o all_o herwaies_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v equal_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o
to_o you_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o so_o much_o four_o whereas_o you_o say_v they_o so_o will_v make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v still_o assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o never_o to_o contradict_v that_o do_v not_o you_o see_v that_o you_o add_v to_o paul_n in_o the_o predicate_a for_o s._n paul_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o you_o say_v so_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v still_o assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o contradict_v the_o church_n who_o be_v it_o that_o wrest_v scripture_n now_o do_v not_o you_o draw_v it_o to_o your_o own_o use_n no_o you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o make_v we_o continue_v still_o assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o contradict_v the_o church_n be_v it_o then_o all_o who_o have_v not_o contradict_v the_o church_n be_v save_v &_o none_o that_o have_v contradict_v the_o church_n be_v save_v the_o former_a you_o will_v not_o say_v the_o late_a you_o can_v prove_v pope_n vigilius_n contradict_v the_o church_n in_o the_o 5._o gen._n council_n about_o the_o three_o chapter_n be_v he_o damn_v five_o you_o say_v the_o scripture_n so_o understand_v will_v make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n how_o do_v you_o understand_v it_o copulative_o or_o disjunctive_o copulative_o that_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o oral_a tradition_n will_v make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o disjunctive_o that_o the_o scripture_n will_v make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o the_o tradition_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n if_o disjunctive_o than_o we_o may_v be_v wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o yet_o not_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o can_v have_v salvation_n without_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n then_o prove_v your_o church_n to_o be_v as_o infalible_a to_o we_o as_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o timothy_n until_o that_o time_n you_o will_v be_v think_v to_o beg_v the_o question_n so_o to_o end_v this_o answer_n we_o note_v here_o that_o you_o take_v special_a care_n of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v by_o your_o stickle_a about_o the_o church_n that_o what_o s._n austin_n say_v in_o his_o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la concern_v rome-heathen_a be_v also_o true_a by_o you_o of_o rome-christian_a et_fw-fr major_a cura_fw-la unius_fw-la romae_fw-la quam_fw-la totius_fw-la coeli_fw-la and_o there_o be_v more_o care_n have_v of_o one_o rome_n than_o all_o heaven_n you_o go_v on_o three_o you_o say_v you_o confess_v that_o when_o we_o be_v by_o the_o church_n assure_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v ground_v our_o faith_n in_o it_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o deliver_v you_o say_v yes_o but_o i_o also_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n so_o then_o it_o seem_v you_o come_v down_o from_o your_o former_a universality_n that_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v believe_v we_o must_v believe_v upon_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o formal_a cause_n and_o motive_n thereof_o and_o why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o allow_v the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o the_o bible_n as_o in_o order_n to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o deliver_v so_o that_o by_o this_o concession_n you_o open_v the_o way_n to_o contradict_v your_o own_o practice_n but_o you_o will_v shut_v it_o again_o by_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o plain_o deliver_v in_o it_o be_v sure_a you_o take_v heed_n of_o this_o that_o you_o do_v not_o grant_v this_o for_o why_o then_o shall_v all_o fly_v to_o the_o church_n for_o infalible_a direction_n in_o way_n of_o supply_n well_o be_v they_o not_o deliver_v or_o not_o plain_o which_o speak_v your_o mind_n if_o not_o deliver_v then_o sure_o not_o plain_o for_o of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o affection_n as_o the_o rule_n be_v but_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v and_o yet_o not_o plain_o come_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n and_o do_v not_o make_v a_o noise_n but_o lighten_v we_o if_o not_o deliver_v think_v upon_o the_o argument_n you_o know_v well_o if_o many_o thing_n not_o necessary_a be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n than_o much_o rather_o all_o thing_n necessary_a if_o deliver_v and_o not_o plain_o then_o plain_o not_o deliver_v for_o if_o they_o be_v deliver_v they_o be_v deliver_v for_o our_o use_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o action_n and_o how_o be_v they_o a_o rule_n if_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_o plain_a for_o than_o we_o must_v have_v another_o rule_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o rule_n and_o also_o think_v upon_o the_o former_a argument_n which_o proceed_v upon_o your_o own_o distinction_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o not_o every_o one_o if_o timothy_n then_o much_o more_o other_o because_o more_o be_v require_v as_o you_o say_v to_o a_o minister_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n than_o to_o other_o but_o you_o will_v prove_v what_o you_o say_v s._n peter_n say_v that_o many_o to_o their_o perdition_n do_v misunderstand_v some_o hard_a place_n of_o s._n paul_n so_o that_o misinterpretation_n of_o hard_a place_n may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o perdition_n ans_fw-fr first_o you_o will_v excuse_v we_o if_o we_o note_v that_o the_o danger_n they_o be_v in_o be_v not_o by_o misunderstanding_n but_o by_o wrest_v of_o those_o place_n you_o know_v the_o greek_a be_v as_o before_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o syriack_n render_v it_o pervert_v deprave_v and_o so_o also_o your_o translation_n of_o rheims_n deprave_v this_o be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o intellectual_a error_n as_o a_o moral_a fault_n and_o the_o danger_n be_v by_o the_o late_a second_o here_o be_v but_o some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n not_o all_o not_o many_o and_o from_o hence_o you_o can_v argue_v that_o all_o thing_n therefore_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n and_o much_o less_o in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v if_o you_o syllogize_v so_o you_o proceed_v a_o particulari_fw-la &_o a_o dicto_fw-la secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la three_o the_o pervert_n and_o deprave_v do_v more_o immediate_o depend_v upon_o their_o be_v unstable_a than_o ignorant_a therefore_o can_v you_o impute_v that_o to_o simple_a ignorance_n which_o at_o least_o partly_o belong_v to_o another_o cause_n four_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v be_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o you_o say_v so_o it_o lie_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v it_o if_o they_o be_v not_o such_o than_o this_o text_n be_v not_o pertinent_a five_o it_o be_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o than_o it_o seem_v hereby_o they_o have_v the_o liberty_n to_o read_v those_o epistle_n and_o why_o shall_v you_o therefore_o hinder_v the_o people_n from_o the_o use_n of_o scripture_n since_o they_o run_v the_o danger_n of_o their_o own_o destruction_n by_o wrest_v they_o and_o peruse_v your_o own_o estius_n upon_o the_o place_n who_o do_v ingenuous_o note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o refer_v to_o the_o epistle_n as_o some_o copy_n he_o say_v will_v have_v it_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d refer_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o respect_v the_o time_n of_o christ_n come_v although_o afterward_o estius_n will_v extend_v they_o to_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n four_o you_o object_n heresy_n and_o lewd_a life_n to_o some_o in_o who_o you_o say_v we_o invest_v infallibility_n if_o i_o shall_v grant_v all_o what_o prove_v you_o from_o hence_o but_o that_o there_o be_v other_o way_n to_o heresy_n and_o bad_a life_n beside_o give_v all_o scope_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n as_o we_o judge_v fit_a etc._n etc._n unto_o but_o to_o prevent_v ans_fw-fr but_o do_v you_o remember_v what_o occasion_n i_o have_v to_o object_v this_o to_o you_o by_o way_n of_o recrimination_n you_o charge_v we_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o learned_a divine_n that_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n will_v be_v it_o upon_o which_o the_o people_n manner_n will_v grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o and_o to_o this_o i_o say_v how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o some_o in_o who_o you_o vest_v
that_o time_n infallible_a which_o yet_o we_o grant_v not_o a_o possibility_n of_o it_o to_o be_v infallible_a still_o it_o do_v not_o infer_v a_o actual_a infallibility_n still_o because_o god_n do_v so_o then_o therefore_o he_o do_v so_o after_o the_o word_n be_v write_v be_v as_o good_a a_o argument_n as_o this_o because_o god_n make_v a_o extroardinary_a light_n for_o the_o time_n before_o the_o sun_n be_v create_v therefore_o we_o must_v not_o now_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o if_o because_o god_n do_v sufficient_o rule_v his_o church_n without_o general_a council_n for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v use_n of_o council_n now_o and_o then_o we_o say_v second_o we_o must_v not_o compare_v the_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o any_o word_n be_v write_v but_o only_o with_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o write_v as_o for_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n until_o the_o canon_n be_v finish_v and_o so_o it_o bear_v some_o proportion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o other_o time_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o then_o the_o word_n be_v to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a stand_a rule_n without_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n three_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n necessary_a consign_v by_o tradition_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o put_v into_o writing_n this_o can_v be_v say_v because_o than_o god_n shall_v have_v provide_v for_o his_o church_n worse_o afterward_o by_o write_v and_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o write_n of_o the_o word_n do_v not_o exclude_v the_o word_n not_o write_v which_o be_v tradition_n let_v they_o tell_v i_o why_o when_o all_o be_v in_o tradition_n before_o somewhat_o be_v put_v into_o writing_n and_o somewhat_o leave_v in_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n and_o then_o also_o let_v they_o tell_v i_o how_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n shall_v be_v true_a st._n john_n the_o five_o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o if_o any_o thing_n necessary_a be_v leave_v in_o tradition_n how_o can_v they_o have_v eternal_a life_n in_o the_o scripture_n so_o then_o since_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a be_v commit_v to_o writing_n why_o then_o be_v not_o that_o whereby_o the_o church_n be_v rule_v for_o forty_o year_n before_o the_o canon_n be_v finish_v write_v also_o as_o well_o as_o before_o and_o than_o your_o tradition_n which_o you_o contradistinguish_v to_o scripture_n be_v evacuate_v or_o let_v i_o know_v why_o we_o may_v not_o as_o well_o deny_v the_o roman_a tradition_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n after_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o our_o saviour_n do_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o pharise_n after_o their_o canon_n be_v finish_v and_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o not_o apply_v to_o they_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o jew_n st._n mat._n 15.9_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o tradition_n of_o man_n may_v not_o the_o pharisee_n as_o well_o have_v put_v their_o tradition_n into_o their_o mishna_n which_o as_o the_o tradition_n be_v be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n from_o god_n to_o moses_n from_o moses_n to_o joshuah_n from_o joshuah_n to_o the_o seventie_o from_o they_o to_o the_o church_n and_o fourthly_a my_o adversary_n speak_v this_o in_o favour_n of_o general_n council_n do_v he_o not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o his_o discourse_n do_v not_o well_o cohere_v if_o he_o do_v he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o for_o the_o two_o thousand_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_a council_n nor_o for_o the_o first_o forty_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o much_o for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o what_o consequence_n can_v be_v then_o draw_v from_o his_o word_n against_o i_o for_o my_o denial_n of_o be_v oblige_v absolute_o to_o council_n if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a even_o without_o council_n it_o will_v contradict_v i_o who_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a even_o by_o council_n but_o since_o he_o say_v now_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a by_o council_n if_o it_o be_v infallible_a without_o council_n it_o will_v contradict_v he_o who_o say_v it_o be_v infallible_a in_o and_o by_o council_n because_o he_o place_v the_o infallibility_n in_o council_n so_o as_o that_o he_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o any_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n without_o they_o 7._o num._n 7._o in_o the_o seven_o number_n he_o do_v endeavour_n to_o free_v i_o from_o the_o fear_n of_o hypocrisy_n in_o differ_v by_o a_o outward_a act_n from_o our_o inward_a act_n of_o belief_n but_o his_o endeavour_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o differ_v by_o my_o outward_a act_n of_o subscribe_v from_o my_o inward_a act_n of_o belief_n be_v hypocrisy_n but_o if_o i_o subscribe_v to_o that_o which_o i_o do_v not_o assent_v unto_o as_o true_a i_o must_v differ_v by_o my_o outward_a act_n from_o my_o inward_a act_n and_o therefore_o will_v it_o be_v hypocrisy_n to_o the_o assumption_n he_o will_v now_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n by_o persuade_v i_o that_o my_o inward_a act_n of_o assent_n may_v well_o go_v along_o with_o my_o outward_a act_n of_o subscribe_v his_o reason_n be_v this_o for_o any_o wise_a man_n may_v inward_o persuade_v himself_o that_o although_o i_o by_o my_o force_n of_o wit_n can_v see_v how_o such_o a_o point_n define_v by_o a_o whole_a general_n council_n shall_v be_v true_a yet_o if_o i_o have_v wit_n i_o can_v but_o persuade_v myself_o even_o according_a to_o humane_a wisdom_n that_o so_o grave_a a_o judgement_n of_o a_o whole_a council_n be_v far_o more_o likely_a to_o see_v the_o truth_n than_o my_o private_a judgement_n and_o therefore_o rather_o to_o be_v interior_o embrace_v ans_fw-fr and_o be_v this_o all_o he_o can_v say_v to_o move_v i_o to_o change_v my_o opinion_n first_o he_o seem_v to_o suppose_v that_o we_o can_v see_v sufficient_a reason_n in_o all_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o council_n and_o so_o far_o he_o speak_v ingenuous_o because_o it_o be_v a_o prejudice_n against_o himself_o second_o there_o be_v so_o many_o doubt_n of_o a_o free_a general_a council_n about_o the_o moral_a existence_n of_o it_o that_o i_o have_v need_n of_o some_o divine_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o such_o or_o such_o be_v a_o free_a general_n council_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v such_o scruple_n of_o such_o a_o council_n he_o himself_o afterward_o give_v i_o intimation_n of_o three_o all_o this_o i_o can_v give_v you_o the_o free_a use_n of_o for_o it_o will_v do_v i_o no_o harm_n the_o discourse_n be_v peccant_a upon_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o elench_v for_o this_o be_v in_o term_n reconcilable_a to_o our_o cause_n yea_o and_o also_o almost_o all_o that_o follow_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o number_n for_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o captivate_a of_o the_o soul_n into_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v but_o at_o most_o but_o a_o dispose_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o person_n against_o opposition_n as_o you_o do_v conclude_v you_o conclude_v above_o your_o premise_n as_o you_o shall_v conclude_v from_o your_o premise_n before_o you_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o against_o i_o for_o fourthly_a all_o that_o be_v say_v there_o make_v no_o more_o than_o a_o probability_n of_o that_o to_o be_v right_o which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o council_n for_o put_v case_n it_o seem_v so_o to_o all_o in_o a_o generality_n or_o to_o most_o or_o to_o the_o wise_a and_o of_o they_o to_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o this_o be_v but_o probable_a according_a to_o aristotle_n account_n and_o then_o i_o will_v deny_v it_o that_o every_o council_n be_v so_o qualify_v if_o it_o be_v this_o probability_n make_v but_o a_o strong_a opinion_n but_o not_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o romanist_n do_v unadvised_o urge_v necessity_n of_o faith_n upon_o ground_n infallible_a before_o they_o can_v give_v we_o ground_n infallible_a and_o therefore_o five_o as_o for_o his_o dilemma_n it_o will_v not_o take_v it_o be_v this_o either_o the_o place_n against_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n be_v clear_a or_o not_o if_o not_o they_o be_v more_o likely_a to_o hit_v upon_o the_o truth_n than_o i_o be_o if_o clear_a and_o evident_a than_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a and_o clear_a folly_n in_o i_o to_o think_v that_o so_o wise_a a_o assembly_n shall_v have_v so_o universal_a a_o blindness_n as_o that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o discover_v that_o which_o be_v clear_a and_o evident_a even_o to_o my_o short_a sight_n alas_o how_o far_o come_v this_o short_a of_o infallible_a satisfaction_n and_o
he_o say_v we_o must_v resolve_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n and_o if_o it_o have_v define_v that_o the_o sense_n how_o come_v they_o to_o have_v authority_n to_o define_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n if_o not_o clear_a to_o this_o purpose_n how_o come_v they_o to_o divine_v infallible_o this_o sense_n for_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v this_o sense_n without_o a_o council_n then_o who_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o first_o council_n to_o give_v this_o infallible_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n if_o clear_a then_o have_v we_o no_o such_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n for_o umpiring_a of_o litigant_fw-la sense_n three_o tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n ex_fw-la vi_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la as_o to_o teach_v not_o ex_fw-la vi_fw-la infallibilitatis_fw-la in_o teach_v in_o regard_n of_o authority_n as_o to_o person_n not_o infallibility_n as_o to_o truth_n representative_o in_o the_o office_n not_o absolute_o in_o the_o matter_n we_o be_v to_o hear_v they_o as_o authorize_v to_o teach_v but_o not_o simple_o to_o believe_v they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v assist_v not_o to_o err_v he_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n and_o do_v say_v that_o which_o be_v false_a be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o if_o he_o say_v that_o which_o be_v true_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v true_a because_o he_o say_v so_o but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o to_o speak_v true_a because_o it_o be_v so_o yea_o they_o may_v know_v that_o that_o text_n be_v apply_v by_o christ_n as_o to_o censure_v in_o point_n of_o trespass_n not_o to_o obedience_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n not_o that_o scripture_n alone_o by_o herself_o end_v all_o our_o difference_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr who_o ever_o say_v so_o who_o be_v his_o adversary_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o have_v the_o victory_n without_o a_o adversary_n if_o possible_a no_o nor_o the_o church_n alone_o by_o herself_o but_o we_o say_v also_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o formal_o end_v any_o as_o they_o will_v have_v a_o live_a judge_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o necessary_n for_o by_o propose_v plain_o what_o be_v necessary_a it_o conclude_v necessary_o against_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o live_a judge_n infallible_a what_o be_v necessary_a more_o than_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v necessary_a and_o therefore_o no_o need_n of_o tradition_n and_o what_o more_o plain_a than_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n as_o to_o salvation_n since_o what_o be_v necessary_a be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v sufficient_a in_o the_o matter_n for_o necessary_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a enough_o in_o the_o manner_n as_o to_o point_n of_o faith_n understand_v signanter_n and_o will_v we_o be_v rule_v by_o scripture_n there_o will_v be_v few_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v not_o their_o church_n a_o party_n for_o itself_o it_o will_v give_v all_o to_o scripture_n the_o interess_n of_o the_o church_n have_v bring_v in_o tradition_n not_o for_o salvation_n but_o for_o its_o authority_n and_o the_o scripture_n must_v not_o clear_o have_v deliver_v all_o point_n necessary_a because_o than_o what_o reputation_n will_v be_v give_v to_o the_o authority_n and_o magnificence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o be_v invite_v much_o to_o the_o three_o chap._n and_o expectation_n be_v raise_v wherein_o he_o say_v when_o i_o shall_v have_v full_o set_v down_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n you_o shall_v find_v all_o that_o you_o add_v in_o this_o place_n present_o answer_v ans_fw-fr this_o he_o say_v shall_v be_v do_v before_o it_o be_v say_v if_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o we_o must_v err_v in_o point_n of_o salvation_n without_o obedience_n to_o their_o judge_n if_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o all_o error_n be_v damnative_a and_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o their_o church_n or_o the_o church_n have_v not_o err_v yea_o can_v err_v then_o we_o will_v excuse_v he_o for_o repetition_n in_o the_o three_o chap._n for_o he_o can_v come_v off_o handsome_o with_o answer_v in_o a_o three_o chap._n what_o be_v say_v in_o a_o former_a more_o full_o unless_o he_o say_v much_o more_o to_o what_o be_v say_v than_o what_o he_o have_v yet_o say_v but_o we_o do_v not_o prejudice_v his_o judge_n chap._n iii_o show_v that_o since_o scripture_n alone_o do_v sufficient_o propose_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o live_a judge_n infallible_a here_o he_o say_v at_o first_o 1._o num._n 1._o you_o deliver_v your_o opinion_n in_o your_o answer_n to_o my_o third_n num._n p._n 12._o thus_o and_o then_o he_o tell_v i_o my_o opinion_n of_o which_o he_o say_v no_o proof_n be_v give_v by_o you_o until_o you_o come_v to_o this_o present_a place_n for_o proof_n he_o have_v have_v as_o much_o as_o can_v reasonable_o be_v require_v and_o more_o i_o suppose_v than_o he_o desire_v but_o i_o be_v to_o follow_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o to_o accuse_v i_o and_o he_o may_v then_o have_v begin_v with_o the_o proof_n if_o he_o will_v have_v make_v short_a work_n he_o than_o prepare_v himself_o to_o reinforce_v the_o combat_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v and_o first_o i_o will_v take_v leave_n to_o state_n this_o question_n a_o little_a more_o full_o and_o distinct_o ans_fw-fr he_o use_v his_o own_o right_n if_o he_o will_v state_n the_o question_n more_o full_o and_o distinct_o and_o it_o be_v right_o to_o do_v so_o all_o good_a discourse_n begin_v with_o a_o definition_n and_o all_o regular_a dispute_n with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o favour_n to_o i_o if_o he_o do_v it_o well_o for_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v the_o soon_o and_o so_o he_o end_v his_o first_o number_n your_o assertion_n then_o be_v 2._o num._n 2._o that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr yes_o this_o be_v my_o assertion_n and_o i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o it_o yet_o for_o it_o be_v not_o i_o alone_o but_o the_o scriptur_n and_o st._n augustine_n and_o other_o as_o he_o have_v hear_v before_o in_o this_o assertion_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o needful_a and_o distinct_a declaration_n the_o first_o be_v to_o declare_v these_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o second_o to_o declare_v those_o word_n plain_o set_v down_o ans_fw-fr content_a let_v he_o be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n only_o let_v he_o take_v care_n he_o do_v not_o as_o some_o he_o know_v confound_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o distinguish_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v confound_v so_o let_v he_o turn_v his_o answer_v to_o what_o i_o say_v against_o his_o assertion_n into_o a_o opposition_n of_o i_o and_o first_o concern_v those_o word_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v understand_v so_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n which_o be_v necessary_a first_o to_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o it_o be_v a_o community_n second_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o all_o state_n and_o degree_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o this_o community_n three_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o every_o person_n bind_v to_o be_v of_o this_o community_n ans_fw-fr this_o way_n he_o think_v to_o destroy_v my_o assertion_n as_o mr._n cressy_n do_v to_o destroy_v the_o assertion_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n but_o it_o will_v not_o do_v for_o here_o be_v he_o faulty_a in_o confound_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v he_o shall_v have_v distinguish_v betwixt_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n and_o necessary_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o it_o be_v a_o community_n though_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n take_v confuse_o of_o the_o person_n yet_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o a_o community_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o then_o before_o there_o be_v a_o competent_a aggregation_n in_o a_o community_n there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o community_n be_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o hold_n of_o thing_n necessary_a be_v it_o not_o yes_o he_o will_v say_v than_o this_o community_n do_v not_o come_v in_o to_o integrate_a thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o if_o not_o than_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o this_o community_n do_v not_o come_v in_o neither_o then_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o second_o to_o have_v distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o church_n in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o well_o be_v all_o thing_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o the_o bene_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o it_o now_o salvation_n may_v
may_v be_v need_n of_o a_o judge_n external_a as_o to_o peace_n but_o for_o this_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o judge_n infallible_a if_o any_o thing_n will_v content_v they_o but_o a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n this_o might_n yea_o neither_o it_o may_v be_v if_o such_o a_o monarchy_n be_v necessary_a be_v this_o infallibility_n necessary_a because_o ministerial_a authority_n do_v not_o essential_o include_v such_o a_o infallibility_n but_o he_o go_v on_o and_o use_v a_o argument_n against_o i_o the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a to_o your_o own_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n before_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v complete_o finish_v but_o st._n paul_n say_v this_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v complete_o finish_v therefore_o st._n paul_n say_v this_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o itself_o alone_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n therefore_o than_o it_o have_v be_v false_a to_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o this_o end_n therefore_o st._n paul_n do_v not_o then_o say_v so_o ans_fw-fr beside_o what_o i_o say_v before_o concern_v the_o use_n which_o i_o make_v of_o this_o text_n and_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o what_o be_v here_o suppose_a that_o st._n paul_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o major_a that_o that_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v then_o sufficient_a before_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v complete_o finish_v in_o our_o sense_n to_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o for_o those_o use_n which_o be_v there_o speak_v of_o in_o that_o text_n to_o timothy_n therefore_o he_o mistake_v we_o if_o he_o think_v we_o hold_v that_o that_o part_n which_o be_v then_o write_v be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o yet_o more_o may_v be_v add_v by_o god_n though_o not_o by_o man_n for_o the_o canon_n then_o do_v not_o restrain_v god_n but_o man_n therefore_o we_o answer_v also_o to_o the_o assumption_n that_o if_o he_o take_v complete_o finish_v simple_o then_o indeed_o st._n paul_n say_v it_o before_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_o finish_v but_o if_o he_o take_v the_o word_n so_o as_o that_o part_n which_o be_v write_v be_v not_o sufficient_a in_o our_o sense_n we_o deny_v it_o for_o then_o god_n have_v not_o sufficient_o provide_v for_o the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n neither_o have_v the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n so_o the_o term_n in_o the_o former_a sense_n do_v not_o conclude_v in_o the_o latter_a they_o be_v conclude_v but_o not_o true_a so_o this_o specious_a argument_n be_v at_o a_o end_n without_o its_o end_n only_o we_o will_v now_o make_v use_n of_o the_o argument_n against_o he_o turn_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o we_o may_v speak_v and_o it_o be_v thus_o st._n paul_n say_v this_o of_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_o finish_v therefore_o now_o much_o rather_o after_o it_o be_v thus_o complete_o finish_v be_v it_o sufficient_a or_o more_o full_o thus_o the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a after_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_o finish_v st._n paul_n say_v this_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_o finish_v therefore_o his_o doctrine_n be_v contradictory_n to_o st._n paul_n ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la for_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o word_n be_v sufficient_a before_o the_o canon_n be_v complete_v and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a after_o it_o be_v complete_v again_o those_o word_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n blunt_v with_o those_o interpretation_n which_o your_o opinion_n license_v ans_fw-fr this_o be_v a_o plain_a cavil_n or_o a_o slander_n we_o license_v not_o any_o blunt_v of_o the_o edge_n of_o scripture_n by_o any_o misinterpretation_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o romanist_n do_v to_o the_o people_n neither_o be_v it_o fit_a for_o they_o to_o complain_v of_o blunt_v the_o edge_n who_o take_v away_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o only_o allow_v the_o people_n to_o be_v persuade_v in_o their_o own_o mind_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o pontifician_n authority_n or_o argument_n be_v able_a ex_fw-la vi_fw-la fua_fw-la to_o persuade_v they_o that_o what_o sense_n they_o give_v be_v authentic_a let_v they_o be_v persuade_v but_o it_o be_v very_o usual_a for_o they_o to_o quarrel_v first_o who_o be_v most_o guilty_a that_o so_o they_o may_v least_o be_v discover_v but_o who_o blunt_a scripture_n so_o much_o as_o they_o who_o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v like_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o may_v be_v turn_v any_o way_n let_v he_o that_o be_v without_o sin_n in_o this_o kind_n cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o we_o how_o they_o have_v adulterate_v scripture_n be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n apply_v according_a to_o the_o divinely-spirited_n interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o who_o hand_n hand_n guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v manage_v for_o the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n that_o it_o be_v sharp_a than_o any_o two_o edge_a sword_n ans_fw-fr how_o often_o must_v we_o be_v force_v to_o tell_v they_o that_o we_o exclude_v not_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o due_a representative_a towards_o compose_v of_o difference_n and_o also_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o now_o infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o that_o their_o decision_n be_v not_o the_o last_o resolutive_a of_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o such_o infallible_a judge_n for_o necessary_a controversy_n since_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o controversy_n about_o thing_n necessary_a and_o also_o that_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o judge_n infallible_a we_o must_v know_v it_o and_o who_o it_o be_v infallible_o and_o also_o then_o hereby_o be_v exclude_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o tradition_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n be_v to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n then_o what_o need_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o word_n not_o write_v as_o to_o that_o which_o equal_o bind_v in_o thing_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o then_o they_o destroy_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o whereas_o they_o say_v frequent_o that_o scripture_n alone_o do_v not_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n we_o can_v easy_o distinguish_v that_o alone_o have_v respect_n either_o to_o the_o church_n or_o to_o tradition_n as_o it_o oppose_v tradition_n so_o alone_o and_o it_o do_v exclude_v they_o and_o as_o it_o do_v respect_v the_o church_n so_o though_o it_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o use_n of_o a_o judge_n yet_o it_o do_v exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o judge_n infalble_a his_o other_o line_n unto_o the_o eleven_o num_fw-la may_v have_v be_v spare_v si_fw-mi non_fw-la verum_fw-la prius_fw-la nec_fw-la posterius_fw-la and_o they_o have_v also_o be_v answer_v and_o here_o wise_o he_o join_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o my_o former_a text_n 11._o num._n 11._o another_o text_n which_o i_o produce_v against_o he_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o fourteen_o number_n that_o he_o may_v handsome_o decline_v a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o if_o he_o will_v have_v deal_v punctual_o i_o shall_v have_v be_v answer_v in_o its_o place_n but_o we_o follow_v he_o at_o the_o run_a leap_n the_o text_n be_v that_o of_o christ_n search_v the_o scripture_n st._n john_n 5.39_o his_o exception_n be_v this_o to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o imperative_a mood_n evident_o be_v impossible_a therefore_o evident_o they_o do_v not_o contain_v a_o command_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o discourse_n ans_fw-fr first_o evident_a proof_n they_o have_v not_o best_o urge_v for_o than_o what_o will_v become_v of_o all_o their_o faith_n and_o all_o their_o discourse_n which_o do_v not_o amount_v to_o so_o much_o as_o probability_n second_o if_o it_o be_v more_o probable_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o imperative_a it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o weaken_v their_o cause_n since_o i_o be_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o propose_v the_o text_n by_o way_n of_o a_o respondent_fw-la not_o as_o a_o opponent_n therefore_o if_o i_o name_v a_o text_n which_o be_v but_o probable_a against_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o against_o they_o special_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o infallibility_n for_o a_o probable_a contradiction_n undo_v infallibility_n three_o it_o be_v in_o the_o syriack_n in_o the_o imperative_a mood_n and_o this_o interpretation_n if_o any_o other_o shall_v weigh_v with_o we_o
thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o text_n and_o not_o to_o a_o infallible_a judge_n for_o aught_o appear_v clear_a by_o my_o adversary_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n plain_o set_v down_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o consequence_n be_v plain_a as_o deny_v the_o reason_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n which_o shall_v be_v because_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_o furnish_v in_o scripture_n unto_o thing_n of_o faith_n then_o if_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o scripture_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o tradition_n to_o supply_v our_o faith_n in_o the_o matter_n so_o neither_o be_v there_o a_o infallible_a judge_n necessary_a to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o scripture_n manner_n of_o expression_n for_o all_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o in_o point_n of_o scripture_n must_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o two_o either_o that_o all_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o this_o bring_v in_o tradition_n with_o they_o or_o that_o which_o be_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o plain_o enough_o set_v down_o and_o this_o bring_v in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o infallible_a judge_n so_o then_o if_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o scripture_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n we_o need_v no_o infallible_a church_n either_o for_o object_n or_o infallible_a resolution_n of_o faith_n now_o as_o for_o the_o minor_a that_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o scripture_n those_o text_n prove_v sufficient_o and_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o that_o we_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o infallible_a judge_n he_o have_v not_o yet_o prove_v and_o i_o deny_v it_o yea_o what_o will_v they_o say_v if_o the_o last_o text_n only_o prove_v a_o elench_v thus._n if_o the_o cause_n of_o error_n be_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o scripture_n do_v plain_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a but_o the_o cause_n of_o err_v assign_v here_o by_o christ_n st._n mark_v 12.24.28_o be_v the_o not_o know_v of_o the_o scripture_n the_o minor_a be_v scripture_n the_o consequence_n also_o will_v be_v able_a to_o maintain_v itself_o but_o that_o they_o think_v that_o we_o can_v draw_v a_o consequent_a universal_a from_o a_o antecedent_n particular_a for_o the_o text_n there_o be_v apply_v to_o a_o particular_a point_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v first_o simple_o we_o can_v argue_v a_o universal_a conclusion_n from_o particular_a premise_n because_o the_o genus_fw-la contain_v potential_o more_o than_o one_o species_n but_o they_o know_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v a_o main_a point_n and_o comprehensive_a of_o more_o so_o that_o aquinas_n may_v well_o conclude_v he_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n it_o include_v also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 1._o ep._n cor._n 15.13_o if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a than_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v so_o then_o if_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v be_v right_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o resurrection_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n which_o suppose_v his_o death_n that_o his_o incarnation_n his_o incarnation_n god_n the_o father_n as_o he_o speak_v if_o you_o have_v know_v i_o you_o have_v know_v my_o father_n also_o than_o it_o do_v plain_o enough_o set_v down_o that_o which_o suppose_v as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o those_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n because_o they_o have_v enough_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n unless_o we_o say_v with_o the_o socinian_o that_o they_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o second_o if_o the_o resurrection_n be_v sufficient_o declare_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o be_v so_o fundamental_a a_o point_n what_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o other_o point_n which_o be_v also_o necessary_a shall_v not_o likewise_o be_v plain_o deliver_v and_o three_o if_o that_o and_o other_o point_n be_v competent_o enough_o reveal_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o err_v be_v the_o not_o know_v of_o the_o scripture_n not_o the_o not_o know_v of_o the_o church_n then_o sure_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o old_a reveal_v do_v set_v down_o that_o and_o other_o point_n with_o sufficient_a plainness_n unto_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o our_o purpose_n as_o for_o the_o consequence_n then_o from_o the_o former_a text_n which_o he_o think_v more_o probable_a that_o because_o they_o do_v err_v therefore_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n i_o answer_v first_o he_o argue_v ab_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la probabile_fw-la which_o be_v not_o rational_a ab_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la posse_fw-la be_v good_a but_o we_o can_v argue_v that_o because_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o therefore_o it_o be_v probable_a it_o shall_v for_o then_o because_o adam_n do_v sin_n we_o must_v say_v it_o be_v probable_a he_o shall_v sin_v and_o so_o he_o have_v not_o be_v create_v with_o a_o posse_fw-la peccare_fw-la and_o a_o posse_fw-la non_fw-la peccare_fw-la in_o equal_a freedom_n for_o probability_n must_v arise_v from_o a_o inclination_n and_o if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o case_n be_v different_a from_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o depravation_n by_o the_o fall_n do_v none_o incline_v the_o power_n of_o err_v to_o a_o actual_a error_n as_o the_o power_n of_o sin_v unto_o a_o actual_a sin_n we_o answer_v first_o that_o they_o have_v not_o best_o enlarge_v the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n by_o the_o fall_n lest_o they_o bring_v the_o trent_n council_n as_o to_o this_o point_n in_o danger_n of_o error_n and_o second_o we_o say_v that_o if_o they_o exclude_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n from_o take_v direction_n by_o the_o church_n so_o neither_o do_v we_o exclude_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n from_o take_v direction_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o they_o say_v man_n can_v err_v if_o with_o grace_n or_o by_o it_o they_o take_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n then_o sure_o with_o grace_n or_o by_o grace_n it_o may_v be_v as_o probable_a not_o to_o err_v through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o his_o consequence_n of_o more_o probability_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o plain_a because_o they_o do_v err_v be_v vain_a second_o if_o those_o who_o err_v be_v but_o a_o part_n and_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o those_o that_o do_v not_o err_v may_v be_v the_o great_a number_n if_o not_o the_o sober_a than_o it_o will_v follow_v by_o his_o own_o argument_n that_o this_o be_v plain_o enough_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n three_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v if_o he_o think_v that_o we_o hold_v thing_n so_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o that_o we_o can_v err_v whether_o we_o will_v keep_v the_o way_n or_o not_o for_o scripture_n do_v direct_o work_v upon_o the_o understanding_n grace_n upon_o the_o will_n it_o be_v therefore_o sufficient_a to_o we_o to_o say_v that_o thing_n necessary_a be_v so_o clear_o propose_v in_o scripture_n as_o that_o if_o we_o be_v diligent_a to_o know_v and_o follow_v scripture_n we_o need_v no_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n four_o he_o may_v have_v be_v advise_v that_o this_o discourse_n of_o he_o will_v return_v upon_o he_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o church_n for_o it_o shall_v seem_v then_o as_o have_v be_v often_o note_v thing_n be_v not_o so_o plain_o define_v by_o their_o church_n since_o there_o be_v such_o difference_n among_o they_o even_o in_o grand_a point_n five_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o knowledge_n in_o habitu_fw-la and_o knowledge_n in_o actu_fw-la their_o habitual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o resurrection_n in_o scripture_n may_v be_v good_a and_o it_o may_v be_v plain_o enough_o exhibit_v but_o they_o be_v defective_a in_o the_o actual_a knowledge_n in_o not_o consider_v those_o principle_n of_o scripture_n which_o may_v have_v conclude_v it_o according_a as_o our_o saviour_n do_v upon_o the_o place_n and_o sure_o as_o the_o not_o consider_v be_v the_o moral_a cause_n of_o most_o of_o our_o evil_a action_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o philosopher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o also_o say_v david_n i_o have_v consider_v my_o way_n and_o turn_v my_o foot_n into_o thy_o testimony_n so_o also_o be_v the_o not_o consider_v scripture_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o or_o most_o of_o our_o error_n at_o least_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o danger_n in_o the_o error_n we_o have_v and_o if_o they_o will_v study_v the_o scripture_n affectionate_o they_o can_v not_o err_v as_o they_o do_v the_o principle_n of_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a
unto_o habitual_a knowledge_n and_o yet_o error_n may_v come_v by_o want_n of_o actual_a knowledge_n either_o negative_o by_o not_o apply_v they_o or_o worse_o by_o misapply_v they_o they_o take_v such_o opinion_n first_o as_o be_v of_o use_n to_o they_o then_o will_v draw_v scripture_n to_o they_o as_o be_v observe_v but_o they_o shall_v apply_v their_o opinion_n to_o scripture_n not_o scripture_n to_o their_o opinion_n six_o and_o last_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v how_o near_o he_o come_v to_o blasphemy_n by_o come_v so_o near_o to_o a_o contradiction_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n say_v to_o they_o you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n and_o his_o consequence_n say_v by_o consequence_n that_o they_o may_v err_v though_o they_o do_v know_v the_o text_n because_o it_o do_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o the_o resurrection_n whereby_o he_o make_v either_o our_o saviour_n to_o affirm_v that_o they_o can_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n which_o our_o saviour_n plain_o suppose_v or_o else_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o not_o err_v be_v not_o to_o know_v the_o scripture_n as_o to_o that_o point_n which_o how_o he_o will_v answer_v at_o that_o great_a day_n i_o know_v not_o and_o so_o his_o syllogism_n come_v to_o nothing_o or_o worse_o than_o nothing_o for_o if_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v plain_o set_v down_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v err_v but_o they_o err_v therefore_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o his_o major_n be_v false_a if_o he_o take_v shall_v not_o have_v err_v ex_fw-la parte_fw-la officii_fw-la it_o be_v true_a but_o not_o to_o his_o purpose_n if_o he_o take_v it_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la event_n we_o it_o be_v to_o his_o purpose_n but_o not_o true_a it_o be_v not_o false_a that_o they_o may_v not_o have_v err_v but_o that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v it_o be_v false_a a_o posse_fw-la ad_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la non_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la mean_n be_v not_o always_o use_v or_o not_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v we_o know_v our_o duty_n plain_o in_o many_o thing_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o do_v it_o this_o argument_n be_v good_a against_o he_o man_n have_v err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o trent_n definition_n as_o have_v be_v say_v therefore_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o by_o the_o church_n but_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o good_a against_o we_o because_o we_o do_v not_o allow_v the_o form_n or_o rule_v of_o the_o argumentation_n his_o other_o answer_n be_v as_o uneffectual_a that_o they_o may_v err_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o in_o the_o read_n of_o they_o they_o do_v follow_v their_o own_o private_a interpretation_n which_o be_v the_o most_o ready_a way_n to_o err_v special_o when_o man_n oppose_v the_o public_a interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n ans_fw-fr and_o do_v this_o conclude_v contradictory_o to_o this_o proposition_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v if_o they_o attend_v to_o scripture_n second_o they_o may_v err_v if_o they_o attend_v to_o the_o church_n because_o for_o aught_o be_v yet_o confirm_v the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o therefore_o the_o sure_a way_n be_v to_o attend_v to_o scripture_n which_o they_o confess_v be_v infallible_a three_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o oppose_v the_o public_a interpretation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o allow_v more_o reverence_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n than_o to_o they_o four_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o who_o can_v submit_v intuitive_o to_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o question_n shall_v oppose_v the_o public_a interpretation_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o plain_a point_n of_o faith_n five_o maledict_v a_o glossa_fw-la quae_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la this_o gloss_n corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o there_o be_v here_o a_o limitation_n of_o christ_n word_n which_o else_o where_o he_o accuse_v we_o of_o without_o any_o colour_n from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text._n the_o text_n disert_o represent_v the_o cause_n of_o err_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v the_o not_o know_v of_o the_o scripture_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n he_o will_v not_o afford_v it_o right_n unless_o we_o take_v in_o also_o obedience_n to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o church_n too_o for_o otherwise_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v not_o then_o sure_o invest_v with_o the_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n which_o be_v not_o invest_v upon_o they_o as_o some_o of_o their_o most_o learned_a affirm_v till_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a six_o upon_o this_o whole_a matter_n it_o come_v to_o this_o that_o it_o be_v with_o they_o better_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n without_o the_o scripture_n even_o in_o plain_a point_n than_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o he_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o state_n of_o our_o question_n and_o how_o good_a this_o divinity_n be_v let_v those_o learned_a one_o of_o their_o church_n judge_n who_o will_v thus_o distinguish_v of_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a but_o not_o sufficient_a which_o also_o in_o my_o opinion_n be_v by_o they_o intend_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n indeed_o but_o not_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o scripture_n express_v but_o to_o bring_v in_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n not_o express_v 13._o num._n 13._o your_o five_o text_n be_v 2._o pet._n 1.19_o we_o have_v also_o a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n whereunto_o you_o do_v well_o that_o you_o take_v heed_n as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n until_o the_o day_n dawn_n and_o the_o daystar_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n his_o exception_n against_o the_o validity_n of_o this_o text_n be_v two_o one_o that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o there_o set_v down_o when_o s._n peter_n speak_v those_o word_n because_o the_o canon_n be_v not_o finish_v this_o we_o have_v full_o take_v away_o before_o the_o other_o be_v thus_o how_o will_v you_o prove_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n because_o one_o thing_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o ans_fw-fr to_o this_o first_o take_v that_o which_o be_v say_v before_o about_o the_o conclude_a all_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o because_o that_o of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v so_o with_o the_o reason_n thereof_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v good_a here_o also_o because_o he_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o that_o one_o point_n of_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o messiah_n may_v clear_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n this_o i_o think_v than_o we_o have_v gain_v that_o one_o point_n be_v clear_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o this_o it_o may_v be_v conceive_v he_o may_v grant_v i_o because_o i_o can_v draw_v no_o consequence_n from_o thence_o against_o he_o for_o so_o he_o insist_o how_o will_v you_o infer_v ergo_fw-la all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n we_o make_v use_v of_o it_o thus_o if_o this_o point_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n than_o other_o point_n also_o necessary_o concern_v his_o be_v the_o messiah_n must_v also_o clear_o be_v set_v down_o so_o then_o here_o be_v a_o wheel_n in_o a_o wheel_n yea_o many_o inclusive_o in_o one_o and_o those_o also_o clear_a but_o verum_fw-la prius_fw-la as_o it_o seem_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n second_o if_o i_o shall_v serve_v they_o with_o a_o quare_fw-la impedit_fw-la why_o do_v they_o not_o as_o well_o admit_v other_o point_n to_o be_v clear_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n what_o will_v they_o say_v sure_o they_o will_v say_v that_o this_o point_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o because_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a well_o then_o we_o reply_v if_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o necessary_n than_o we_o may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o degree_n of_o necessary_n or_o if_o this_o be_v set_v down_o only_o as_o necessary_a why_o not_o all_o necessary_n for_o the_o rule_n be_v good_a a_o quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la if_o that_o clear_o set_v down_o as_o necessary_a than_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v clear_o set_v down_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o universality_n sure_o with_o god_n who_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o number_n weight_n and_o measure_n for_o although_o that_o axiom_n idem_fw-la quae_fw-la idem_fw-la semper_fw-la facit_fw-la idem_fw-la do_v not_o always_o follow_v as_o in_o finite_a agent_n because_o they_o may_v be_v defective_a in_o their_o power_n and_o there_o may_v be_v want_n of_o disposition_n in_o the_o matter_n they_o work_v upon_o but_o it_o can_v be_v
and_o consequent_o hope_v too_o yet_o we_o may_v hope_v to_o make_v his_o charge_n nought_o and_o our_o faith_n good_a but_o we_o need_v not_o say_v any_o more_o than_o what_o have_v be_v say_v whereunto_o he_o have_v say_v as_o much_o as_o come_v to_o little_a yet_o now_o he_o divert_v hither_o we_o must_v say_v therefore_o again_o that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o question_n betwixt_o we_o how_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o this_o be_v suppose_v betwixt_o we_o as_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n and_o we_o say_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o argumentation_n be_v to_o as_o much_o purpose_n as_o if_o when_o we_o be_v at_o london_n we_o must_v go_v back_o again_o because_o we_o do_v not_o go_v the_o new_a way_n as_o to_o the_o assumption_n then_o we_o deny_v it_o we_o do_v ground_n our_o assent_n to_o this_o truth_n upon_o divine_a revelation_n yea_o moreover_o we_o return_v he_o his_o argument_n in_o term_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n so_o natural_a it_o be_v for_o those_o to_o speak_v most_o who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o cover_v their_o own_o defect_n they_o can_v ground_v their_o assent_n to_o this_o truth_n upon_o divine_a revelation_n because_o they_o ground_n it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o must_v either_o have_v a_o immediate_a revelation_n that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a or_o else_o they_o must_v ground_v it_o upon_o the_o general_a sum_n of_o reveal_v truth_n and_o that_o be_v the_o scripture_n for_o as_o for_o tradition_n that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v of_o no_o weight_n as_o to_o this_o business_n and_o universal_a tradition_n must_v go_v upon_o account_n of_o the_o church_n now_o then_o if_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v a_o revelation_n immediate_a that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o propose_v those_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a they_o make_v that_o to_o be_v of_o use_n to_o they_o which_o they_o deny_v to_o we_o who_o have_v as_o good_a reason_n to_o say_v that_o we_o may_v as_o well_o have_v a_o immediate_a revelation_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o they_o ground_n their_o faith_n upon_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n than_o they_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n for_o itself_o so_o then_o either_o they_o must_v come_v to_o we_o or_o else_o indeed_o they_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n and_o therefore_o have_v he_o no_o cause_n to_o be_v offend_v with_o that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o themselves_o as_o we_o assent_v to_o prime_a principle_n in_o the_o habit_n of_o intelligence_n to_o this_o he_o say_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o be_v the_o book_n of_o toby_n and_o judith_n as_o well_o as_o these_o but_o do_v he_o say_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o do_v he_o not_o then_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o ancient_a church_n who_o do_v not_o as_o have_v be_v show_v give_v equal_a reverence_n to_o these_o as_o to_o the_o book_n canonical_a if_o they_o be_v as_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o the_o book_n canonical_a than_o they_o err_v in_o not_o receive_v they_o with_o equal_a belief_n and_o if_o they_o err_v than_o our_o adversary_n be_v lose_v and_o now_o as_o for_o our_o assent_n to_o the_o canonical_a book_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o assent_n to_o prime_a principle_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o like_a to_o prosper_v in_o the_o abuse_n of_o it_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o we_o be_v not_o now_o to_o deal_v with_o one_o that_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o to_o a_o unbeliever_n hereof_o we_o shall_v use_v other_o argument_n rational_o to_o induce_v he_o to_o a_o good_a opinion_n hereof_o but_o when_o we_o be_v demand_v by_o a_o christian_a what_o be_v it_o that_o ground_n our_o faith_n of_o scripture_n one_o will_v think_v we_o may_v say_v that_o we_o be_v resolve_v to_o a_o divine_a faith_n hereof_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dispose_v our_o assent_n to_o they_o as_o of_o themselves_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o assent_n to_o prime_a principle_n and_o therefore_o second_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o our_o assent_n to_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v by_o a_o natural_a light_n as_o our_o assent_n to_o prime_a principle_n but_o that_o our_o assent_n be_v make_v to_o they_o by_o way_n of_o intelligence_n through_o the_o spirit_n the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o show_v we_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v worthy_a of_o belief_n for_o itself_o be_v supernatural_a but_o when_o that_o come_v we_o believe_v it_o as_o we_o do_v prime_a principle_n not_o by_o discourse_n but_o because_o it_o be_v credible_a of_o itself_o i'faith_o herein_o bear_v more_o proportion_n to_o intelligence_n than_o to_o science_n because_o we_o do_v not_o in_o faith_n use_v a_o reason_n to_o the_o act_n as_o we_o do_v in_o science_n and_o this_o be_v intimate_v in_o the_o common_a read_n of_o that_o text_n of_o the_o prophet_n si_fw-mi non_fw-la crediderint_fw-la non_fw-la intelligent_a if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o shall_v not_o understand_v so_o then_o since_o faith_n be_v a_o supernatural_a habit_n as_o the_o schoolman_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v infuse_v it_o into_o we_o as_o be_v a_o habit_n infuse_v as_o they_o speak_v and_o this_o do_v dispose_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o by_o he_o indict_v and_o one_o will_v think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o better_a ground_n to_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o he_o say_v so_o than_o to_o believe_v it_o because_o the_o church_n say_v so_o and_o it_o be_v more_o about_o because_o i_o can_v believe_v it_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o god_n give_v testimony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o why_o can_v we_o then_o believe_v god_n testae_fw-la seipso_fw-la so_o all_o the_o assent_n we_o give_v to_o they_o be_v make_v upon_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o centre_n in_o which_o all_o line_n of_o scripture_n do_v meet_v and_o terminate_v therefore_o may_v he_o have_v spare_v that_o which_o follow_v have_v you_o bring_v all_o the_o infallibility_n of_o christian_a religion_n unto_o this_o last_o ground_n to_o be_v trample_v by_o the_o socinian_o ans_fw-fr first_o i_o do_v not_o see_v what_o reason_n we_o have_v to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n so_o as_o to_o please_v the_o socinian_n one_o who_o maintain_v the_o protestant_a cause_n be_v prejudice_v by_o suspicion_n of_o be_v incline_v to_o socinianism_n and_o i_o be_o now_o find_v fault_n with_o for_o not_o provide_v for_o their_o satisfaction_n in_o our_o principle_n well_o but_o second_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o socinian_o do_v abhor_v this_o tenure_n of_o scripture_n and_o three_o they_o to_o be_v sure_a do_v trample_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n as_o infallible_a and_o therefore_o this_o be_v to_o be_v return_v home_o to_o the_o romanist_n and_o also_o upon_o the_o former_a ground_n may_v he_o have_v omit_v what_o follow_v from_o do_v you_o expect_v unto_o all_o that_o you_o believe_v for_o although_o the_o object_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o itself_o as_o a_o prime_a principle_n yet_o be_v there_o not_o a_o natural_a light_n for_o it_o that_o come_v supernatural_o and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v a_o supernatural_a habit_n but_o if_o they_o will_v be_v account_v such_o rational_a man_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o scripture_n they_o do_v deserve_v from_o the_o socinian_n a_o negative_a reverence_n by_o a_o positive_a favour_n to_o they_o but_o again_o how_o far_o be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v different_a from_o the_o determination_n of_o ratisbon_n in_o their_o four_o session_n scripturae_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la perfectae_fw-la quoad_fw-la perfectionem_fw-la eredibilitatis_fw-la et_fw-la exactissimae_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v say_v perfect_a as_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o credibility_n and_o most_o exact_a truth_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o credibility_n belong_v to_o the_o first_o principle_n which_o be_v indemonstrable_a and_o as_o those_o principle_n have_v themselves_o immobiliter_fw-la unto_o science_n as_o aquinas_n so_o the_o scripture_n have_v themselves_o unto_o divinity_n here_o we_o must_v rest_v and_o if_o every_o one_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o this_o account_n this_o do_v not_o derogate_v from_o the_o credibility_n of_o the_o object_n thus_o we_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n be_v evident_a of_o its_o own_o self_n need_v no_o further_a proof_n for_o the_o require_v
a_o infallible_a assent_n no_o more_o than_o the_o first_o principle_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o intelligence_n and_o also_o therefore_o upon_o the_o premise_n that_o which_o conclude_v the_o number_n may_v have_v be_v forbear_v indeed_o you_o have_v bring_v your_o whole_a religion_n to_o as_o pitiful_a a_o case_n as_o your_o adversary_n can_v wish_v it_o these_o brave_a word_n do_v not_o hurt_v a_o solid_a cause_n they_o be_v to_o be_v return_v to_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v who_o have_v bring_v religion_n to_o so_o pitiful_a a_o case_n as_o the_o pontifician_n who_o must_v have_v religion_n make_v accomodable_a to_o their_o pride_n and_o covetuousness_n no_o case_n of_o religion_n so_o pitiful_a as_o uncertainty_n no_o such_o uncertainty_n of_o religion_n as_o with_o they_o for_o if_o they_o ground_n their_o religion_n upon_o the_o determination_n of_o council_n wherein_o only_a bishop_n have_v their_o vote_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o confirmation_n thereof_o no_o man_n can_v according_a to_o their_o principle_n be_v certain_a whether_o there_o be_v a_o true_a pope_n or_o true_a bishop_n as_o have_v be_v say_v moreover_o we_o can_v make_v use_n of_o intrinsical_a argument_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o they_o we_o can_v make_v use_n of_o extrinsecall_a argument_n better_o for_o we_o make_v use_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o do_v give_v it_o in_o this_o point_n as_o much_o reverence_n as_o be_v due_a thereunto_o but_o therefore_o till_o that_o which_o be_v here_o say_v for_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v disprove_v and_o also_o till_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o we_o do_v not_o make_v use_n of_o these_o argument_n towards_o our_o faith_n of_o scripture_n because_o we_o do_v not_o pitch_v our_o final_a resolution_n in_o they_o our_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o religion_n be_v as_o good_a and_o sound_a as_o they_o yea_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o own_o subjective_a faith_n more_o yea_o the_o romanist_n may_v know_v that_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v that_o estius_n do_v differ_v from_o they_o upon_o this_o point_n and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o faith_n to_o be_v beget_v by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o b._n of_o senten_a 23_o do_v yea_o also_o stapleton_n in_o his_o triplication_n against_o whitaker_n say_v p._n 103._o ego_fw-la igitur_fw-la quicquid_fw-la in_o haec_fw-la causa_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la tribuendum_fw-la est_fw-la plenissime_fw-la assignavi_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o have_v most_o full_o assign_v what_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o cause_n assert_v these_o two_o thing_n both_o that_o by_o faith_n infuse_v alone_o or_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n alone_o all_o faith_n may_v be_v beget_v when_o it_o please_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v any_o extraordinary_o immediate_o and_o also_o although_o ordinary_o a_o thing_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o no_o faith_n do_v efficacious_o follow_v without_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n infuse_v by_o god_n or_o without_o the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o again_o the_o same_o in_o the_o next_o page_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n to_o clear_v himself_o of_o the_o suspicion_n of_o give_v no_o more_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o point_n than_o those_o who_o put_v the_o last_o reason_n of_o believe_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v disert_o ego_fw-la enim_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o i_o have_v deny_v and_o do_v deny_v that_o the_o last_o reason_n of_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o upon_o that_o head_n that_o that_o last_o proposition_n or_o resolution_n i_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o have_v without_o the_o inward_a gift_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o he_o who_o believe_v this_o believe_v this_o by_o a_o gift_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o humane_a faith_n or_o acquisite_a but_o especial_o upon_o that_o head_n that_o without_o any_o testification_n of_o the_o church_n or_o notice_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o proposition_n that_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o the_o only_a magisterie_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n one_o may_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n alone_o do_v believe_v many_o thing_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v invincible_o against_o durandus_fw-la and_o other_o since_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o formal_a reason_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o some_o believe_v without_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o none_o can_v believe_v without_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o the_o proper_a and_o formal_a reason_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o must_v be_v the_o testimony_n the_o doctrine_n the_o magistery_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o he_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v less_o between_o stapleton_n and_o i_o than_o betwixt_o my_o adversary_n and_o i_o when_o all_o be_v do_v therefore_o we_o must_v come_v to_o this_o of_o the_o father_n cathedram_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o coelis_fw-la qui_fw-la corda_fw-la docet_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la he_o have_v his_o chair_n in_o heaven_n that_o teach_v heart_n on_o earth_n and_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o salvation_n rom_n 10.10_o 21._o num._n 21._o therefore_o in_o the_o follow_a number_n he_o need_v not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o my_o differ_v from_o other_o of_o our_o own_o church_n in_o this_o point_n let_v they_o agree_v with_o their_o own_o man_n let_v bannes_n and_o stapleton_n agree_v with_o durand_n or_o if_o they_o can_v be_v reconcile_v let_v they_o never_o hereafter_o make_v any_o difference_n among_o ourselves_o a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v then_o no_o more_o reproach_n to_o i_o to_o differ_v from_o other_o than_o for_o some_o of_o they_o as_o for_o the_o three_o then_o who_o he_o say_v i_o differ_v from_o mr._n chillingworth_n dr._n cowell_n and_o mr._n hooker_n if_o they_o do_v not_o agree_v it_o it_o be_v no_o infallible_a argument_n against_o i_o even_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o three_o but_o also_o as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o say_v and_o my_o adversary_n may_v have_v know_v that_o he_o hold_v not_o faith_n in_o the_o high_a notion_n of_o a_o divine_a assent_n as_o they_o do_v but_o that_o a_o moral_a assurance_n be_v sufficient_a to_o it_o and_o sufficient_o influxive_a into_o necessary_a practice_n and_o therefore_o have_v this_o opinion_n of_o faith_n he_o conceive_v no_o such_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a ground_n hereof_o but_o take_v therefore_o a_o common_a principle_n for_o his_o motive_n hereof_o namely_o universal_a tradition_n second_o if_o he_o take_v not_o his_o ground_n from_o my_o adversary_n what_o do_v they_o get_v by_o he_o for_o in_o his_o sixty_o six_o page_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o he_o that_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o that_o all_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v be_v true_a yea_o moreover_o the_o same_o p._n 135._o do_v fair_o show_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v give_v assurance_n hereof_o which_o he_o say_v indeed_o be_v not_o rational_a and_o discursive_a but_o supernatural_a and_o infuse_v a_o assurance_n it_o may_v be_v to_o himself_o but_o not_o to_o any_o other_o and_o again_o p._n 211._o that_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o be_v very_o fit_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v think_v to_o come_v from_o god_n nec_fw-la vox_fw-la hominem_fw-la sonat_fw-la and_o be_v not_o then_o in_o his_o opinion_n the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o then_o he_o have_v raise_v faith_n to_o that_o height_n of_o a_o divine_a assent_n as_o my_o adversary_n do_v it_o be_v very_o like_v he_o will_v have_v think_v better_a of_o this_o assurance_n by_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v more_o ordinary_a since_o universal_a tradition_n if_o it_o have_v any_o weight_n must_v rest_v in_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o also_o he_o contradistinguish_v not_o only_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o place_n but_o to_o the_o present_a universal_a church_n for_o time_n because_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o church_n but_o by_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o two_o who_o judgement_n he_o oppose_v to_o my_o opinion_n i_o think_v they_o may_v receive_v convenient_a satisfaction_n by_o what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o former_a that_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v this_o assurance_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o
they_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n the_o strength_n of_o this_o reason_n be_v resolve_v into_o this_o proposition_n whatsoever_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o canonical_a and_o this_o proposition_n be_v false_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o st._n jerom_n distinction_n yea_o also_o by_o the_o canon_n itself_o for_o it_o say_v liceat_fw-la etiam_fw-la legi_fw-la passiones_fw-la martyrum_fw-la cum_fw-la anniversarii_fw-la dies_fw-la eorum_fw-la celebrantur_fw-la itmay_n be_v lawful_a also_o to_o read_v the_o passion_n of_o the_o martyr_n when_o their_o anniversary_n day_n be_v celebrate_v and_o also_o if_o that_o reason_n do_v bind_v the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n to_o establish_v they_o as_o canonical_a why_o do_v it_o not_o as_o well_o bound_v st._n jerom_n in_o who_o time_n the_o book_n also_o be_v read_v if_o they_o be_v universal_o read_v and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_o instruct_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n without_o they_o till_o st._n augustine_n time_n which_o be_v above_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o bellarmin_n confess_v why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n be_v well_o enough_o without_o they_o still_o for_o either_o there_o must_v be_v nothing_o in_o they_o material_a or_o expositionall_a which_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o god_n church_n or_o else_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o the_o pure_a and_o best_a time_n must_v be_v unprovided_a thereof_o as_o canonical_o to_o ground_n faith_n if_o they_o confess_v the_o former_a we_o have_v what_o we_o will_v if_o the_o latter_a beside_o other_o consequence_n they_o destroy_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o council_n themselves_o or_o as_o some_o now_o will_v say_v by_o succession_n of_o tradition_n therefore_o by_o this_o instance_n he_o get_v nothing_o it_o be_v neither_o proof_n nor_o disproof_n 28._o num._n 28._o here_o he_o triumph_v before_o the_o victory_n he_o do_v here_o put_v a_o new_a face_n upon_o a_o old_a argument_n if_o you_o say_v that_o we_o must_v have_v a_o special_a spirit_n that_o be_v new_a eye_n to_o see_v it_o than_o you_o who_o have_v this_o spirit_n be_v all_o prophet_n discover_v by_o private_a revelation_n make_v to_o yourselves_o that_o which_o all_o mankind_n beside_o can_v not_o and_o can_v discover_v this_o argument_n prophylactical_a preserve_v they_o little_a a_o special_a spirit_n be_v considerable_a two_o way_n either_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la subjectum_fw-la or_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la objectum_fw-la it_o may_v be_v special_a in_o the_o first_o sense_n and_o not_o in_o the_o latter_a now_o it_o be_v the_o special_a spirit_n in_o the_o latter_a sense_n which_o make_v the_o prophet_n when_o some_o new_a thing_n be_v reveal_v thus_o we_o deny_v any_o special_a spirit_n which_o rather_o belong_v to_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v all_o thing_n for_o necessary_a faith_n and_o manner_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n that_o so_o they_o may_v find_v in_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n the_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o they_o can_v find_v in_o scripture_n as_o be_v note_v but_o also_o the_o special_a faith_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n may_v be_v subdistinguish_v it_o be_v considerable_a either_o as_o opposit_o to_o those_o who_o have_v not_o faith_n or_o respective_o to_o those_o who_o have_v faith_n in_o the_o first_o way_n we_o say_v it_o be_v special_a for_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o thes_n 3.2_o but_o if_o it_o be_v take_v respective_o to_o those_o who_o have_v faith_n we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o special_a but_o common_a for_o there_o be_v no_o true_a dogmatic_a faith_n but_o such_o as_o stapleton_n and_o their_o schoolman_n confess_v yea_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v return_v to_o they_o too_o if_o they_o say_v they_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o see_v all_o truth_n infallible_o to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o church_n they_o have_v the_o new_a eye_n and_o they_o be_v all_o prophet_n discern_v by_o private_a revelation_n make_v to_o they_o self_n that_o which_o all_o mankind_n beside_o can_v not_o discover_v so_o then_o the_o other_o old_a argument_n which_o here_o he_o incrustate_n that_o if_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v such_o as_o of_o a_o prime_a principle_n as_o this_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v and_o not_o be_v in_o the_o self_n same_o circumstance_n then_o all_o shall_v assent_v to_o it_o as_o they_o do_v to_o this_o principle_n be_v again_o slight_v for_o first_o every_o one_o have_v not_o that_o supernatural_a light_n or_o eye_n to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o first_o principle_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o have_v say_v before_o but_o than_o second_o the_o prime_a principle_n in_o metaphysic_n be_v not_o so_o clear_a as_o to_o exclude_v all_o necessity_n of_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n of_o they_o though_o they_o do_v natural_o persuade_v assent_n so_o there_o be_v mean_n of_o know_v the_o scripture_n which_o do_v not_o prejudice_v their_o autopisty_a through_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o there_o may_v be_v a_o fail_n of_o belief_n yea_o three_o the_o spirit_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v john_n 3.8_o yea_o fourthly_a many_o truth_n be_v assent_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o say_v which_o be_v not_o prophorical_o acknowledge_v and_o yet_o some_o of_o their_o own_o man_n have_v confess_v this_o truth_n be_v overcome_v by_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o it_o five_o it_o be_v retort_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o prime_a principle_n for_o the_o evidence_n of_o faith_n than_o all_o will_v assent_v to_o it_o but_o all_o do_v not_o assent_v to_o it_o therefore_o by_o his_o own_o argument_n the_o church_n authority_n be_v not_o the_o prime_a principle_n but_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o then_o plead_v a_o fortiori_fw-la for_o the_o church_n the_o church_n have_v far_o more_o proof_n of_o her_o assistance_n than_o every_o private_a protestant_n ans_fw-fr first_o we_o have_v not_o to_o need_v be_v put_v upon_o the_o compare_n with_o the_o church_n if_o the_o church_n have_v infallible_a assistance_n herein_o yet_o private_a christian_n may_v have_v it_o too_o and_o that_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o in_o this_o point_n but_o second_o the_o church_n be_v no_o otherwise_o infallible_o certain_a hereof_o than_o we_o for_o this_o be_v assure_v to_o every_o one_o that_o vote_n it_o in_o the_o council_n the_o same_o way_n if_o indeed_o they_o do_v give_v their_o suffrage_n upon_o a_o ground_n infallible_a three_o the_o private_a christian_a be_v assure_v hereof_o by_o the_o spirit_n for_o himself_o therefore_o the_o council_n need_v not_o be_v infallible_a herein_o as_o to_o teach_v it_o because_o we_o be_v thus_o teach_v of_o god_n if_o the_o compare_n be_v thus_o if_o the_o private_a christian_a be_v thus_o assist_v to_o teach_v other_o much_o more_o the_o council_n this_o will_v be_v somewhat_o like_a but_o the_o private_a christian_a do_v not_o undertake_v this_o and_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o this_o infallibility_n do_v attend_v the_o council_n which_o do_v undertake_v to_o teach_v other_o because_o there_o be_v use_v of_o its_o teach_n without_o infallibility_n and_o no_o need_n of_o its_o teach_n infallible_o this_o point_n which_o we_o be_v infallible_o persuade_v of_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o fourthly_a we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o as_o much_o consequence_n wherein_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v assist_v with_o infallibility_n as_o this_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o if_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o this_o we_o need_v not_o depend_v upon_o any_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n for_o other_o point_n since_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v with_o sufficient_a plainness_n set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n five_o as_o before_o the_o christian_n be_v assure_v hereof_o before_o pope_n or_o council_n in_o which_o he_o place_v the_o authority_n infallible_a of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o if_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v this_o privilege_n they_o speak_v of_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v first_o a_o true_a part_n and_o then_o also_o that_o the_o part_n have_v the_o property_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v these_o we_o can_v say_v as_o much_o yea_o more_o for_o our_o own_o church_n and_o last_o they_o be_v yet_o to_o show_v their_o clear_a proof_n of_o assistance_n to_o the_o church_n than_o a_o private_a christian_a have_v for_o the_o hard_a of_o all_o point_n namely_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o indeed_o if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o point_n of_o controversy_n in_o divinity_n be_v not_o the_o hard_a point_n
and_o be_v therefore_o assure_v we_o by_o the_o spirit_n not_o because_o it_o be_v the_o hard_a point_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o faith_n perhaps_o because_o our_o divine_n often_o call_v the_o scripture_n a_o undoubted_a principle_n the_o first_o principle_n you_o think_v they_o hold_v this_o principle_n like_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o science_n which_o be_v therefore_o indemonstrable_a because_o they_o be_v of_o themselves_o as_o evident_a as_o any_o reason_n you_o can_v bring_v to_o make_v they_o more_o evident_a ans_fw-fr no_o i_o have_v better_a reason_n for_o it_o than_o the_o expression_n of_o their_o own_o divine_n although_o we_o need_v no_o more_o if_o they_o in_o effect_n confess_v as_o much_o as_o will_v serve_v we_o in_o the_o dispute_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o or_o any_o other_o to_o fix_v a_o foot_n in_o divinity_n but_o upon_o this_o ground_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o assurance_n for_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n than_o what_o we_o have_v in_o kind_n for_o virgil_n or_o cicero_n work_n yea_o moreover_o their_o own_o divine_n give_v this_o character_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v true_a of_o it_o it_o be_v not_o true_a because_o they_o say_v it_o and_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v true_a because_o they_o say_v it_o we_o make_v use_v of_o the_o conclusion_n or_o if_o it_o be_v a_o unquestioned_a principle_n because_o it_o be_v already_o grant_v to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o all_o party_n then_o why_o do_v my_o adversary_n call_v this_o into_o question_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n and_o by_o all_o party_n grant_v and_o also_o this_o make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o common_a principle_n that_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o all_o party_n and_o therefore_o be_v we_o to_o be_v try_v by_o it_o as_o by_o a_o common_a principle_n and_o not_o by_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o grant_v by_o all_o party_n to_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v try_v by_o special_o if_o it_o be_v assume_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o only_a church_n for_o then_o there_o will_v be_v a_o double_a controversy_n one_o in_o thesi_fw-la whether_o all_o faith_n be_v ultimate_o to_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o church_n and_o then_o another_o in_o hypothesi_fw-la whether_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o church_n but_o we_o now_o put_v together_o that_o which_o he_o distinguish_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o undoubted_a principle_n and_o the_o first_o principle_n but_o not_o as_o the_o principle_n of_o science_n which_o be_v therefore_o indemonstrable_a etc._n etc._n we_o discourse_v thus_o that_o which_o be_v indemonstrable_a be_v as_o the_o principle_n of_o science_n but_o that_o which_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o any_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v for_o it_o to_o make_v it_o more_o evident_a be_v indemonstrable_a therefore_o be_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n of_o science_n the_o proposition_n be_v with_o my_o adversary_n the_o property_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o science_n the_o assumption_n be_v with_o my_o adversary_n the_o very_a ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la indemonstrabilitatis_fw-la so_o then_o if_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o any_o reason_n that_o can_v be_v bring_v for_o it_o to_o make_v it_o more_o evident_a than_o we_o have_v what_o we_o now_o contend_v for_o now_o than_o if_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n a_o priori_fw-la then_o be_v it_o as_o evident_a as_o any_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v for_o it_o but_o verum_fw-la prius_fw-la for_o the_o church_n must_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o have_v often_o prove_v and_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o church_n a_o priori_fw-la then_o be_v the_o church_n the_o cause_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o say_v and_o therefore_o may_v we_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o infallible_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o be_v it_o as_o a_o prime_a principle_n in_o science_n indemonstrable_a and_o yet_o my_o adversary_n will_v circumvent_v i_o in_o the_o next_o number_n and_o bring_v i_o into_o a_o circle_n think_v that_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o give_v another_o proof_n by_o the_o spirit_n why_o by_o the_o spirit_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o stop_v he_o at_o first_o before_o he_o go_v his_o round_n for_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v itself_o good_a to_o we_o of_o itself_o and_o that_o therefore_o we_o need_v another_o revelation_n secure_a from_o all_o illusion_n to_o ascertain_v i_o the_o former_a ans_fw-fr this_o be_v little_o less_o than_o trifle_a for_o first_o we_o say_v not_o this_o internal_a testimony_n be_v provable_a to_o other_o faith_n objective_n be_v provable_a by_o scripture_n but_o faith_n subjective_n be_v not_o prove_v but_o somewhat_o show_v by_o a_o good_a life_n for_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n as_o st._n paul_n and_o optimus_fw-la syllogismus_fw-la bona_fw-la vita_fw-la as_o he_o say_v the_o best_a argument_n to_o other_o we_o have_v of_o faith_n be_v a_o good_a life_n but_o second_o we_o be_v as_o secure_v of_o the_o not_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o the_o kind_n yea_o if_o we_o can_v be_v ascertain_v by_o the_o same_o testimony_n then_o how_o can_v the_o council_n be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n yea_o three_o we_o be_v upon_o the_o high_a ground_n for_o the_o assecuration_n of_o our_o faith_n because_o we_o resolve_v it_o into_o that_o which_o be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o have_v they_o less_o cause_n to_o put_v we_o upon_o interrogatory_n why_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n for_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o itself_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o his_o dilemma_n then_o either_o i_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o if_o i_o do_v not_o how_o be_o i_o then_o secure_a if_o i_o do_v by_o what_o infallible_a mean_n if_o i_o say_v by_o the_o scripture_n you_o must_v needs_o laugh_v because_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o act_n of_o belief_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr we_o say_v first_o that_o he_o misappli_v the_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n try_v the_o spirit_n 4.1_o 1_o joh._n 4.1_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n i_o hope_v he_o think_v but_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v our_o argument_n against_o they_o and_o therefore_o can_v we_o not_o sit_v down_o with_o absolute_a belief_n to_o what_o be_v propose_v by_o man_n till_o we_o see_v it_o centre_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o believe_v infallible_o come_v from_o god_n second_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o spirit_n there_o enjoin_v be_v by_o examine_v the_o matter_n whether_o proportionable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n but_o here_o he_o draw_v it_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o scripture_n itself_o which_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o trial_n three_o though_o we_o do_v not_o try_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n attest_v to_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n yet_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n may_v we_o compare_v with_o universal_a tradition_n which_o serve_v we_o for_o our_o use_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n not_o for_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o causality_n thereof_o four_o to_o be_v even_o with_o my_o adversary_n we_o return_v they_o their_o dilemma_n they_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o say_v be_v infallible_a but_o we_o must_v infallible_o know_v that_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o this_o can_v be_v infallible_o know_v but_o by_o a_o revelation_n secure_a from_o all_o illusion_n and_o how_o come_v they_o by_o this_o revelation_n either_o they_o try_v the_o spirit_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v they_o be_v secure_a if_o they_o do_v by_o what_o infallible_a mean_n if_o they_o say_v by_o the_o church_n we_o must_v needs_o laugh_v because_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o act_n of_o belief_n by_o which_o we_o first_o begin_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a therefore_o all_o his_o again_n be_v send_v back_o again_o and_o the_o issue_n of_o all_o will_v come_v to_o this_o either_o this_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o of_o the_o
know_v that_o de_fw-fr officio_fw-la this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o constitute_v and_o so_o of_o distinguish_v the_o church_n and_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o s._n austin_n and_o also_o some_o of_o their_o own_o divine_n do_v prove_v the_o church_n by_o yea_o this_o be_v the_o way_n which_o my_o adversary_n must_v take_v and_o do_v and_o three_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o to_o those_o who_o do_v profess_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v we_o even_o with_o they_o in_o this_o kind_n for_o as_o they_o deal_v with_o heathen_n as_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n so_o do_v we_o also_o as_o the_o father_n be_v wont_v by_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o i_o can_v use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o inducement_n unto_o the_o heathen_a although_o the_o pontifician_n can_v use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o i_o as_o the_o determinative_a of_o faith_n so_o than_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n infallible_o to_o be_v infallible_a without_o dependence_n upon_o the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v indeed_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n otherwise_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o a_o circle_n out_o of_o which_o they_o can_v never_o move_v their_o foot_n the_o thirty_o second_o number_n have_v in_o it_o much_o and_o little_a longae_fw-la 32._o num._n 32._o ambages_fw-la sed_fw-la summa_fw-la sequor_fw-la fastigia_fw-la rerum_fw-la the_o intendment_n of_o it_o be_v to_o fix_v the_o wheel_n by_o assure_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a without_o run_v to_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o it_o will_v prove_v their_o faith_n good_a because_o they_o believe_v those_o who_o deliver_v it_o have_v commission_n from_o god_n but_o this_o satisfi_v not_o because_o the_o question_n rebound_v upon_o they_o why_o they_o believe_v that_o those_o who_o deliver_v it_o have_v commission_n from_o god_n if_o they_o say_v they_o have_v assurance_n thereof_o by_o the_o spirit_n than_o they_o come_v to_o our_o kind_n of_o assurance_n therefore_o they_o determine_v this_o belief_n upon_o two_o motive_n one_o come_v from_o the_o doctrine_n in_o order_n to_o god_n change_n of_o life_n the_o other_o from_o god_n in_o order_n to_o the_o doctrine_n in_o miracle_n and_o there_o he_o amplify_v in_o two_o leaf_n which_o may_v have_v be_v dispatch_v in_o three_o word_n indeed_o the_o first_o he_o say_v not_o much_o of_o for_o it_o be_v no_o conclude_a argument_n for_o first_o it_o do_v not_o distinguish_v doctrine_n for_o thus_o the_o jew_n the_o arrian_n the_o socinian_n the_o sectary_n may_v prove_v his_o doctrine_n infallible_a second_o the_o good_a life_n if_o it_o be_v a_o result_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o not_o from_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n but_o the_o general_a fundamental_n of_o christian_a faith_n wherein_o the_o controversy_n lie_v not_o yea_o three_o if_o this_o new_a life_n do_v proceed_v by_o way_n of_o emanation_n or_o absolute_a connexion_n from_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n we_o may_v join_v issue_n with_o they_o and_o have_v the_o better_a yea_o fourthly_a judas_n have_v a_o right_a commission_n and_o yet_o no_o good_a life_n yea_o five_o the_o manner_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v prove_v good_a by_o the_o practical_a doctrine_n than_o speculative_a doctrine_n if_o any_o doctrine_n ultimate_o be_v such_o prove_v good_a by_o manner_n therefore_o good_a life_n be_v no_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o divine_a doctrine_n nor_o yet_o of_o a_o divine_a commission_n yea_o sixthly_a dato_n non_fw-la concesso_fw-la that_o we_o mighr_fw-mi know_v the_o church_n and_o doctrine_n of_o it_o to_o be_v infallible_a by_o good_a life_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o their_o postulate_v that_o god_n shall_v teach_v we_o all_o verity_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n as_o stapleton_n speak_v then_o as_o to_o the_o other_o motive_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o true_a church_n namely_o miracle_n we_o can_v say_v several_a thing_n first_o in_o thesi_fw-la miracle_n be_v no_o certain_a distinctive_a of_o a_o divine_a commission_n because_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n may_v deceive_v by_o lie_a wonder_n as_o st._n paul_n speak_v 2_o thes_n 2.9_o and_o also_o moses_n deut._n 13.1_o 2._o then_o this_o be_v no_o infallible_a motive_n for_o the_o believe_v of_o a_o commission_n from_o god_n because_o we_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o it_o and_o although_o upon_o supposition_n of_o a_o true_a miracle_n we_o may_v conclude_v a_o commission_n from_o god_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n infallible_a because_o we_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o miracle_n whether_o it_o be_v such_o or_o not_o since_o the_o miracle_n can_v fidem_fw-la facere_fw-la de_fw-la se_fw-la as_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v second_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v a_o gift_n common_a to_o those_o who_o be_v not_o all_o prophet_n as_o to_o pen_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o not_o common_a for_o aught_o we_o know_v to_o some_o who_o do_v as_o st._n mark_n and_o s._n luke_n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o resolve_v our_o faith_n in_o their_o commission_n because_o not_o give_v omni_fw-la nor_o soli_fw-la for_o whatsoever_o do_v distinguish_v must_v have_v itself_o per_fw-la modum_fw-la differentiae_fw-la three_o therefore_o since_o we_o must_v have_v faith_n to_o believe_v the_o miracle_n to_o be_v true_a we_o ask_v how_o we_o come_v to_o this_o faith_n if_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n then_o faith_n ultimate_o be_v fix_v upon_o our_o foundation_n namely_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o we_o may_v as_o well_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n as_o that_o miracle_n be_v true_a four_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v temporary_a and_o accommodate_v for_o that_o season_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v we_o prove_v by_o miracle_n new_a doctrine_n as_o invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_v of_o image_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n transubstantiation_n supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n therefore_o if_o miracle_n do_v infallible_o ascertain_v the_o divine_a commission_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n to_o speak_v and_o write_v yet_o be_v not_o we_o satisfy_v by_o they_o in_o the_o question_n of_o new_a doctrine_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v we_o no_o account_n of_o but_o therefore_o he_o come_v to_o oral_a tradition_n for_o as_o for_o his_o reason_n in_o form_n thus_o in_o hypothesi_fw-la the_o preacher_n preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n god_n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o first_o not_o to_o carp_v at_o the_o form_n of_o his_o syllogism_n we_o say_v to_o the_o proposition_n that_o if_o they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o different_o from_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o preach_v what_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o preach_v and_o so_o the_o minor_a proposition_n be_v false_a if_o they_o do_v preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n receive_v in_o scripture_n from_o the_o apostle_n than_o we_o grant_v the_o minor_a and_o the_o conclusion_n too_o as_o much_o as_o doctrine_n can_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o we_o distinguish_v of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v namely_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o for_o as_o for_o miracle_n do_v by_o s._n austin_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o we_o abolish_v in_o our_o reformation_n we_o say_v that_o bede_n and_o gregory_n and_o brierly_n who_o he_o quote_v for_o testimony_n hereof_o be_v not_o to_o we_o sure_o of_o sufficient_a authority_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n nay_o second_o they_o have_v best_a not_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o learned_a magdeburgian_o lest_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o slight_v they_o in_o other_o matter_n but_o also_o chief_o upon_o this_o consideration_n because_o if_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n be_v confirm_v by_o many_o miracle_n which_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o brierly_n in_o his_o index_n for_o then_o by_o the_o argument_n before_o those_o point_n of_o difference_n be_v new_a for_o as_o miracle_n have_v themselves_o to_o faith_n so_o new_a miracle_n to_o new_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o new_a faith_n than_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o oral_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n successive_o and_o then_o they_o be_v undo_v therefore_o let_v they_o speak_v no_o more_o to_o we_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n austin_n the_o monk_n who_o show_v nothing_o so_o much_o wonderful_a as_o his_o pride_n in_o
for_o judith_n then_o one_o of_o the_o council_n must_v err_v either_o that_o which_o establish_v judith_n and_o not_o the_o rest_n or_o that_o which_o establish_v judith_n and_o the_o rest_n namely_o that_o of_o carthage_n witch_fw-mi my_o adversary_n say_v s._n jerome_n have_v not_o see_v one_o think_v they_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v declare_v canonical_a another_o think_v they_o to_o be_v fit_a and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o contradiction_n of_o council_n to_o council_n again_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o s._n jerome_n do_v afterward_o receive_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n now_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v how_o much_o time_n that_o after_o do_v suppose_n for_o if_o s._n jerome_n have_v receive_v it_o present_o we_o shall_v have_v hear_v of_o it_o if_o much_o time_n after_o as_o it_o may_v be_v by_o the_o word_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n seem_v not_o to_o s._n jerome_n so_o intuitive_o to_o oblige_v as_o the_o antagonist_n suppose_v have_v he_o think_v the_o church_n infallible_a will_v he_o have_v stick_v at_o it_o do_v not_o the_o romanist_n know_v the_o rule_n in_o tacitus_n qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr liberant_fw-la desciverunt_fw-la they_o which_o deliberate_v have_v already_o revolt_v what_o he_o will_v have_v i_o note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o maccabee_n for_o true_a scripture_n it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o give_v account_n to_o for_o first_o he_o go_v upon_o a_o false_a principle_n that_o if_o those_o father_n be_v of_o our_o religion_n than_o we_o must_v make_v they_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o prime_a principle_n upon_o which_o we_o receive_v all_o scripture_n as_o god_n infallible_a word_n this_o be_v not_o so_o for_o my_o live_a adversary_n may_v know_v that_o one_o who_o have_v defend_v our_o religion_n have_v be_v quote_v to_o i_o as_o differ_v from_o i_o in_o this_o point_n and_o that_o be_v mr._n chillingworth_n though_o all_o that_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n be_v like_a to_o be_v of_o our_o religion_n yet_o all_o of_o our_o religion_n it_o seem_v be_v not_o of_o this_o opinion_n for_o indeed_o the_o protestant_a religion_n suppose_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o a_o common_a principle_n and_o therefore_o also_o there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v any_o contestation_n about_o this_o point_n if_o our_o adversary_n have_v not_o be_v resolve_v to_o question_v all_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o proper_o they_o second_o therefore_o they_o may_v have_v receive_v scripture_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o universal_a tradition_n which_o also_o abstract_n from_o the_o roman_a impropriation_n three_o since_o they_o have_v not_o universal_a tradition_n for_o those_o apocryphal_a book_n as_o it_o seem_v by_o s._n jerom_n we_o can_v neither_o upon_o that_o account_n be_v engage_v to_o receive_v they_o as_o canonical_a four_o since_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v they_o by_o universal_a tradition_n as_o appear_v also_o by_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o before_o and_o since_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v discern_v by_o their_o own_o light_n as_o my_o adversary_n will_v confess_v nor_o by_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o matter_n what_o reason_n shall_v we_o have_v to_o receive_v they_o for_o if_o they_o say_v the_o council_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o ask_v what_o be_v it_o assist_v as_o a_o council_n or_o as_o such_o a_o council_n if_o as_o a_o council_n why_o have_v not_o the_o other_o the_o same_o assistance_n if_o as_o such_o a_o council_n how_o shall_v we_o discern_v which_o council_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v assist_v unto_o infallibility_n et_fw-la solos_fw-la credit_n habendos_fw-la esse_fw-la deos_fw-la quos_fw-la ipse_fw-la colit_fw-la 45._o n._n 45._o in_o this_o he_o be_v please_v to_o move_v again_o the_o same_o stone_n which_o will_v in_o the_o end_n return_n upon_o himself_o again_o for_o how_o come_v one_o council_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o maccabee_n and_o another_o not_o be_v not_o the_o former_a council_n as_o well_o irradiate_v as_o the_o latter_a yes_o they_o be_v more_o in_o all_o account_n but_o of_o my_o adversary_n who_o be_v not_o in_o so_o good_a a_o capacity_n to_o grant_v that_o the_o argument_n from_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n graduate_n its_o strength_n by_o the_o great_a nearness_n to_o the_o primitive_a for_o he_o hold_v a_o equal_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n but_o the_o old_a say_n be_v quò_fw-la antiquus_fw-la eo_fw-la melius_fw-la and_o the_o rule_n be_v good_a ut_fw-la se_fw-la habet_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ita_fw-la magis_fw-la ad_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o maximè_fw-la ad_fw-la maximè_fw-la if_o it_o be_v good_a as_o ancient_a than_o the_o more_o ancient_a the_o more_o good_a and_o this_o at_o other_o time_n be_v the_o advantage_n which_o the_o romanist_n will_v take_v in_o claim_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o original_a church_n to_o they_o and_o beside_o he_o may_v have_v consider_v that_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o bring_v this_o about_o again_o because_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o reception_n as_o be_v say_v before_o be_v express_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n which_o do_v not_o make_v they_o or_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a unless_o in_o s._n jeroms_n distinction_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o people_n in_o manner_n not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n well_o then_o if_o one_o council_n may_v see_v what_o another_o do_v not_o without_o prejudice_n to_o the_o object_n than_o s._n jerome_n may_v not_o see_v or_o luther_n what_o s._n austin_n do_v without_o prejudice_n to_o the_o credibility_n of_o scripture_n yea_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o prove_v that_o s._n austin_n account_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n as_o canonical_a as_o other_o book_n but_o this_o be_v actum_fw-la agere_fw-la and_o again_o he_o repeat_v what_o he_o have_v not_o do_v let_v they_o not_o trouble_v we_o for_o they_o have_v lose_v their_o strength_n and_o yet_o again_o s._n matthews_n gospel_n 46._o n._n 46._o he_o have_v better_o have_v solid_o prove_v which_o he_o slight_o put_v off_o the_o proof_n of_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o section_n that_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n first_o by_o scripture_n i_o assure_v they_o this_o be_v a_o fort-royal_a and_o therefore_o this_o shall_v be_v make_v good_a at_o all_o hand_n well_o but_o let_v we_o see_v his_o argument_n in_o the_o face_n about_o s._n matthews_n gospel_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v force_v a_o passage_n to_o sure_o he_o have_v no_o such_o reason_n to_o rally_v and_o obtrude_v this_o argument_n again_o and_o to_o be_v so_o confident_a of_o it_o as_o to_o say_v bold_o that_o it_o can_v possible_o by_o our_o principle_n ever_o come_v to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o be_v god_n true_a uncorrupted_a word_n why_o not_o nay_o here_o be_v all_o of_o this_o no_o proof_n we_o look_v for_o a_o spear_n like_o a_o weaver_n beam_n or_o else_o some_o new_a sword_n whereby_o the_o philistin_n think_v to_o have_v slay_v david_n but_o here_o be_v none_o yet_o yea_o s●apleton_n shall_v sufficient_o answer_v he_o with_o a_o contradiction_n as_o before_o who_o say_v it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o faith_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v produce_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o may_v be_v cause_v immediate_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o then_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o our_o principle_n to_o believe_v it_o with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o before_o a_o church_n be_v form_v how_o do_v the_o material_a member_n believe_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n then_o it_o be_v possible_a but_o then_o he_o slide_v to_o another_o way_n as_o he_o think_v of_o urge_v hi●_n argument_n and_o that_o be_v the_o marcionite_n the_o cerdonist_n and_o the_o manichaean_o do_v deny_v and_o other_o may_v come_v to_o deny_v the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n to_o be_v god_n true_a word_n yea_o but_o this_o be_v another_o question_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o another_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o he_o that_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v god_n word_n now_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n be_v how_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o therefore_o we_o say_v as_o to_o such_o we_o deal_v with_o they_o as_o we_o deal_v with_o other_o who_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o scripture_n not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o therefore_o the_o romanist_n get_v nothing_o by_o this_o argument_n but_o by_o universal_a tradition_n as_o a_o common_a argument_n which_o rather_o make_v a_o scholastical_a faith_n than_o a_o faith_n divine_a of_o proper_a name_n so_o that_o also_o he_o can_v reasonable_o
good_a scripture_n for_o none_o give_v the_o term_n and_o afterward_o t●e_v signification_n but_o the_o latin_a but_o the_o name_n manna_n they_o do_v not_o name_v and_o whether_o that_o be_v the_o signification_n of_o manna_n deserve_v a_o criticism_n some_o think_v that_o it_o may_v come_v from_o the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o it_o shall_v signify_v a_o portion_n neither_o be_v bethel_n interpret_v upon_o the_o place_n gen._n 35.15_o so_o then_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n that_o which_o he_o confident_o say_v being_n not_o so_o in_o his_o own_o instance_n and_o more_o my_o conjecture_n be_v yet_o true_a and_o good_a unless_o they_o can_v make_v the_o latin_a translation_n to_o be_v as_o catholic_a scripture_n as_o they_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n and_o sure_o if_o a_o translator_n of_o scripture_n do_v translate_v word_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o word_n be_v not_o interpret_v in_o scripture_n he_o be_v not_o a_o translator_n of_o scripture_n quoad_fw-la hoc_fw-la formal_o but_o material_o of_o that_o which_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o render_v scripture_n so_o much_o as_o to_o make_v it_o and_o moreover_o they_o may_v know_v this_o to_o be_v the_o usage_n of_o the_o evangelist_n beside_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v write_v original_o in_o greek_a to_o give_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o hebrew_n or_o syriack_n word_n my_o conjecture_n then_o be_v well_o recover_v of_o its_o weakness_n but_o then_o he_o fall_v upon_o i_o for_o give_v a_o contradiction_n to_o s._n jerom._n though_o he_o say_v he_o do_v see_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o hebrew_n original_a with_o his_o own_o eye_n you_o reject_v he_o though_o all_o the_o father_n write_n extant_a stand_n on_o his_o side_n answ_n a_o conjecture_n of_o a_o possibility_n of_o the_o contrary_n make_v no_o such_o contradiction_n which_o stand_v betwixt_o affirmation_n and_o negation_n categorical_o 2._o s._n jerom_n then_o have_v rather_o contradict_v they_o if_o a_o conjecture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o contradiction_n for_o can_v we_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v not_o room_n enough_o for_o a_o conjecture_n that_o either_o that_o copy_n which_o s._n jerom_o have_v use_v of_o or_o that_o which_o he_o describe_v which_o may_v be_v as_o certain_a as_o some_o other_o may_v now_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o world_n which_o contradict_v my_o adversary_n 3._o if_o there_o be_v a_o hebrew_n copy_n it_o be_v more_o than_o a_o conjecture_n it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o he_o who_o translate_v it_o into_o greek_a do_v exact_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o hebrew_n who_o faithfulness_n in_o those_o time_n we_o may_v better_v trust_n than_o some_o roman_n now_o and_o also_o they_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o point_n of_o fact_n neither_o do_v all_o the_o father_n i_o suppose_v see_v the_o hebrew_n copy_n and_o it_o will_v have_v be_v enough_o that_o none_o of_o the_o father_n be_v against_o it_o but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a adventure_n to_o say_v all_o the_o father_n stand_v on_o that_o side_n and_o also_o they_o may_v know_v what_o father_n do_v profess_v that_o he_o do_v see_v the_o remainer_n of_o those_o cell_n in_o which_o the_o seventy_o do_v translate_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o who_o contemn_v that_o testimony_n i_o think_v i_o bear_v as_o much_o respect_n to_o the_o father_n as_o some_o of_o the_o romanist_n do_v or_o more_o but_o yet_o if_o i_o shall_v hold_v with_o the_o roman_n against_o the_o father_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o contradict_v the_o father_n but_o to_o his_o argument_n this_o copy_n translate_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o translation_n answ_n t●e_v antecedent_n beg_v the_o question_n whether_o it_o do_v translate_v or_o not_o whatsoever_o do_v interpret_v do_v not_o translate_v and_o therefore_o here_o be_v a_o argument_n for_o i_o it_o do_v not_o translate_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o a_o translation_n and_o it_o do_v not_o translate_v for_o then_o the_o interpretation_n must_v be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n which_o be_v deny_v to_o have_v be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o hebrew_n as_o before_o especial_o in_o the_o same_o case_n where_o the_o name_n be_v give_v in_o the_o same_o letter_n which_o signify_v the_o interpretation_n therefore_o the_o latin_a do_v not_o translate_v when_o it_o give_v the_o interpretation_n as_o in_o the_o former_a example_n and_o the_o other_o evangelist_n be_v not_o translator_n when_o they_o interpret_v hebrew_n or_o syriack_n word_n so_o his_o argument_n be_v for_o i_o and_o so_o my_o cause_n be_v not_o lose_v as_o to_o this_o point_n since_o also_o s._n austin_n profess_v in_o that_o of_o he_o against_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o manichean_a that_o he_o will_v hear_v reason_n against_o antiquity_n at_o least_o sure_o he_o may_v do_v so_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n your_o three_o shift_n be_v in_o place_n of_o give_v answer_n to_o make_v a_o objection_n ask_v why_o our_o latin_a translation_n be_v make_v authentic_a if_o the_o church_n have_v make_v the_o greek_a authentic_a answ_n shall_v i_o say_v that_o my_o adversary_n do_v not_o seem_v here_o to_o know_v well_o what_o shift_n to_o make_v since_o he_o carp_v at_o my_o answer_v by_o way_n of_o question_n but_o then_o they_o shall_v be_v better_o advise_v than_o to_o make_v such_o argument_n as_o they_o will_v not_o be_v willing_a to_o answer_v a_o interrogatory_n about_o in_o the_o same_o matter_n but_o he_o say_v pass_v by_o some_o other_o word_n which_o seem_v too_o hot_a for_o he_o i_o know_v of_o no_o body_n who_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o greek_a translation_n be_v make_v authentic_a by_o the_o church_n i_o return_v upon_o he_o be_v the_o greek_a translation_n make_v authentic_a or_o not_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o say_v it_o be_v nor_o it_o be_v not_o but_o i_o press_v they_o be_v it_o or_o be_v it_o not_o if_o it_o be_v not_o than_o their_o translation_n be_v not_o of_o authentic_a scripture_n and_o so_o again_o they_o do_v not_o translate_v but_o make_v scripture_n if_o it_o be_v make_v authentic_a by_o the_o church_n then_o what_o need_v of_o two_o authentic_a translation_n again_o if_o it_o be_v not_o make_v authentic_a by_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o the_o authentic_a gospel_n of_o saint_n matthew_n and_o yet_o have_v enough_o for_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o can_v we_o be_v as_o well_o without_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n because_o i_o presume_v they_o profess_v so_o much_o reverence_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n that_o they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o tradition_n be_v more_o necessary_a than_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o if_o it_o be_v make_v authentic_a absolute_o by_o the_o church_n we_o can_v better_o believe_v it_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o universal_a tradition_n than_o they_o can_v believe_v their_o latin_a by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a as_o it_o be_v that_o translation_n as_o such_o shall_v agree_v with_o original_n and_o the_o question_n be_v which_o be_v the_o original_a or_o where_o the_o original_a be_v to_o be_v find_v they_o be_v in_o as_o great_a difficulty_n as_o we_o for_o than_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o a_o original_a as_o to_o this_o gospel_n to_o make_v use_n of_o for_o their_o translation_n and_o if_o their_o latin_a as_o to_o this_o be_v a_o translation_n of_o a_o translation_n we_o have_v the_o better_a cause_n in_o this_o because_o we_o trust_v rather_o to_o the_o first_o translation_n and_o if_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n make_v use_v of_o the_o septuagint_n translation_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o penman_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n make_v so_o much_o use_v of_o it_o also_o as_o be_v confess_v by_o learned_a man_n then_o may_v we_o rather_o make_v use_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n matthew_n in_o greek_a than_o they_o in_o latin_a your_o four_o shift_n be_v to_o pretend_v to_o this_o knowledge_n by_o the_o harmony_n with_o other_o gospel_n ans_fw-fr a_o great_a deal_n he_o say_v to_o this_o which_o i_o may_v spare_v the_o refutation_n of_o upon_o these_o reason_n first_o because_o i_o compare_v the_o harmony_n of_o this_o gospel_n to_o the_o other_o gospel_n with_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o do_v i_o not_o make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o argument_n absolute_a 2._o because_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o harmony_n betwixt_o this_o and_o other_o gospel_n and_o not_o betwixt_o this_o gospel_n and_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o he_o play_v the_o sophister_n the_o discourse_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereas_o then_o he_o do_v deny_v my_o argument_n by_o compare_n of_o it_o with_o
50._o n._n 50._o here_o he_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o argument_n in_o the_o 14_o num_fw-la of_o the_o former_a treatise_n with_o infallible_a faith_n this_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o he_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v they_o with_o out_o our_o free_a grant_n they_o be_v not_o like_a to_o have_v it_o and_o therefore_o this_o be_v deny_v he_o as_o before_z all_o that_o he_o will_v build_v thereupon_o must_v fall_v to_o wit_n therefore_o we_o must_v be_v assist_v in_o this_o infallible_a knowledge_n by_o some_o other_o infallible_a mean_n and_o no_o other_o infallible_a mean_n can_v with_o any_o shadow_n of_o probability_n be_v say_v give_v to_o we_o but_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o her_o authority_n must_v be_v infallible_a as_o shall_v at_o large_a be_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chap._n and_o then_o in_o the_o next_o after_o that_o that_o this_o infallible_a church_n be_v the_o roman_a and_o none_o but_o the_o roman_a this_o be_v all_o waist_n and_o lose_v unless_o they_o can_v maintain_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a charity_n in_o we_o to_o preserve_v their_o cause_n from_o starve_v by_o grant_v that_o which_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v and_o 2._o dato_n non_fw-la concesto_fw-la suppose_v there_o must_v be_v some_o other_o mean_n of_o infallible_a decide_n doubtful_a sense_n of_o scripture_n i_o can_v make_v it_o a_o question_n whether_o they_o can_v plead_v the_o next_o right_a as_o if_o they_o come_v vacuam_fw-la possessionem_fw-la for_o the_o place_n may_v be_v full_a by_o universal_a tradition_n which_o sure_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o whole_a sure_o be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n and_o then_o also_o when_o you_o prove_v the_o roman_a faith_n by_o universal_a tradition_n you_o will_v prove_v the_o roman_a faith_n by_o the_o roman_a and_o this_o be_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la and_o as_o for_o the_o 3._o thing_n that_o this_o infallible_a church_n be_v the_o roman_a and_o none_o but_o the_o roman_a which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v prove_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n sure_o if_o i_o may_v speak_v it_o without_o offence_n he_o do_v very_o well_o to_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o last_o for_o he_o may_v do_v any_o thing_n before_o it_o but_o also_o since_o his_o supposition_n that_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a by_o the_o scripture_n infallible_o of_o their_o own_o true_a sense_n in_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n with_o infallible_a faith_n must_v fall_v without_o a_o better_a support_n we_o may_v be_v at_o our_o last_o already_o for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o good_a the_o other_o chapter_n make_v number_n and_o this_o number_n make_v no_o weight_n he_o do_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v do_v so_o and_o so_o which_o we_o interpret_v nothing_o infallibility_n shall_v not_o need_v many_o word_n in_o this_o 52._o n._n 52._o he_o will_v wipe_v off_o the_o suspicion_n of_o disrespect_n to_o scripture_n in_o those_o term_n he_o use_v and_o will_v lay_v a_o blame_n upon_o i_o for_o my_o censure_n of_o his_o word_n to_o this_o purpose_n his_o word_n be_v these_o if_o he_o will_v have_v give_v we_o a_o book_n for_o judge_n he_o will_v never_o have_v give_v we_o for_o our_o judge_n such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n be_v which_o very_o often_o speak_v obscure_o sometime_o so_o prophetical_o that_o most_o will_v think_v it_o speak_v of_o the_o present_a time_n when_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o it_o speak_v of_o one_o person_n for_o example_n of_o david_n when_o it_o speak_v of_o another_o for_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o i_o add_v to_o this_o effect_n that_o i_o may_v be_v right_o understand_v when_o i_o say_v that_o god_n will_v never_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n for_o our_o judge_n to_o what_o of_o this_o he_o say_v in_o his_o former_a treatise_n i_o say_v sir_n let_v i_o have_v leave_n to_o speak_v affectionate_o to_o you_o do_v not_o you_o see_v what_o disrespect_n of_o scripture_n if_o not_o blasphemy_n your_o opinion_n do_v miserable_o betray_v you_o to_o if_o you_o follow_v it_o will_v any_o sober_a man_n let_v fall_v such_o word_n as_o if_o god_n have_v intend_v the_o scripture_n for_o our_o judge_n such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n be_v so_o you_o this_o i_o say_v and_o now_o he_o examine_v these_o word_n strict_o and_o say_v my_o adversary_n to_o avoid_v this_o argument_n so_o mangle_v the_o sense_n that_o he_o may-make_a my_o word_n sound_v of_o a_o blasphemous_a disrespect_n report_v they_o as_o if_o i_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o god_n have_v intend_v scripture_n for_o our_o judge_n he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr sure_o this_o be_v a_o false_a charge_n that_o i_o have_v mangle_v his_o word_n for_o i_o have_v give_v the_o full_a sense_n of_o they_o and_o this_o may_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o deny_v of_o the_o end_n which_o he_o make_v to_o be_v to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n for_o i_o do_v not_o see_v any_o such_o difficulty_n in_o the_o argument_n that_o i_o shall_v decline_v it_o and_o fall_v upon_o the_o person_n this_o be_v not_o my_o mind_n or_o manner_n but_o i_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o his_o deal_n with_o i_o even_o here_o for_o he_o put_v together_o that_o which_o i_o do_v not_o put_v together_o for_o he_o say_v i_o accuse_v he_o of_o a_o blasphemous_a disrespect_n whereas_o i_o say_v disrespect_n if_o not_o blasphemy_n and_o also_o the_o term_n if_o not_o blasphemy_n without_o a_o grain_n of_o charity_n may_v have_v be_v construe_v without_o a_o affirmation_n nether_a do_v he_o right_v i_o or_o clear_v himself_o in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o his_o defence_n for_o my_o word_n in_o all_o reason_n do_v represent_v as_o much_o as_o if_o i_o have_v add_v what_o he_o say_v i_o shall_v have_v add_v these_o word_n if_o god_n have_v intend_v a_o book_n for_o our_o judge_n he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n must_v connotate_v this_o sense_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n for_o our_o judge_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o to_o quarrel_v upon_o the_o omission_n as_o if_o i_o have_v not_o deal_v fair_o with_o he_o consider_v it_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o hypothetical_a proposition_n if_o god_n have_v intend_v a_o book_n for_o our_o judge_n he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n be_v what_o need_n be_v add_v for_o our_o judge_n when_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o course_n they_o know_v the_o rule_n quod_fw-la necessario_fw-la subintelligitur_fw-la nunquam_fw-la deest_fw-la that_o which_o be_v necessary_o understand_v be_v never_o want_v and_o therefore_o have_v i_o not_o do_v his_o word_n any_o injury_n by_o mangle_v they_o nor_o yet_o by_o interpretation_n of_o they_o still_o they_o seem_v to_o sound_v such_o a_o imperfect_a book_n as_o scripture_n and_o must_v do_v so_o if_o they_o have_v full_a sense_n in_o they_o but_o also_o if_o we_o may_v say_v what_o s._n austin_n say_v of_o the_o heretic_n word_n bene_fw-la haec_fw-la acciperentur_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la dicerentur_fw-la cujus_fw-la sensus_fw-la notus_fw-la est_fw-la so_o here_o these_o word_n may_v be_v better_o construe_v if_o they_o be_v not_o speak_v by_o such_o who_o sense_n be_v know_v for_o unless_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o book_n imperfect_a in_o regard_n of_o matter_n what_o need_v of_o tradition_n unless_o the_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a in_o regard_n of_o cleareness_n what_o need_v a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o decide_v controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n therefore_o he_o can_v get_v clear_o off_o aqua_fw-la haeret_fw-la and_o sure_o he_o do_v not_o help_v himself_o or_o his_o cause_n by_o a_o like_a case_n he_o put_v if_o god_n have_v intend_v the_o scripture_n for_o sole_a judge_n in_o law_n controversy_n he_o will_v never_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o book_n as_o scripture_n be_v for_o our_o judge_n do_v this_o pass_n any_o handsome_a and_o respective_a reflection_n upon_o scripture_n as_o if_o it_o be_v no_o fit_a to_o decide_v controversy_n in_o divinity_n then_o in_o the_o law_n and_o do_v they_o not_o think_v that_o we_o may_v have_v more_o reason_n to_o be_v bold_a with_o they_o than_o they_o with_o scripture_n if_o god_n have_v intend_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v be_v absolute_o determine_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o general_n council_n will_v he_o have_v give_v we_o such_o a_o pack_v council_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v and_o yet_o moreover_o all_o he_o say_v be_v beside_o the_o mark_n for_o this_o we_o do_v not_o contend_v for_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o sole_a judge_n
be_v under_o a_o command_n and_o express_v precept_n st._n matth._n 22.37_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n and_o this_o can_v be_v mould_v into_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o counsel_n for_o thus_o christ_n answer_v to_o the_o question_n in_o the_o ver_fw-la before_o what_o be_v the_o great_a commandment_n of_o the_o law_n and_o also_o in_o the_o ver_fw-la after_o he_o say_v this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n now_o to_o do_v thus_o be_v most_o perfect_a charity_n and_o therefore_o what_o we_o can_v do_v be_v comprehend_v under_o all_o that_o be_v command_v yea_o if_o the_o law_n require_v more_o than_o we_o can_v do_v according_a to_o ordinary_a measure_n of_o grace_n than_o we_o can_v do_v more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v now_o this_o the_o law_n require_v and_o not_o only_a semper_fw-la but_o ad_fw-la semper_fw-la as_o to_o the_o internal_a duty_n of_o love_n and_o who_o be_v there_o in_o all_o the_o world_n that_o love_v the_o lord_n always_o with_o all_o his_o heart_n with_o all_o his_o soul_n with_o all_o his_o mind_n and_o therefore_o god_n law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v cut_v short_a that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v even_o with_o our_o ability_n present_a neither_o do_v the_o text_n name_v by_o he_o out_o of_o st._n john_n prove_v obedience_n to_o the_o law_n possible_a to_o we_o in_o the_o way_n we_o may_v keep_v god_n commandment_n in_o generale_fw-mi though_o not_o all_o as_o we_o ought_v as_o we_o be_v say_v to_o keep_v the_o way_n though_o sometime_o we_o transgress_v we_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n as_o a_o man_n keep_v a_o castle_n against_o the_o enemy_n he_o keep_v it_o till_o he_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o it_o he_o keep_v it_o against_o forsake_v it_o but_o he_o do_v not_o keep_v it_o so_o as_o not_o to_o be_v overcome_v he_o keep_v they_o as_o to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o mind_n he_o do_v not_o keep_v they_o absolute_o as_o to_o all_o act_n negative_a in_o command_n negative_a and_o positive_a act_n in_o affirmative_a command_n he_o keep_v they_o not_o as_o keep_v contradict_v all_o offend_a for_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o as_o st._n james_n speak_v and_o therefore_o can_v we_o not_o fulfil_v the_o law_n because_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v 2_o ch_z 10._o he_o that_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o offend_v in_o one_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o all_o and_o therefore_o this_o argument_n be_v peccant_a in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o elench_v for_o we_o can_v say_v that_o we_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n &_o yet_o not_o fulfil_v they_o according_a to_o the_o power_n we_o have_v in_o adam_n and_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o obligation_n which_o be_v not_o adequate_v to_o our_o strength_n now_o but_o to_o god_n law_n as_o a_o express_a of_o his_o holiness_n and_o as_o commensurable_a to_o man_n ability_n in_o state_n of_o original_a righteousness_n nay_o it_o be_v observable_a also_o that_o the_o word_n in_o st._n james_n which_o be_v render_v shall_v offend_v be_v as_o diminutive_a a_o word_n in_o the_o kind_n as_o i_o think_v any_o other_o for_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lest_o hindan_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o sort_n shall_v think_v that_o venial_a sin_n do_v but_o cast_v a_o little_a dust_n upon_o a_o christian_n life_n no_o defilement_n and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n if_o the_o scripture_n need_v a_o infallible_a interpreter_n to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o counsel_n and_o precept_n both_o give_v in_o the_o mood_n of_o command_n this_o make_v no_o difficulty_n until_o counsel_n find_v better_a proof_n if_o they_o will_v take_v our_o counsel_n let_v they_o keep_v their_o counsel_n to_o themselves_o this_o we_o may_v say_v as_o little_a to_o as_o he_o say_v in_o it_o of_o new_a discourse_n 56._o n._n 56._o he_o speak_v here_o again_o of_o the_o loss_n of_o divine_a book_n this_o we_o have_v speak_v to_o before_o more_o than_o once_o upon_o his_o provocation_n and_o this_o pinch_v they_o for_o why_o may_v not_o they_o then_o fail_v of_o some_o tradition_n and_o how_o then_o can_v we_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n when_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v keep_v they_o since_o the_o church_n as_o the_o learned_a of_o they_o say_v be_v to_o depend_v upon_o they_o but_o own_o thing_n here_o he_o will_v urge_v that_o according_a to_o we_o we_o must_v pick_v out_o point_v necessary_a one_o out_o of_o one_o book_n another_o out_o of_o another_o ans_fw-fr sure_o this_o be_v no_o strong_a plea_n for_o first_o ought_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n dwell_v plentiful_o in_o we_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2._o can_v any_o own_o easy_o discern_v historical_a book_n from_o doctrinal_a 3._o can_v they_o not_o take_v special_a notice_n of_o those_o head_n of_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n unto_o which_o salvation_n be_v express_o annex_v 4._o this_o argument_n conclude_v more_o heavy_o against_o they_o for_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n who_o can_v compare_v all_o their_o book_n from_o age_n to_o age_n for_o their_o doctrine_n who_o can_v compare_v who_o have_v be_v most_o learned_a and_o most_o faithful_a to_o derive_v a_o successional_a sum_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o to_o be_v do_v nay_o who_o in_o the_o compare_n of_o church_n can_v prefer_v the_o best_a but_o by_o the_o best_a doctrine_n and_o yet_o according_a to_o they_o we_o must_v take_v the_o doctrine_n from_o the_o church_n who_o can_v measure_v the_o vast_a latitude_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o those_o rule_n of_o vincentius_n be_v it_o not_o easy_a to_o receive_v necessary_n from_o scripture_n then_o to_o boult_v they_o out_o of_o so_o many_o volume_n of_o age_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o keep_v receive_v tradition_n when_o some_o tradition_n which_o be_v receive_v be_v not_o yet_o keep_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n 5._o in_o scripture_n though_o we_o pick_v for_o necessary_n yet_o we_o have_v nothing_o false_a but_o we_o have_v false_a tradition_n have_v we_o not_o yea_o this_o be_v a_o false_a tradition_n that_o tradition_n be_v equal_a to_o scripture_n yea_o 6._o if_o any_o book_n be_v lose_v they_o be_v lose_v before_o christ_n time_n and_o yet_o those_o which_o remain_v in_o st._n paul_n time_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o towards_o the_o read_n of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n that_o so_o we_o may_v read_v over_o the_o whole_a canon_n it_o be_v a_o supposition_n in_o stead_n of_o proof_n the_o read_n of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n do_v not_o infer_v their_o canonicalness_n of_o proper_a name_n and_o this_o be_v make_v good_a to_o they_o they_o know_v late_o by_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a dr._n cousin_n in_o a_o book_n on_o purpose_n and_o as_o for_o accurate_a note_v all_o place_n and_o confer_v with_o other_o place_n what_o then_o multa_fw-la non_fw-la experimur_fw-la quia_fw-la difficilia_fw-la multa_fw-la difficilia_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la experimur_fw-la be_v not_o this_o possible_a be_v not_o salvation_n worth_a the_o pain_n must_v every_o one_o among_o they_o know_v the_o distinct_a exact_a sense_n of_o all_o their_o definition_n no_o they_o will_v say_v but_o the_o people_n shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o the_o priest_n mouth_n well_o then_o so_o be_v it_o not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o the_o people_n with_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a exact_o to_o confer_v all_o place_n and_o as_o for_o those_o place_n which_o contain_v necessary_n there_o be_v not_o such_o obscurity_n and_o yet_o sure_o some_o hardness_n according_a to_o their_o principle_n do_v belong_v to_o faith_n for_o how_o otherwise_o shall_v it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o meritorious_a therefore_o if_o their_o way_n of_o belief_n be_v so_o easy_a it_o do_v not_o bear_v proportion_n to_o the_o quality_n of_o faith_n assign_v by_o mr._n knott_n and_o as_o for_o translation_n to_o agree_v with_o the_o original_n this_o we_o have_v canvas_v before_o and_o our_o people_n can_v do_v it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o &_o better_a too_o because_o they_o have_v liberty_n of_o translation_n and_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o original_n we_o must_v come_v in_o several_a cause_n as_o bellarmin_n before_o omne_fw-la reducitur_fw-la ad_fw-la principiun_n be_v good_a here_o too_o and_o then_o the_o consectary_n of_o these_o difficulty_n he_o will_v make_v to_o be_v negative_a to_o we_o namely_o that_o god_n do_v not_o intend_v this_o book_n to_o be_v our_o only_a guide_n and_o he_o will_v persuade_v we_o thus_o god_n wisdom_n direct_v he_o to_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o compass_v his_o intention_n and_o then_o he_o will_v frame_v a_o minor_a with_o advantage_n thus_o even_o our_o ordinary_a wisdom_n if_o we_o have_v a_o
as_o the_o hebrew_n do_v and_o also_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a which_o two_o want_v not_o the_o subjunctive_a mood_n ans_fw-fr but_o first_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n that_o the_o hebrew_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o in_o the_o future_a second_o other_o translation_n with_o he_o be_v fallible_a save_v only_o the_o latin_a therefore_o the_o other_o conclude_v not_o three_o the_o translation_n may_v be_v understand_v in_o compliance_n with_o the_o hebrew_n which_o be_v frequent_a also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n with_o the_o greek_a and_o therefore_o if_o the_o hebrew_n may_v be_v so_o construe_v so_o may_v the_o other_o by_o a_o hebraism_n therefore_o if_o our_o english_a translation_n be_v faulty_a herein_o yet_o must_v it_o be_v otherwise_o convince_v of_o a_o fault_n in_o this_o especial_o since_o four_o we_o give_v good_a reason_n why_o it_o shall_v thus_o be_v construe_v namely_o by_o the_o scope_n intelligentia_fw-la dicti_fw-la sumitur_fw-la ex_fw-la scopo_fw-la loquendi_fw-la and_o therefore_o may_v we_o well_o with_o junius_n and_o tremellius_n hold_v our_o english_a which_o in_o general_a whatsoever_o he_o say_v of_o it_o from_o some_o of_o our_o own_o have_v not_o so_o many_o fault_n in_o it_o as_o isidor_n clarius_n find_v in_o their_o latin_a 8000._o i_o ask_v he_o be_v this_o text_n mean_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o rome_n he_o say_v i_o tell_v you_o it_o be_v not_o but_o why_o then_o shall_v the_o other_o text_n about_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n by_o proportion_n prove_v their_o infallibility_n and_o not_o this_o since_o we_o have_v here_o the_o priest_n in_o a_o singularity_n if_o not_o signanter_n well_o then_o by_o his_o own_o consent_n this_o text_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o he_o for_o it_o concern_v private_a priest_n and_o they_o be_v as_o fallible_a as_o translation_n only_o the_o private_a priest_n may_v know_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n better_o than_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o translation_n as_o he_o speak_v in_o more_o word_n to_o no_o more_o purpose_n ans_fw-fr first_o when_o we_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n be_v we_o sure_a that_o that_o sense_n be_v true_a though_o it_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n true_a this_o be_v yet_o in_o question_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a whether_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d second_o let_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n in_o thing_n necessary_a be_v compare_v with_o the_o difficulty_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o trental_a definition_n and_o then_o let_v they_o judge_v whether_o we_o have_v not_o better_o stand_v to_o translation_n which_o be_v make_v by_o a_o nation_n or_o approve_a or_o else_o to_o the_o opinion_n of_o private_a priest_n for_o though_o her_o doctrine_n be_v so_o careful_o publish_v among_o all_o intelligent_a man_n yet_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v material_o in_o the_o word_n not_o formal_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v publish_v among_o all_o intelligent_a man_n in_o the_o former_a way_n and_o if_o the_o people_n be_v not_o intelligent_a man_n too_o how_o shall_v they_o know_v whether_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v communicate_v to_o they_o by_o learned_a man_n but_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v to_o direct_v the_o people_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o their_o own_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n doubtless_o excel_v those_o of_o the_o old_a law_n this_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o we_o have_v have_v before_o and_o have_v take_v away_o the_o ground_n thereof_o and_o beside_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o their_o own_o read_v the_o scripture_n what_o say_v st._n luke_n of_o the_o berean_o if_o they_o examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n what_o doctrine_n st._n paul_n teach_v be_v not_o they_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o their_o own_o reading_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o do_v the_o jew_n apply_v their_o child_n to_o the_o law_n from_o five_o year_n of_o age_n and_o why_o do_v st._n paul_n take_v notice_n of_o timothy_n to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o scripture_n from_o his_o childhood_n and_o why_o be_v the_o man_n say_v to_o be_v bless_v who_o among_o other_o thing_n meditate_v in_o the_o law_n day_n and_o night_n be_v this_o to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o priest_n 2._o therefore_o though_o they_o go_v to_o the_o priest_n in_o doubtful_a case_n yet_o not_o for_o ordinary_a knowledge_n in_o thing_n necessary_a therefore_o this_o be_v not_o compare_v ad_fw-la idem_fw-la to_o our_o case_n three_o the_o priest_n be_v bind_v to_o direct_v the_o people_n by_o the_o law_n be_v they_o not_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n and_o not_o by_o tradition_n so_o be_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n as_o he_o call_v they_o to_o direct_v the_o people_n by_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o tradition_n or_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o according_a to_o scripture_n therefore_o his_o question_n of_o the_o case_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o doubt_n which_o he_o compare_v his_o proceed_n in_o with_o the_o old_a way_n of_o the_o jew_n numb_a 6._o come_v not_o home_n to_o our_o business_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v send_v it_o home_o again_o and_o yet_o not_o for_o fear_v of_o not_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v what_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o urge_v that_o when_o in_o the_o upshot_n the_o question_n shall_v be_v draw_v up_o to_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o be_v deserve_o put_v to_o death_n deut._n 17._o he_o leave_v this_o for_o we_o to_o take_v down_o ourselves_o he_o will_v not_o apply_v it_o and_o herein_o he_o do_v discreet_o fear_v it_o may_v be_v lest_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o that_o which_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v refer_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n for_o final_a judgement_n shall_v indeed_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o judge_n contradistinct_o speak_v of_o and_o by_o the_o syriack_n disjunctive_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o levit_n and_o 2._o i_o hope_v the_o high_a priest_n at_o rome_n do_v not_o undertake_v a_o sentence_n in_o cause_n of_o blood_n and_o three_o in_o that_o case_n there_o be_v contempt_n thou_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a it_o be_v not_o say_v error_n and_o analogum_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la positum_fw-la stat_fw-la pro_fw-la famosiori_fw-la analogato_fw-la and_o also_o ver_fw-la 12._o this_o be_v intimate_v that_o man_n that_o will_v do_v presumptuous_o four_o suppose_v it_o have_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n for_o sentence_n final_a this_o may_v be_v extraordinary_a in_o a_o typical_a respect_n to_o christ_n and_o they_o know_v the_o rule_n extraordinaria_fw-la non_fw-la trahuntur_fw-la in_o regulam_fw-la we_o can_v make_v a_o rule_n of_o extraordinary_n and_o yet_o also_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n quatenus_fw-la talis_fw-la infallible_a as_o appear_v in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o tell_v they_o now_o he_o will_v distinguish_v by_o say_v the_o jewish_a church_n err_v not_o the_o true_a high_a priest_n without_o who_o there_o be_v no_o true_a representative_a church_n err_v not_o cajaphas_n be_v not_o the_o true_a high_a priest_n the_o other_o true_a high_a priest_n be_v christ_n pretty_a sport_n so_o the_o roman_a church_n never_o err_v because_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a head_n but_o then_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o be_v true_a high_a priest_n nor_o true_a head_n for_o so_o caiaphas_n and_o he_o must_v be_v compare_v in_o relation_n to_o christ_n may_v we_o not_o almost_o think_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v within_o a_o little_a put_v to_o his_o shift_n for_o christ_n be_v in_o be_v i_o hope_v and_o have_v declare_v himself_o the_o true_a messiah_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n then_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v all_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v to_o we_o without_o a_o true_a high_a priest_n 2._o how_o many_o pope_n be_v not_o true_a pope_n and_o so_o not_o true_a high_a priest_n and_o then_o when_o shall_v we_o be_v certain_a whether_o we_o have_v a_o true_a high_a priest_n and_o consequent_o a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o can_v err_v for_o as_o absolute_a infallibility_n have_v itself_o to_o particular_a faith_n in_o any_o point_n according_a to_o mr._n knot_n so_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o a_o true_a pope_n have_v itself_o to_o our_o knowledge_n whether_o it_o can_v err_v well_o but_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n who_o the_o church_n shall_v accept_v so_o before_o but_o then_o caiaphas_n be_v the_o
have_v be_v convenient_a that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n upon_o this_o consideration_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n without_o scripture_n well_o but_o take_v his_o word_n in_o their_o ordinary_a sense_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o argument_n will_v this_o be_v even_o now_o when_o we_o have_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n therefore_o now_o tradition_n be_v now_o as_o necessary_a or_o more_o than_o when_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n nay_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v less_o necessary_a when_o notwithstanding_o they_o we_o have_v more_o division_n how_o then_o shall_v these_o division_n be_v remedy_v it_o may_v be_v by_o more_o tradition_n what_o new_a tradition_n oppositum_fw-la in_o apposito_fw-la but_o in_o the_o next_o word_n he_o speak_v out_o all_o division_n common_o cause_v by_o misinterpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o which_o inconvenience_n they_o be_v not_o subject_a before_o all_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o be_v now_o after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n a_o great_a necessity_n than_o ever_o of_o tradition_n ans_fw-fr so_o then_o he_o have_v now_o commented_a upon_o the_o former_a word_n and_o his_o sense_n be_v plain_a that_o have_v we_o not_o have_v scripture_n we_o shall_v have_v have_v less_o need_n of_o tradition_n first_o we_o have_v think_v the_o learned_a man_n of_o their_o church_n have_v devise_v tradition_n not_o because_o we_o have_v scripture_n but_o because_o scripture_n be_v want_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o so_o he_o himself_o tell_v we_o present_o after_o that_o since_o part_v of_o the_o canon_n be_v lose_v we_o must_v say_v there_o be_v use_v of_o tradition_n and_o yet_o now_o we_o have_v more_o need_n of_o tradition_n because_o scripture_n be_v write_v but_o it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v say_v there_o be_v more_o need_n of_o tradition_n to_o clear_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n yea_o but_o then_o he_o shall_v mean_v by_o tradition_n traditive_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v call_v but_o be_v not_o these_o lose_v too_o for_o who_o be_v there_o can_v give_v we_o any_o account_n of_o they_o and_o as_o for_o other_o tradition_n we_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a he_o have_v tell_v we_o before_o since_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v they_o we_o have_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o horrible_a division_n open_v still_o wide_o &_o wide_o let_v they_o remember_v that_o of_o n●lus_n to_o accuse_v scripture_n be_v to_o accuse_v god_n 2._o be_v the_o division_n necessary_a in_o point_n necessary_a if_o he_o mean_v so_o it_o be_v flat_o deny_v if_o in_o other_o point_n it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o question_n principal_a 3._o a_o quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la if_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o tradition_n as_o such_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o all_o and_o yet_o all_o tradition_n they_o have_v not_o keep_v 4._o tradition_n do_v not_o lessen_v division_n about_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n for_o one_o division_n be_v whether_o tradition_n have_v any_o ground_n in_o scripture_n and_o he_o may_v know_v that_o he_o have_v name_v text_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o because_o there_o be_v difference_n about_o tradition_n therefore_o by_o his_o argument_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o as_o indeed_o they_o do_v not_o order_v themselves_o by_o they_o they_o keep_v tradition_n in_o the_o controversy_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n not_o in_o practice_n as_o he_o say_v antiquitatem_fw-la semper_fw-la crepant_fw-la novi_fw-la indy_n vivunt_fw-la and_o we_o must_v let_v go_v the_o scripture_n in_o controversy_n and_o practice_n for_o the_o use_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o church_n they_o and_o their_o father_n have_v trouble_v the_o water_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o chief_n fisher_n let_v they_o let_v their_o tradition_n alone_o and_o they_o will_v see_v their_o discourse_n be_v a_o non_fw-la causa_fw-la then_o he_o repeat_v importunate_o the_o use_n of_o tradition_n but_o not_o my_o refutation_n and_o he_o speak_v of_o tradition_n of_o such_o matter_n as_o we_o have_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v beside_o the_o mark_n we_o be_v about_o tradition_n in_o their_o sense_n of_o that_o matter_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n equal_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o scripture_n which_o shall_v prove_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o they_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o therefore_o much_o he_o say_v to_o this_o purpose_n be_v like_o the_o drift_n of_o snow_n which_o make_v a_o heap_n but_o will_v not_o bear_v one_o up_o from_o sink_v in_o it_o yet_o i_o must_v note_v his_o wit_n in_o that_o he_o say_v that_o god_n must_v purposely_o by_o a_o miracle_n have_v infringe_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n if_o the_o former_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v grow_v then_o to_o lose_v their_o sufficiency_n in_o order_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n when_o they_o be_v strengthen_v by_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o that_o of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n be_v how_o little_a in_o this_o be_v there_o of_o a_o sober_a soul_n as_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n be_v write_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o deliver_v it_o by_o oral_a tradition_n do_v it_o not_o appear_v in_o eccles_n history_n that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o certain_a and_o firm_a in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n it_o seem_v then_o that_o the_o loose_a way_n by_o tradition_n be_v not_o so_o sure_a and_o stand_v litera_fw-la scripta_fw-la manet_fw-la second_o if_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n sure_o we_o may_v make_v more_o use_n of_o what_o they_o write_v to_o confirm_v tradition_n adeone_fw-mi pudorem_fw-la cum_fw-la pudicitia_fw-la perdiderunt_fw-la as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n shall_v be_v employ_v as_o it_o be_v only_o to_o serve_v tradition_n three_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n do_v rather_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o than_o the_o use_n for_o why_o be_v they_o write_v if_o tradition_n be_v necessary_a after_o they_o be_v write_v as_o such_o therefore_o fourthly_a he_o conclude_v but_o sufficiency_n of_o they_o in_o order_n to_o the_o effect_n but_o this_o be_v not_o effectual_a to_o his_o purpose_n if_o he_o do_v conclude_v necessity_n of_o they_o after_o the_o writing_n this_o will_v be_v somewhat_o but_o then_o there_o will_v be_v more_o in_o the_o conclusion_n than_o be_v in_o the_o premise_n and_o yet_o sure_o all_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n because_o we_o make_v no_o question_n of_o such_o tradition_n again_o he_o plead_v loss_n of_o the_o canon_n upon_o which_o he_o think_v tradition_n shall_v revive_v ans_fw-fr that_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o sufficient_o before_o that_o the_o supposal_n do_v not_o infer_v insufficiency_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o infer_v necessity_n of_o traditional_a matter_n beside_o what_o be_v write_v and_o also_o be_v there_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o loss_n of_o some_o part_n of_o scripture_n enough_o remain_v to_o confirm_v tradition_n yes_o they_o will_v say_v then_o god_n it_o seem_v have_v take_v more_o care_n for_o tradition_n than_o salvation_n there_o be_v enough_o for_o tradition_n yet_o in_o scripture_n not_o for_o salvation_n well_o but_o again_o there_o be_v enough_o in_o scripture_n to_o confirm_v all_o tradition_n be_v there_o not_o if_o there_o be_v than_o there_o be_v enough_o for_o salvation_n or_o else_o there_o be_v not_o enough_o in_o tradition_n because_o they_o will_v say_v scripture_n have_v confirm_v all_o tradition_n to_o the_o jew_n namely_o and_o then_o if_o there_o be_v enough_o to_o the_o jew_n for_o salvation_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v adequate_a to_o tradition_n then_o much_o more_o have_v we_o enough_o for_o salvation_n by_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o be_v there_o no_o need_n of_o any_o tradition_n beside_o the_o canon_n then_o he_o return_v to_o a_o enarration_n of_o the_o use_n of_o tradition_n even_o after_o write_v which_o be_v of_o no_o use_n to_o they_o but_o to_o we_o because_o here_o he_o produce_v several_a text_n for_o tradition_n in_o the_o same_o notion_n as_o 2._o thes_n 2._o gal._n 1.8_o tim._n 2.2_o 2._o and_o herein_o he_o prevaricate_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n for_o if_o these_o text_n be_v mean_v of_o such_o tradition_n which_o be_v afterward_o write_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o they_o be_v so_o understand_v as_o we_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o they_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o question_n about_o tradition_n beside_o scripture_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o second_o whereas_o he_o speak_v that_o these_o
text_n confirm_v the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n we_o grant_v it_o namely_o of_o those_o tradition_n which_o be_v afterward_o write_v but_o how_o do_v these_o text_n confirm_v the_o certain_a necessity_n of_o those_o that_o be_v not_o write_v and_o therefore_o three_o he_o be_v mighty_o disappoint_v if_o he_o conceive_v those_o text_n shall_v bind_v we_o to_o stand_v upon_o tradition_n now_o more_o than_o ever_o for_o the_o formality_n of_o tradition_n be_v there_o sink_v in_o the_o write_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o his_o own_o confession_n unless_o he_o drive_v the_o text_n heterogeneous_o to_o his_o own_o word_n and_o he_o impinge_v upon_o the_o same_o stone_n again_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v put_v ●ut_v one_o light_n cost_v he_o nothing_o because_o it_o will_v be_v shine_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n unless_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v i●_n hide_a because_o he_o have_v now_o another_o light_n but_o so_o that_o even_o with_o both_o those_o light_v many_o of_o his_o household_n will_v still_o remain_v i●_n darkness_n ans_fw-fr he_o suppose_v a_o light_n add_v to_o a_o light_n it_o be_v well_o then_o that_o scripture_n be_v assure_v to_o be_v one_o light_n but_o his_o tradition_n shall_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o light_n when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o light_n namely_o when_o the_o scripture_n be_v defective_a second_o if_o he_o think_v tradition_n be_v a_o light_n cost_v we_o nothing_o he_o may_v be_v deceive_v for_o it_o will_v cost_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o scrutiny_n since_o we_o can_v see_v it_o shine_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n infallible_o and_o three_o if_o some_o be_v still_o in_o darknese_n with_o both_o those_o light_n then_o sure_o they_o may_v be_v more_o in_o darkness_n with_o but_o one_o and_o that_o be_v tradition_n therefore_o they_o shall_v allow_v the_o people_n the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n since_o both_o too_o little_a as_o he_o say_v to_o some_o but_o fourthly_a what_o if_o one_o light_n put_v out_o the_o other_o in_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n namely_o scripture_n tradition_n superad_v in_o matter_n and_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v light_v a_o straw_n candle_n in_o the_o father_n expression_n when_o the_o sun_n shine_v the_o sun-light_n of_o scripture_n put_v out_o the_o straw-light_n of_o tradition_n condemn_v those_o who_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n tradition_n of_o man_n which_o the_o romanist_n do_v in_o some_o proportion_n and_o five_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v have_v such_o a_o light_n which_o serve_v his_o turn_n best_o when_o it_o shine_v least_o for_o tradition_n if_o we_o believe_v our_o adversary_n be_v a_o cover_a dish_n dainty_n to_o be_v keep_v private_a for_o those_o who_o be_v fit_a to_o receive_v they_o the_o more_o wise_a and_o perfect_a man_n which_o may_v teach_v they_o to_o other_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n that_o be_v make_v common_a by_o writing_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o tradition_n be_v put_v under_o a_o bushel_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v deliver_v in_o scripture_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trent_n tradition_n must_v not_o be_v familiar_o know_v so_o then_o say_v they_o what_o they_o will_v or_o can_v we_o shall_v soon_o find_v a_o extinguisher_n for_o the_o light_n of_o the_o rush_n candle_n than_o they_o for_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o if_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v give_v we_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v a_o more_o certain_a tradition_n give_v we_o so_o he_o deliver_v my_o word_n which_o be_v not_o so_o but_o thus_o if_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o we_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v tradition_n more_o certain_o convey_v to_o we_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v before_o it_o be_v write_v now_o some_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o give_v we_o and_o leave_v we_o for_o that_o which_o be_v leave_v to_o we_o be_v intend_v for_o our_o constant_a use_n which_o that_o which_o be_v give_v do_v not_o connotate_n so_o some_o pontifician_n will_v say_v the_o scripture_n be_v give_v upon_o particular_a occasion_n but_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o fix_a universal_a rule_n but_o there_o be_v yet_o more_o betwixt_o we_o about_o my_o word_n we_o shall_v have_v have_v tradition_n more_o certain_o convey_v to_o we_o so_o i_o say_v he_o report_v i_o thus_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v a_o more_o certain_a tradition_n give_v unto_o we_o a_o more_o certain_a tradition_n give_v and_o a_o tradition_n more_o certain_o convey_v be_v not_o altogether_o the_o same_o the_o former_a suppose_v the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n as_o not_o certain_a and_o this_o we_o can_v deny_v as_o to_o those_o time_n when_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n as_o write_v the_o other_o speak_v de_fw-fr modo_fw-la tradendi_fw-la which_o come_v close_o to_o our_o question_n for_o we_o can_v persuade_v ourselves_o that_o god_n who_o be_v gracious_o provident_a for_o his_o church_n wherein_o he_o have_v place_v his_o name_n will_v have_v take_v care_n that_o if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o certain_a direction_n in_o writing_n the_o matter_n of_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n shall_v have_v be_v more_o certain_o communicate_v to_o we_o so_o then_o he_o thrive_v very_o little_a by_o compare_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n with_o the_o jewish_a although_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v more_o noble_a for_o first_o the_o compare_n must_v be_v of_o the_o jewish_a with_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n because_o the_o jewish_a church_n proselyt_n be_v include_v therein_o namely_o proselyt_v of_o the_o covenant_n as_o they_o be_v distinguish_v be_v all_o the_o church_n there_o be_v and_o second_o because_o no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v compare_v with_o the_o jewish_a church_n as_o to_o privilege_n and_o then_o by_o this_o reckon_n how_o little_a of_o nobility_n will_v fall_v to_o their_o share_n three_o as_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v it_o whereby_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n be_v propose_v be_v for_o the_o time_n necessary_a before_o the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n be_v write_v so_o also_o must_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v consider_v as_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o time_n before_o which_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v therefore_o he_o shall_v have_v plead_v if_o he_o will_v have_v it_o do_v pat_o that_o there_o be_v any_o tradition_n of_o faith_n after_o the_o old_a law_n be_v write_v beside_o what_o be_v write_v which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n equal_o to_o what_o be_v write_v and_o then_o have_v draw_v down_o a_o parallel_n line_n of_o proportion_n of_o the_o same_o though_o he_o will_v have_v more_o nobility_n for_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o if_o the_o nobleness_n of_o a_o church_n be_v antecedent_n to_o more_o certain_a tradition_n as_o he_o think_v then_o how_o happen_v it_o that_o there_o be_v so_o little_a a_o time_n betwixt_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o write_n of_o it_o it_o seem_v then_o if_o god_n provide_v for_o church_n according_a to_o the_o nobleness_n of_o they_o that_o the_o better_a provision_n for_o the_o church_n be_v by_o scripture_n the_o christian_a then_o have_v a_o more_o certain_a way_n of_o faith_n than_o by_o tradition_n and_o as_o for_o mean_n of_o secure_v tradition_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o he_o compare_v with_o the_o jewish_a in_o he_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o brag_v for_o first_o they_o can_v say_v or_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v all_o tradition_n in_o number_n formal_a and_o material_a second_o they_o do_v not_o practise_v all_o how_o many_o be_v there_o which_o st._n basil_n speak_v of_o in_o his_o tract_n de_fw-fr sp._n sanct._n which_o they_o observe_v not_o three_o the_o safety_n of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o yet_o forsooth_o every_o one_o must_v not_o know_v they_o four_o if_o so_o then_o have_v they_o reason_n to_o blush_v that_o they_o have_v be_v more_o careful_a to_o keep_v tradition_n than_o scripture_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o hebrew_n copy_n of_o st._n matthew_n and_o be_v this_o for_o their_o credit_n five_o be_v the_o scripture_n preserve_v uncorrupt_a or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o have_v they_o be_v faithful_a as_o before_o if_o so_o then_o why_o do_v their_o learned_a man_n obtrude_v the_o authentiqueness_n of_o their_o latin_n upon_o this_o account_n that_o when_o this_o edition_n be_v make_v the_o scripture_n be_v pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a but_o corrupt_v since_o again_o the_o tradition_n of_o christ_n primitive_a church_n before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o sufficient_o promulge_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o her_o sole_a authority_n ans_fw-fr if_o he_o take_v that_o tradition_n inclusive_o to_o the_o apostle_n who_o preach_v that_o which_o they_o do_v write_v
afterward_o and_o take_v tradition_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o what_o be_v write_v we_o grant_v it_o if_o but_o he_o take_v tradition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v derive_v to_o after_o time_n and_o be_v not_o write_v we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v upon_o her_o sole_a authority_n in_o the_o former_a sense_n it_o be_v true_a but_o not_o pertinent_a in_o the_o latter_a pertinent_a but_o not_o true_a and_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o notion_n of_o tradition_n for_o the_o first_o time_n namely_o to_o be_v that_o s●●●●e_n of_o doctrine_n which_o do_v comprehend_v the_o material_n of_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v any_o thing_n different_a from_o scripture_n or_o diverse_a 〈…〉_o first_o of_o the_o gal._n 8._o do_v not_o signify_v contra_fw-la but_o prae●●●_n from_o scripture_n so_o he_o will_v find_v irenaeus_n to_o mean_v it_o and_o so_o st._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o 5._o cat._n 117._o p_o of_o the_o gr_n last_o ed._n make_v it_o to_o be_v upon_o account_n no_o other_o than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o system_fw-la out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n about_o every_o of_o those_o thing_n contain_v and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o thing_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o compose_v as_o it_o please_v man_n but_o the_o most_o pertinent_a thing_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o all_o scripture_n do_v make_v up_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o again_o as_o the_o seed_n of_o mustard_n in_o a_o little_a grain_n do_v contain_v many_o branch_n so_o faith_n itself_o in_o few_o word_n do_v comprehend_v the_o knowledge_n of_o piety_n that_o be_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o what_o follow_v but_o that_o text_n which_o he_o my_o adversary_n name_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v therefore_o brethren_n and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n so_o than_o if_o he_o take_v tradition_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o church_n be_v infallible_a therein_o by_o the_o apostle_n if_o in_o the_o second_o the_o tradition_n be_v infallible_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n believe_v it_o upon_o that_o account_n and_o that_o tradition_n do_v not_o bind_v either_o in_o their_o own_o virtue_n or_o without_o scripture_n they_o may_v see_v in_o st._n basil_n who_o yet_o speak_v much_o for_o they_o so_o in_o the_o seven_o ch_z of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n where_o speak_v of_o the_o controversy_n whethre_o they_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o who_o or_o by_o who_o he_o have_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n for_o even_o they_o do_v follow_v the_o will_n of_o scripture_n have_v take_v principle_n out_o of_o testimony_n which_o a_o little_a before_o we_o propose_v to_o you_o out_o of_o scripture_n god_n therefore_o say_v by_o his_o apostle_n that_o the_o tradition_n than_o be_v infallible_a be_v in_o matter_n the_o same_o with_o what_o they_o write_v for_o their_o authority_n now_o if_o god_n say_v this_o shall_v we_o upon_o his_o fallible_a discourse_n for_o even_o council_n be_v fallible_a in_o their_o discourse_n come_v to_o say_v the_o church_n tradition_n be_v further_a infallible_a than_o agreeable_a to_o his_o word_n though_o god_n never_o say_v so_o and_o never_o yet_o express_v any_o such_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o i_o return_v he_o his_o own_o word_n mutatis_fw-la mutandis_fw-la and_o so_o my_o argument_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o yet_o refute_v neither_o do_v he_o take_v away_o my_o use_n of_o irenaeus_n testimony_n in_o the_o next_o paragr_n for_o as_o to_o my_o argument_n what_o he_o say_v be_v not_o appliable_a it_o be_v thus_o out_o of_o his_o authority_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o we_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v tradition_n more_o certain_o convey_v to_o we_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v before_o it_o be_v write_v but_o the_o scripture_n be_v now_o leave_v to_o we_o therefore_o no_o need_n of_o certain_a conveyance_n of_o tradition_n to_o we_o this_o syllogism_n he_o make_v no_o offer_n of_o answer_n to_o for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n though_o you_o can_v invent_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o tradition_n shall_v have_v be_v convey_v more_o certain_o suppose_v there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n i_o can_v receive_v without_o prejudice_n to_o my_o argument_n for_o whatsoever_o hypothetical_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v have_v not_o there_o be_v scripture_n yet_o now_o since_o we_o have_v scripture_n we_o have_v no_o such_o need_n of_o we_o now_o dispute_v upon_o the_o fact_n not_o against_o the_o supposition_n therefore_o from_o the_o dint_n of_o the_o ratiocination_n he_o digress_v to_o a_o observation_n of_o disrespect_n in_o i_o to_o st._n irenaeus_n because_o i_o say_v neither_o can_v we_o believe_v that_o those_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v rely_v only_o upon_o tradition_n ans_fw-fr he_o be_v in_o this_o deceive_v to_o assent_v to_o tradition_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o and_o not_o to_o assent_v to_o the_o matter_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o tradition_n be_v not_o such_o opposite_n as_o he_o imagine_v for_o they_o may_v well_o agree_v therefore_o though_o the_o father_n say_v they_o do_v assent_v to_o tradition_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n yet_o not_o by_o tradition_n as_o the_o manner_n tradition_n be_v the_o objectum_fw-la materiale_a not_o the_o objectum_fw-la formale_a of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o next_o word_n as_o he_o also_o perhibit_v the_o father_n word_n do_v defend_v my_o answer_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o then_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o tradition_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n so_o this_o contradict_v my_o adversary_n and_o make_v for_o i_o not_o only_o by_o consequence_n because_o it_o be_v against_o he_o but_o direct_o for_o than_o we_o can_v as_o well_o be_v assure_v of_o scripture_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o have_v no_o such_o need_n then_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o salvation_n though_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o can_v and_o yet_o beside_o this_o tradition_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o consanguinity_n with_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n so_o then_o we_o may_v conclude_v in_o the_o negative_a they_o do_v not_o rely_v upon_o or_o believe_v upon_o the_o sole_a account_n of_o that_o very_a tradition_n &_o yet_o if_o they_o have_v it_o will_v not_o conclude_v against_o our_o cause_n because_o that_o tradition_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o question_n to_o be_v civil_a to_o a_o adversary_n in_o this_o number_n 14._o n._n 14._o all_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o may_v be_v resolve_v into_o this_o discourse_n if_o the_o radition_n of_o the_o church_n testify_v she_o own_o infallibility_n in_o propose_v for_o god_n word_n that_o which_o she_o deliver_v for_o god_n word_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v than_o she_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o propose_v that_o to_o be_v god_n word_n which_o be_v not_o write_v ans_fw-fr this_o have_v be_v abundant_o agitate_a before_o with_o our_o indemnity_n to_o the_o plaintiff_n but_o since_o he_o repeat_v i_o do_v not_o and_o we_o answer_v first_o the_o consequence_n be_v not_o clear_a especial_o if_o we_o extend_v it_o to_o that_o which_o be_v not_o ground_v in_o scripture_n if_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o that_o which_o be_v ground_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o question_n as_o to_o that_o which_o be_v not_o ground_v in_o scripture_n we_o may_v still_o deny_v the_o major_a tradition_n universal_a of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v worthy_a of_o assent_n as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o so_o of_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v beside_o scripture_n which_o also_o be_v hold_v by_o other_o against_o they_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o yet_o disprove_v because_o there_o be_v more_o necessity_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o scripture_n than_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v beside_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o may_v we_o well_o suppose_v a_o great_a assistance_n to_o the_o propose_v of_o scripture_n than_o any_o thing_n diverse_a deus_fw-la non_fw-la deficit_fw-la in_o necessariis_fw-la why_o do_v they_o assert_v infallible_a assistance_n to_o general_n council_n not_o to_o private_a doctor_n or_o to_o a_o national_a council_n namely_o because_o other_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o general_a council_n well_o then_o the_o church_n universal_a may_v be_v more_o assist_v for_o the_o propose_v of_o
scripture_n than_o for_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o then_o i_o deny_v the_o minor_a the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n testify_v she_o own_o infallibility_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o a_o infallible_a assent_n it_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o moral_a assurance_n yet_o not_o of_o a_o i●fal_n ible_a assent_n no_o authority_n can_v write_v as_o to_o conscience_n what_o a_o king_n write_v as_o to_o civil_a credit_n testae_fw-la i_o ipso_fw-la but_o that_o which_o be_v immediate_o divine_a and_o why_o then_o do_v the_o pontifician_n prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n by_o scripture_n the_o church_n without_o scripture_n be_v not_o yet_o christen_v if_o we_o take_v scripture_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n it_o will_v be_v but_o the_o high_a form_n of_o heathen_n and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v antecedent_o to_o the_o church_n and_o how_o little_a his_o example_n have_v prove_v the_o minor_a we_o have_v see_v even_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v cause_n to_o conclude_v against_o i_o out_o of_o my_o own_o word_n thus_o tradition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unwritten_a be_v of_o equal_a authority_n to_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n we_o stand_v upon_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n true_o once_o deliver_v by_o our_o saviour_n or_o his_o apostle_n though_o the_o revelation_n be_v not_o write_v by_o they_o therefore_o this_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n to_o scripture_n even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o word_n sure_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o answer_v this_o than_o to_o forbear_v the_o person_n the_o proposition_n be_v not_o my_o word_n i_o hope_v categorical_o speak_v but_o as_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n if_o those_o tradition_n be_v in_o the_o matter_n beside_o scripture_n and_o now_o he_o take_v this_o to_o be_v my_o affirmation_n simple_o and_o then_o we_o deny_v his_o minor_a too_o because_o that_o which_o they_o stand_v upon_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v not_o reveal_v by_o our_o saviour_n or_o his_o apostle_n or_o true_o deliver_v by_o either_o for_o they_o be_v uncertain_a by_o which_o and_o if_o they_o will_v urge_v that_o text_n st._n john_n the_o 16.22_o as_o bellarmin_n do_v they_o may_v think_v that_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v write_v afterward_o or_o be_v not_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o text_n heretic_n have_v urge_v and_o therefore_o by_o my_o adversary_n logic_n he_o shall_v not_o and_o do_v st._n austin_n think_v that_o any_o can_v sober_o say_v that_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n be_v of_o that_o number_n or_o do_v any_o of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n see_v what_o they_o be_v in_o speculo_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la and_o do_v send_v down_o word_n thereof_o as_o for_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o exception_n which_o he_o take_v against_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n to_o we_o 15._o n._n 15._o because_o neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o their_o successor_n take_v any_o care_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n communicate_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o such_o language_n as_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o can_v understand_v my_o answer_n be_v yet_o good_a the_o care_n be_v take_v in_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a which_o be_v a_o common_a language_n then_o and_o this_o i_o give_v a_o argument_n of_o in_o that_o the_o grecian_a be_v contradistinguish_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o the_o greek_a must_v be_v the_o great_a and_o most_o famous_a part_n and_o therefore_o the_o language_n common_a this_o proof_n he_o be_v not_o please_v to_o meddle_v with_o at_o all_o another_o proof_n that_o that_o be_v the_o common_a language_n be_v that_o of_o tully_n for_o archias_n the_o poet_n graeca_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la leguntur_fw-la this_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o he_o say_v and_o so_o be_v virgil_n in_o latin_n but_o this_o do_v not_o contradict_v i_o yea_o he_o give_v i_o a_o corroboration_n of_o my_o argument_n for_o who_o do_v virgil_n imitate_v theocritus_n in_o his_o eglogue_n hesiod_n in_o his_o georgic_n homer_n in_o his_o aeneid_n yea_o horace_n have_v read_v the_o greek_n it_o seem_v by_o his_o grecism_n yea_o terence_n be_v so_o conversant_a in_o menander_n that_o he_o be_v call_v menander_n dimidiatus_fw-la but_o he_o say_v this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v thus_o that_o the_o most_o learned_a sort_n of_o man_n every_o where_o read_v greek_a and_o virgil._n ans_fw-fr this_o suppose_v be_v not_o exclusive_a to_o the_o greek_n be_v the_o common_a language_n as_o to_o other_o since_o he_o will_v think_v the_o latin_a be_v common_a to_o the_o people_n then_o and_o yet_o the_o most_o learned_a read_v virgil._n and_o do_v not_o all_o those_o nation_n who_o st._n paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o understand_v greek_a do_v he_o write_v only_o to_o the_o most_o learned_a in_o what_o language_n be_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n confess_v that_o this_o epistle_n also_o be_v write_v by_o st._n paul_n write_v be_v they_o not_o both_o write_v in_o greek_a yea_o the_o jew_n that_o use_v the_o septuagint_a translation_n be_v many_o so_o philo_n the_o jew_n and_o marcus_n antonius_n the_o roman_a write_v in_o greek_a and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o orator_n be_v speak_v without_o any_o such_o hyperbole_n he_o say_v yet_o further_o either_o this_o must_v be_v speak_v in_o way_n of_o a_o notable_a amplification_n or_o scripture_n must_v be_v deny_v because_o even_o between_o the_o two_o city_n of_o antioch_n and_o constantinople_n the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o pontus_n cappadocia_n asia_n minor_fw-la phrygia_n pamphilia_n all_o which_o nation_n the_o scripture_n act._n 2._o testify_v to_o have_v have_v different_a language_n ans_fw-fr though_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o they_o as_o distinguish_v in_o speech_n yet_o not_o in_o language_n but_o dialect_n and_o so_o it_o be_v express_v for_o 6.8_o and_o so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v restrain_v as_o to_o those_o who_o have_v several_a dialect_n therefore_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o pontus_n etc._n etc._n if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o common_a dialect_n of_o the_o greek_a be_v not_o use_v by_o they_o all_o this_o be_v not_o much_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o because_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o say_v that_o those_o who_o speak_v several_a dialect_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o common_a greek_a for_o take_v they_o all_o attic_a jonique_fw-la dorique_n aeolique_n and_o baeotique_a they_o differ_v ordinary_o but_o in_o termination_n or_o pronunciation_n from_o the_o common_a within_o that_o compass_n be_v also_o galatia_n which_o st._n jerom_n testify_v to_o have_v have_v a_o language_n somewhat_o like_o those_o of_o trever_n an._n it_o be_v as_o far_o from_o thebes_n to_o athens_n as_o from_o athens_n to_o thebes_n be_v it_o not_o then_o that_o of_o trever_n must_v be_v as_o near_o that_o of_o greek_n as_o that_o of_o the_o galatian_n which_o be_v greek_n in_o st._n paul_n time_n if_o afterward_o the_o language_n alter_v or_o be_v corrupt_v this_o do_v not_o contradict_v we_o because_o we_o must_v distinguish_v time_n and_o therefore_o yet_o it_o remain_v good_a that_o the_o greek_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n take_v care_n to_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v common_o understand_v and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o god_n do_v miraculous_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sub_fw-la forma_fw-la visibili_fw-la in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n in_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o this_o conclude_v against_o their_o latin_a service_n as_o also_o st._n paul_n discourse_v and_o conclude_v against_o it_o in_o the_o first_o ep._n cor._n 14._o and_o though_o we_o can_v tell_v the_o time_n when_o the_o scripture_n can_v first_o be_v show_v to_o have_v be_v thus_o communicate_v to_o the_o people_n of_o several_a language_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v afterward_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o we_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v write_v in_o the_o most_o common_a language_n for_o those_o time_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v do_v but_o that_o it_o be_v do_v appear_v seasonable_o in_o the_o great_a bible_n neither_o can_v they_o tell_v we_o or_o will_v when_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a begin_v first_o to_o be_v authentic_a whether_o under_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la or_o clement_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o move_v a_o question_n how_o the_o people_n shall_v clear_o know_v the_o true_a tradition_n from_o the_o false_a ans_fw-fr i_o do_v
move_v this_o question_n but_o somewhat_o else_o be_v annex_v which_o he_o say_v nothing_o to_o well_o to_o this_o he_o now_o answer_v first_o they_o can_v know_v this_o better_a than_o know_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a for_o they_o can_v not_o do_v that_o but_o by_o know_v first_o the_o true_a tradition_n recommend_v the_o true_a scripture_n from_o the_o false_a tradition_n recommend_v the_o false_a ans_fw-fr first_o this_o have_v be_v often_o deny_v he_o that_o the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o true_a scripture_n be_v not_o tradition_n this_o may_v lead_v we_o to_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o temple_n but_o this_o do_v not_o open_a the_o door_n of_o faith_n 2._o that_o tradition_n which_o make_v a_o inducement_n be_v of_o the_o universal_a not_o roman_n church_n 3._o how_o shall_v we_o know_v true_a tradition_n but_o by_o the_o true_a church_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v the_o true_a church_n but_o by_o scripture_n therefore_o we_o must_v know_v the_o true_a tradition_n from_o the_o false_a by_o the_o scripture_n which_o contradict_v his_o method_n and_o he_o say_v they_o can_v do_v this_o as_o well_o or_o better_a than_o their_o forefather_n for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n yea_o for_o two_o thousand_o yea_o for_o twice_o two_o thousand_o year_n together_o answ_n first_o they_o see_v then_o their_o error_n in_o define_v faith_n so_o strict_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a assent_n since_o they_o here_o stand_v upon_o a_o comparative_a certainty_n if_o so_o which_o amount_v not_o to_o the_o consistence_n of_o faith_n second_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o their_o forefather_n be_v determine_v in_o their_o faith_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o tradition_n even_o now_o or_o a_o little_a before_o he_o say_v tradition_n be_v establish_v to_o the_o jew_n by_o scripture_n now_o tradition_n be_v that_o which_o must_v discern_v and_o consequent_o establish_v scripture_n 3._o it_o appear_v that_o as_o scripture_n be_v more_o perfect_a than_o tradition_n because_o otherwise_o god_n have_v go_v the_o worst_a way_n namely_o from_o that_o which_o be_v more_o perfect_a to_o that_o which_o be_v less_o perfect_a namely_o from_o tradition_n to_o the_o write_n of_o his_o word_n but_o that_o which_o be_v less_o pefect_n can_v establish_v that_o which_o be_v more_o perfect_a therefore_o neither_o then_o nor_o now_o can_v scripture_n receive_v the_o blessing_n of_o establishment_n from_o that_o which_o be_v inferior_a 4._o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n to_o vie_v with_o the_o jew_n about_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v be_v more_o certain_a of_o true_a tradition_n but_o now_o there_o be_v several_a national_a church_n which_o may_v pretend_v superiority_n of_o tradition_n or_o tradition_n of_o superiority_n as_o the_o roman_a do_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o so_o sure_a a_o way_n to_o fix_v our_o last_o foot_n upon_o tradition_n 5._o universal_a tradition_n of_o all_o time_n and_o place_n which_o only_o weigh_v in_o this_o cause_n be_v not_o in_o other_o thing_n for_o they_o nor_o in_o that_o canon_n supernumerary_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o let_v they_o either_o retract_v the_o argument_n or_o take_v it_o yet_o he_o will_v be_v confident_a of_o two_o tradition_n whereof_o the_o efficacy_n be_v commend_v with_o perpetual_a profession_n and_o answerable_a practice_n daily_o occur_v baptism_n of_o infant_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a epart_v the_o first_o of_o these_o we_o have_v abundant_o examine_v before_o and_o he_o do_v here_o most_o insist_v upon_o the_o latter_a assign_v also_o his_o reason_n of_o more_o practice_n of_o this_o last_o because_o they_o baptize_v infant_n but_o once_o but_o they_o pray_v ●ften_o for_o the_o same_o man_n who_o be_v dead_a and_o then_o be_v more_o practise_v it_o be_v more_o confirm_v which_o cressie_n also_o urge_v ans_fw-fr as_o for_o paedobaptism_n here_o he_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o tradition_n unless_o this_o be_v a_o true_a proposition_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v commend_v with_o perpetual_a profession_n and_o answerable_a practice_n daily_o accur_v be_v only_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n tradition_n be_v such_o but_o all_o that_o be_v such_o be_v not_o tradition_n therefore_o that_o proposition_n deny_v and_o for_o what_o he_o say_v towards_o both_o before_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v only_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n clear_o and_o undeniable_o teach_v the_o baptise_v of_o child_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a depart_v it_o be_v not_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v undeniable_a and_o therefore_o clear_o and_o undeniable_o it_o be_v deny_v baptism_n of_o infant_n have_v not_o yet_o lose_v sufficient_a ground_n in_o scripture_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o a_o necessity_n of_o be_v name_v tradition_n as_o he_o shall_v have_v show_v and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a we_o answer_v first_o it_o seem_v then_o it_o be_v but_o a_o tradition_n and_o they_o will_v pradon_v we_o if_o we_o speak_v thus_o diminutive_o of_o it_o and_o whether_o this_o will_v please_v all_o the_o roman_a doctor_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o foot_n in_o scripture_n let_v it_o be_v none_o of_o our_o care_n 2._o for_o the_o object_n of_o person_n who_o they_o pray_v for_o question_n will_v be_v make_v what_o moral_o they_o be_v who_o be_v to_o be_v pray_v for_o but_o this_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o say_v they_o be_v the_o faithful_a well_o but_o all_o the_o faithful_a i_o suppose_v it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v say_v yes_o if_o not_o let_v they_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n of_o their_o distinction_n according_a to_o tradition_n if_o so_o then_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a do_v not_o infer_v purgatory_n which_o they_o intend_v in_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v prove_v because_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o some_o of_o they_o go_v up_o to_o heaven_n per_fw-la saltum_fw-la as_o they_o will_v also_o confess_v namely_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n and_o yet_o these_o be_v also_o pray_v for_o in_o order_n to_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n and_o indeed_o the_o ancient_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a do_v respect_v their_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n to_o be_v raise_v up_o at_o the_o resurrection_n not_o their_o soul_n to_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o purgatory_n after_o a_o plenary_a satisfaction_n and_o what_o mean_v st._n austin_n in_o tract_n in_o johannem_fw-la 49._o unus_fw-la cuique_fw-la cum_fw-la causa_fw-la sva_fw-la dormiet_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la causâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la resurget_fw-la and_o some_o of_o their_o own_o have_v late_o in_o this_o differ_v from_o they_o neither_o have_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o their_o infallibility_n persuade_v the_o greek_a church_n hereof_o in_o nilus_n time_n who_o have_v a_o learned_a discourse_n against_o it_o and_o three_o as_o for_o inscription_n upon_o the_o grave_n whereby_o he_o will_v make_v a_o prescription_n for_o the_o tradition_n we_o say_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o must_v have_v they_o to_o be_v show_v to_o be_v so_o ancient_a as_o to_o have_v be_v universal_o use_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o then_o second_o that_o they_o be_v use_v upon_o the_o roman_a account_n and_o as_o for_o aerius_n who_o only_o as_o he_o say_v deny_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v account_v for_o this_o his_o opinion_n a_o heretic_n by_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n epiphanius_n they_o must_v somewhat_o excuse_v we_o for_o this_o absolute_o be_v not_o right_a for_o their_o turn_n if_o true_a first_o not_o right_a for_o their_o use_n because_o he_o may_v deny_v prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o former_a respect_n namely_o for_o a_o joyful_a resurrection_n and_o this_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v namely_o whether_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o tradition_n in_o their_o sense_n as_o infer_v purgatory_n but_o 2._o neither_o be_v it_o absolute_o true_a that_o aerius_n be_v account_v a_o heretic_n for_o this_o opinion_n exclusive_o to_o other_o opinion_n of_o he_o as_o my_o adversary_n word_n import_v however_o he_o mean_v they_o i_o will_v pinch_v it_o either_o he_o mean_v for_o this_o opinion_n only_o or_o for_o this_o opinion_n with_o other_o opinion_n if_o for_o this_o opinion_n concurrent_o with_o other_o this_o derogate_v from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n and_o from_o his_o use_n too_o because_o if_o he_o be_v account_v a_o heretic_n for_o several_a opinion_n it_o may_v be_v some_o of_o they_o be_v not_o heretical_a opinion_n and_o than_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v for_o every_o of_o they_o account_v a_o heretic_n unless_o we_o can_v make_v some_o to_o be_v heresy_n which_o be_v not_o heresy_n and_o this_o will_v be_v a_o contradiction_n well_o then_o i_o
thus_o whatsoever_o require_v infallible_a assent_n must_v have_v a_o infallible_a authority_n diverss_n point_v not_o propose_v clear_o in_o scripture_n the_o church_n require_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o therefore_o she_o must_v have_v infallible_a authority_n we_o answer_v grant_v the_o major_a which_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o urge_v unless_o they_o have_v more_o firm_a principle_n that_o the_o assumption_n may_v be_v true_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la but_o not_o the_o jure_fw-la and_o then_o again_o it_o be_v yet_o deny_v that_o ever_o the_o church_n universal_a do_v ever_o exact_a this_o as_o to_o the_o right_a hereof_o she_o must_v prove_v her_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n too_o hereunto_o as_o to_o the_o fact_n it_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o our_o adversary_n therefore_o since_o i_o be_o respondent_fw-la i_o may_v conclude_v thus_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n those_o point_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n say_v he_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v they_o be_v not_o necessary_a here_o he_o make_v a_o return_n to_o my_o argument_n against_o he_o 18._o n._n 18._o that_o if_o that_o must_v be_v judge_n which_o can_v hear_v he_o and_o i_o and_o be_v hear_v by_o he_o and_o i_o then_o tradition_n be_v thus_o exclude_v from_o be_v the_o judge_n here_o he_o distinguish_v it_o be_v the_o church_n who_o propose_v these_o tradition_n and_o not_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v our_o judge_n ans_fw-fr this_o be_v easy_o take_v away_o for_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n tradition_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o church_n if_o their_o former_a argument_n be_v good_a that_o we_o must_v not_o ultimate_o be_v assure_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o scripture_n because_o we_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n so_o also_o we_o can_v ultimate_o be_v assure_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o church_n because_o we_o can_v tell_v which_o be_v the_o church_n but_o by_o tradition_n and_o if_o it_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o it_o as_o they_o must_v say_v then_o sure_o it_o may_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o church_n because_o as_o before_o by_o the_o father_n opinion_n the_o church_n must_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n again_o by_o tradition_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n breed_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o barbarian_a nation_n as_o we_o have_v it_o say_v before_o by_o my_o adversary_n therefore_o tradition_n must_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n or_o else_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o the_o roman_a contend_v for_o by_o a_o infallible_a judge_n or_o if_o they_o have_v than_o there_o be_v more_o infallible_a judge_n or_o faith_n may_v be_v have_v without_o a_o infallible_a judge_n or_o tradition_n and_o the_o church_n be_v all_o one_o and_o then_o the_o distinction_n be_v none_o and_o yet_o also_o this_o answer_n of_o his_o i_o do_v provide_v for_o before_o in_o these_o word_n but_o you_o say_v the_o church_n do_v determine_v hereby_o by_o tradition_n then_o may_v it_o determine_v by_o scripture_n more_o secure_o and_o more_o universal_o and_o to_o this_o he_o reply_v nothing_o but_o hold_v the_o conclusion_n from_o hence_o he_o skip_v to_o answer_v i_o about_o that_o which_o i_o oppose_v to_o his_o judge_n exclusive_o to_o any_o other_o i_o urge_v that_o of_o st._n paul_n that_o a_o heretic_n be_v condemn_v by_o himself_o namely_o as_o i_o discourse_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n within_o he_o by_o virtue_n of_o conscience_n which_o can_v and_o do_v and_o shall_v apply_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o condemnation_n of_o error_n in_o we_o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o say_v he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n but_o a_o infidel_n who_o be_v tell_v by_o his_o own_o conscience_n that_o he_o gainsayeth_a the_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr first_o then_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o clear_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o a_o infidel_n may_v be_v tell_v thereof_o by_o his_o own_o conscience_n if_o not_o so_o than_o his_o word_n have_v no_o sense_n if_o so_o then_o may_v we_o see_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o its_o own_o light_n as_o the_o heathen_n do_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o then_o he_o contradict_v his_o own_o former_a discourse_n second_o saint_n paul_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o infidel_n but_o in_o terminis_fw-la terminantibus_fw-la of_o a_o heretic_n who_o suppose_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o by_o consequence_n he_o deny_v it_o in_o hypothesie_n as_o to_o the_o point_n of_o heresy_n so_o that_o the_o text_n can_v be_v so_o put_v off_o and_o though_o every_o christian_n be_v ready_a to_o die_v than_o to_o disbelieve_v any_o one_o say_v of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o the_o heretic_n who_o suppose_v the_o scripture_n in_o thesi_fw-la and_o in_o general_a may_v yet_o deny_v it_o in_o the_o application_n against_o he_o and_o for_o this_o he_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v because_o he_o go_v against_o his_o own_o principle_n of_o scripture_n which_o do_v condemn_v his_o heresy_n in_o his_o own_o conscience_n though_o outward_o he_o oppose_v and_o he_o help_v his_o cause_n no_o better_o with_o another_o shift_n when_o st._n paul_n write_v those_o word_n the_o whole_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o write_v and_o until_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v write_v your_o own_o doctor_n grant_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n ans_fw-fr if_o he_o take_v whole_a so_o as_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o order_n to_o the_o canon_n i_o grant_v that_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v not_o then_o write_v but_o if_o he_o take_v it_o in_o opposition_n to_o a_o sufficient_a direction_n by_o what_o be_v then_o write_v i_o deny_v it_o there_o be_v then_o as_o much_o write_v as_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o how_o can_v st._n paul_n otherwise_o say_v to_o tim._n that_o the_o scripture_n than_o be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n thus_o i_o distinguish_v of_o the_o former_a part_n but_o then_o 2._o the_o latter_a i_o do_v deny_v that_o our_o own_fw-mi doctor_n do_v say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n until_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o then_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o pharise_n have_v be_v infallible_a no_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_a when_o it_o be_v not_o write_v but_o not_o the_o church_n therefore_o he_o mistake_v the_o purport_n of_o finish_v the_o canon_n which_o be_v not_o ever_o hold_v by_o we_o to_o cease_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o accomplish_v the_o matter_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o it_o do_v exclude_v verbum_fw-la non_fw-la scriptum_n infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v never_o hold_v but_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v always_o sufficient_a provide_v always_o that_o the_o church_n in_o this_o consideration_n be_v mean_v contradistinct_o to_o the_o writer_n of_o scripture_n neither_o need_v he_o to_o wonder_v at_o my_o say_n that_o the_o church_n then_o be_v not_o sufficient_o form_v thereunto_o namely_o to_o a_o definition_n of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v therein_o to_o this_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v form_v before_o st_n paul_n conversion_n and_o before_o his_o conversion_n the_o number_n of_o desciple_n be_v multiply_v ans_fw-fr the_o term_n church_n be_v very_o ambiguous_a he_o take_v it_o here_o of_o the_o church_n virtual_a or_o of_o the_o church_n representative_a or_o of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a the_o church_n virtual_a which_o the_o jesuit_n say_v be_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o yet_o form_v the_o church_n representative_a as_o they_o say_v in_o a_o council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o yet_o form_v there_o be_v no_o council_n general_n till_o after_o three_o hundred_o year_n nor_o pope_n so_o soon_o in_o their_o sense_n a_o church_n diffusive_a there_o be_v but_o this_o serve_v not_o his_o turn_n for_o we_o must_v speak_v of_o such_o a_o church_n form_v so_o that_o the_o heretic_n shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o contradict_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n now_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o my_o adversary_n be_v by_o the_o church_n representative_a and_o this_o be_v not_o then_o form_v then_o again_o to_o take_v his_o own_o word_n either_o the_o church_n be_v not_o then_o form_v most_o complete_o with_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o infallible_a direction_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o it_o be_v let_v they_o now_o say_v which_o they_o will_n then_o no_o necessity_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n yea_o no_o necessity_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n if_o it_o be_v not_o complete_o form_v than_o my_o former_a answer_n obtain_v and_o beside_o if_o
do_v now_o infallible_o teach_v the_o church_n in_o all_o definition_n and_o then_o a_o second_o that_o it_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o do_v so_o let_v they_o learn_v their_o duty_n not_o to_o tell_v god_n his_o duty_n do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v his_o duty_n when_o cajaphas_n and_o the_o assembly_n condemn_v christ_n and_o why_o do_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v eight_o hundred_o bishop_n in_o ariminum_n as_o infallible_a without_o a_o pope_n as_o the_o forty_o bishop_n in_o the_o trent_n council_n whereof_o some_o may_v be_v make_v bishop_n not_o because_o they_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o rest_n but_o that_o they_o may_v not_o differ_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n though_o against_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o if_o they_o put_v the_o difference_n in_o this_o compare_n upon_o a_o pope_n in_o trent_n council_n none_o in_o ariminum_n though_o that_o answer_n will_v not_o serve_v as_o before_o since_o praelat_n have_v a_o also_o a_o power_n of_o call_v council_n as_o my_o adversary_n before_o in_o some_o case_n why_o shall_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rather_o assist_v eight_o hundred_o praelat_n without_o a_o pope_n than_o forty_o with_o as_o to_o the_o eight_o answer_n he_o confess_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o that_o for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_n council_n and_o tell_v we_o the_o cause_n for_o persecution_n no_o council_n can_v be_v gather_v but_o this_o satisfi_v not_o god_n be_v not_o want_v in_o necessary_n nor_o abundant_a in_o superfluity_n as_o one_o of_o they_o say_v if_o council_n have_v be_v always_o necessary_a he_o can_v have_v provide_v against_o persecution_n or_o for_o a_o council_n notwithstanding_o and_o why_o not_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o those_o time_n of_o persecution_n neither_o be_v that_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n because_o all_o this_o time_n the_o former_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n remain_v so_o fresh_a and_o so_o notorious_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n diffuse_v and_o there_o remain_v also_o so_o universal_a a_o respect_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n ans_fw-fr these_o three_o cause_n will_v not_o make_v one_o sound_v one_o for_o by_o the_o first_o he_o mean_v the_o know_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o deliver_v in_o writing_n or_o not_o if_o so_o then_o why_o may_v not_o we_o by_o the_o same_o cause_n sufficient_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o word_n write_v and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o if_o he_o join_v tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o notorious_o diffuse_v as_o a_o social_a mean_n of_o the_o direction_n it_o may_v be_v deny_v upon_o this_o account_n only_o here_o for_o that_o other_o tradition_n of_o heretic_n be_v then_o mingle_v in_o the_o church_n with_o pretence_n of_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v notorious_o not_o distinguish_v and_o as_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v notorious_o false_a that_o then_o there_o be_v a_o chief_a bishop_n in_o their_o sense_n in_o those_o time_n for_o how_o then_o can_v equal_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v appoint_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v chief_a before_o how_o can_v st._n cyprian_n have_v say_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a pari_fw-la consortio_fw-la praediti_fw-la honoris_fw-la &_o potestatis_fw-la how_o can_v the_o african_a council_n have_v then_o cut_v off_o appeal_v to_o rome_n then_o have_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o feign_n of_o a_o canon_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n how_o can_v st._n jerom_n have_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o communi_fw-la in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrious_a neither_o be_v there_o such_o obedience_n then_o perform_v by_o they_o to_o the_o praelat_n in_o all_o place_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o clement_n to_o the_o corinthian_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o great_a schism_n and_o also_o by_o ignatius_n his_o earnest_a exhortation_n of_o submission_n to_o they_o whence_o the_o quartodecim_fw-la any_fw-la although_o they_o oppose_v nothing_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n be_v judge_v heretic_n for_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o church_n make_v evident_o know_v by_o fresh_a tradition_n ans_fw-fr first_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v their_o alphonsus_n de_fw-la castro_fw-la they_o be_v not_o sentential_o declare_v heretic_n because_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v indeed_o victor_n will_v have_v excommunicate_v then_o &_o fecisset_fw-la nisi_fw-la irenaeus_n illum_fw-la ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la redarguisset_fw-la he_o will_v have_v do_v it_o if_o irenaeus_n have_v not_o chide_v he_o for_o this_o by_o the_o way_n than_o be_v this_o also_o obedience_n to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n to_o chide_v he_o so_o alphons_n in_o his_o 12._o b._n de_fw-fr haer_fw-mi in_o verbo_fw-la pascha_fw-la yea_o 2._o they_o may_v know_v that_o eusebius_n do_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o asian_a observation_n to_o come_v from_o as_o good_a tradition_n as_o the_o the_o other_o and_o sure_o the_o asian_a church_n be_v therefore_o the_o western_a and_o therefore_o be_v it_o not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o church_n yea_o also_o by_o the_o way_n how_o be_v tradition_n of_o the_o church_n notorious_o diffuse_v when_o there_o be_v tradition_n against_o tradition_n and_o herein_o also_o do_v the_o british_a church_n which_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o differ_v from_o the_o western_a follow_v the_o eastern_a church_n 3._o heresy_n be_v some_o time_n large_o take_v and_o do_v then_o respect_n schism_n of_o proper_a name_n and_o so_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n it_o may_v by_o some_o be_v call_v heresy_n although_o the_o matter_n of_o difference_n be_v no_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n exit_fw-la verbis_fw-la male_a prolatis_fw-la oritur_fw-la haeresis_fw-la so_o heretic_n in_o a_o propriety_n of_o speech_n they_o can_v not_o be_v 14._o alphonsus_n do_v distinguish_v here_o upon_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o say_v they_o be_v account_v heretic_n not_o because_o they_o do_v simple_o observe_v it_o then_o sed_fw-la quia_fw-la ita_fw-la esse_fw-la necessario_fw-la faciendum_fw-la credebant_fw-la and_o this_o then_o alter_v the_o case_n and_o he_o explain_v himself_o further_a because_o this_o do_v include_v a_o necessity_n of_o observe_a judaical_a ceremony_n even_o after_o christ_n his_o come_n and_o so_o then_o this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n write_v and_o then_o this_o be_v not_o a_o tradition_n 5._o they_o here_o show_v the_o pride_n of_o rome_n to_o offer_v to_o cut_v off_o from_o her_o comunion_n all_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o other_o persuasion_n who_o be_v not_o few_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o eusebius_n 5._o b._n 24.5_o ch._n for_o a_o thing_n simple_o of_o free_a observation_n wherein_o difference_n make_v not_o variance_n a●_n irenaeus_n send_v word_n to_o their_o victor_n ch_n 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o difference_n of_o a_o fast_o and_o so_o of_o a_o feast_n do_v commend_v the_o agreement_n of_o faith_n he_o go_v on_o now_o as_o the_o church_n can_v want_v council_n for_o so_o many_o year_n so_o it_o can_v want_v council_n for_o the_o short_a space_n of_o schism_n right_n but_o then_o so_o can_v it_o want_v council_n still_o and_o therefore_o god_n have_v not_o bind_v we_o over_o to_o the_o church_n for_o our_o absolute_a direction_n upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n council_n be_v necessary_a to_o infallible_a direction_n so_o my_o adversary_n hold_v the_o church_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o in_o time_n of_o a_o schism_n can_v want_v council_n as_o my_o adversary_n here_o so_o then_o there_o be_v no_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o their_o infallibility_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v much_o need_n of_o council_n in_o that_o space_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n in_o regard_n of_o division_n as_o since_o and_o than_o if_o god_n provide_v sufficient_o for_o his_o church_n without_o they_o he_o can_v and_o will_v do_v so_o still_o and_o this_o be_v confirm_v by_o my_o adversary_n by_o these_o word_n of_o he_o for_o the_o neccessity_n of_o new_a declaration_n be_v not_o so_o frequent_a at_o least_o in_o any_o high_a degree_n of_o necessity_n call_v for_o instant_a remedy_n and_o remedy_n of_o this_o nature_n only_o and_o he_o may_v go_v on_o and_o say_v it_o not_o upon_o my_o opinion_n but_o for_o himself_o and_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la that_o scripture_n alone_o will_v remedy_v this_o necessity_n he_o need_v not_o to_o put_v in_o you_o say_v and_o as_o to_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o there_o remain_v many_o definition_n oft_o former_a council_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o alone_o serve_v god_n church_n these_o we_o have_v speak_v to_o sufficient_o before_o either_o the_o definition_n be_v conclude_v out_o of_o principle_n
but_o first_o the_o church_n universal_a do_v not_o say_v it_o second_o who_o of_o they_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o bear_v witness_n of_o themselves_o therefore_o their_o testimony_n be_v not_o true_a not_o in_o modo_fw-la if_o it_o be_v true_a in_o materia_fw-la three_o what_o the_o church_n can_v say_v amount_n but_o to_o a_o prudential_a motive_n or_o congruous_a inducement_n but_o what_o be_v it_o which_o ground_n faith_n and_o bind_v faith_n and_o make_v it_o a_o divine_a belief_n if_o not_o what_o be_v say_v in_o scripture_n without_o this_o what_o be_v the_o church_n but_o a_o company_n of_o man_n in_o naturalibus_fw-la the_o roman_a do_v not_o so_o much_o believe_v this_o or_o that_o because_o god_n say_v it_o but_o they_o believe_v god_n say_v it_o because_o the_o church_n say_v it_o but_o the_o church_n virtual_a in_o the_o pope_n representative_a in_o a_o council_n diffusive_a in_o the_o people_n signify_v nothing_o without_o religion_n the_o question_n than_o be_v what_o religion_n make_v the_o church_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v not_o reason_n satisfy_v we_o in_o this_o because_o some_o principle_n of_o religion_n do_v transcend_v reason_n and_o because_o reason_n can_v by_o its_o principle_n produce_v faith_n of_o proper_a name_n then_o we_o must_v have_v somewhat_o which_o be_v suppose_v as_o a_o common_a principle_n whereby_o true_a religion_n be_v discern_v not_o the_o church_n for_o the_o question_n be_v which_o be_v the_o church_n what_o then_o but_o scripture_n let_v they_o then_o think_v upon_o the_o former_a text_n for_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n which_o if_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v will_v save_v we_o this_o dispute_n and_o let_v they_o think_v upon_o that_o text_n esa_n the_o 8._o the_o 20._o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o that_o which_o be_v refer_v to_o another_o for_o direction_n be_v subordinate_a thereunto_o the_o church_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n therefore_o it_o be_v subordinate_a if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n as_o write_v it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o another_o text_n may_v be_v name_v 1._o epist_n of_o st._n peter_n the_o 1._o ch_n 23._o ver_fw-la be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o so_o the_o apostle_n from_o whence_o we_o thus_o argue_v that_o which_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o word_n be_v subordinate_a to_o it_o the_o church_n be_v beget_v by_o the_o word_n therefore_o their_o argument_n be_v retort_v by_o the_o contrary_a for_o the_o word_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o must_v be_v before_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v beget_v by_o the_o word_n therefore_o the_o church_n must_v depend_v upon_o the_o word_n which_o live_v and_o abide_v for_o ever_o and_o this_o better_a suit_n the_o stand_a character_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o loose_a and_o fluent_a or_o fluxive_a way_n of_o tradition_n and_o how_o come_v tradition_n into_o the_o world_n by_o the_o first_o church_n they_o will_v say_v well_o and_o how_o come_v the_o first_o church_n to_o be_v such_o what_o do_v they_o join_v together_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o some_o say_v the_o world_n come_v together_o by_o the_o casual_a concurrence_n of_o atom_n the_o first_o church_n viritim_fw-la be_v begottten_v by_o the_o word_n through_o the_o spirit_n so_o in_o the_o ver_fw-la before_o see_v you_o have_v purify_v your_o soul_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n through_o the_o spirit_n then_o all_o be_v to_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o word_n quod_fw-la est_fw-la primum_fw-la in_o generatione_n est_fw-la ultimum_fw-la resolutione_n so_o aquinas_n omne_fw-la reducitur_fw-la ad_fw-la principium_fw-la all_o be_v to_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o first_o principle_n therefore_o they_o will_v never_o reconcile_v st._n paul_n and_o irenaeus_n unless_o they_o admit_v my_o distinction_n of_o the_o church_n then_o that_o which_o frenaeus_fw-la say_v will_n well_o agree_v with_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n st._n paul_n say_v as_o we_o common_o read_v it_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n st._n irenaeus_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n both_o agree_v for_o subordinata_fw-la non_fw-la pugnant_fw-la subordinates_n make_v no_o war_n let_v they_o not_o therefore_o tell_v i_o that_o what_o god_n tell_v i_o by_o his_o church_n i_o be_o to_o admit_v this_o we_o admit_v but_o let_v they_o tell_v i_o how_o i_o shall_v infallible_o know_v that_o he_o tell_v i_o so_o by_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o tell_v i_o how_o i_o shall_v know_v the_o church_n but_o by_o letter_n of_o credence_n namely_o in_o scripture_n how_o can_v i_o divine_a whether_o there_o be_v to_o be_v a_o chureh_n and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o which_o the_o true_a religion_n without_o scripture_n and_o nemo_fw-la tenetur_fw-la derinare_fw-la as_o the_o say_n so_o that_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v first_o believe_v independent_o on_o scripture_n depend_v neither_o upon_o scripture_n nor_o catholic_n church_n nor_o reason_n take_v scripture_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o and_o that_o which_o he_o say_v have_v no_o consistency_n in_o save_v religion_n there_o be_v nothing_o before_o it_o not_o only_o in_o signo_fw-la rationis_fw-la but_o also_o in_o time_n because_o the_o church_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o church_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o dispose_v we_o to_o faith_n of_o scripture_n but_o this_o do_v not_o resolve_v we_o because_o itself_o of_o itself_o resolu_v but_o into_o a_o moral_a capacity_n which_o make_v not_o faith_n proper_o call_v not_o faith_n divine_a therefore_o in_o genere_fw-la credibilium_fw-la the_o first_o proposition_n to_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o without_o its_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v credible_a in_o the_o sense_n of_o divine_a faith_n therefore_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o church_n be_v first_o believe_v independent_o on_o scripture_n namely_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o humane_a faith_n we_o may_v grant_v it_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o our_o purpose_n since_o we_o be_v dispute_v about_o faith_n divine_a if_o he_o take_v it_o of_o divine_a faith_n this_o will_v be_v to_o purpose_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a yet_o he_o proceed_v so_o he_o that_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a can_v admit_v of_o scripture_n as_o man_n admit_v of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o science_n ans_fw-fr nor_o do_v we_o say_v so_o ordinary_o he_o begin_v with_o prudential_a motive_n from_o without_o he_o use_v argument_n draw_v from_o out_o of_o scripture_n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o these_o motive_n be_v productive_a of_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v as_o much_o as_o device_n it_o because_o he_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o we_o the_o church_n be_v first_o believe_v independent_o of_o scripture_n so_o then_o the_o way_n by_o the_o church_n be_v imperfect_a as_o the_o way_n of_o knowledge_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v more_o know_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la but_o in_o the_o way_n of_o faith_n which_o make_v the_o assent_n more_o firm_a and_o certain_a we_o must_v begin_v with_o scripture_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n depend_v to_o join_v issue_n then_o we_o at_o first_o lead_v man_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o samaritan_n be_v lead_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o faith_n do_v not_o rest_v here_o because_o they_o who_o deny_v the_o scripture_n may_v deny_v the_o church_n and_o may_v question_v its_o credibility_n therefore_o since_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v de_fw-fr se_fw-mi terminate_v its_o self_n in_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n we_o will_v have_v our_o faith_n by_o such_o a_o way_n as_o be_v proportionable_a to_o it_o which_o if_o it_o be_v faith_n divine_a must_v rely_v upon_o some_o divine_a authority_n and_o this_o way_n the_o scripture_n must_v be_v more_o know_v than_o the_o church_n because_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o know_v the_o church_n in_o a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o without_o it_o can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la sure_o it_o be_v scripture_n which_o make_v individuum_fw-la demonstrativum_fw-la and_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o prove_v it_o determinatum_fw-la as_o in_o petrus_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o the_o criticism_n in_o the_o forename_a text_n of_o scripture_n to_o timothy_n about_o the_o
buckler_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o we_o that_o he_o can_v or_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o but_o then_o 2._o he_o be_v want_v in_o another_o thing_n because_o he_o do_v not_o produce_v his_o reason_n against_o our_o reason_n let_v they_o draw_v the_o sword_n and_o cut_v the_o knot_n if_o they_o can_v untie_v they_o let_v they_o bring_v forth_o their_o strong_a reason_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v when_o as_o then_o he_o say_v bring_v against_o my_o illimited_a text_n another_o text_n limit_v we_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n and_o our_o office_n be_v upon_o the_o negative_a until_o he_o bring_v another_o text_n for_o his_o sense_n or_o give_v reason_n for_o it_o or_o give_v we_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v nothing_o more_o to_o think_v beside_o what_o have_v be_v say_v then_o that_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v more_o than_o what_o follow_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o prime_a reason_n why_o christ_n give_v this_o infalliblity_n be_v great_a in_o age_n remote_a from_o christ_n but_o this_o be_v answer_v to_o by_o retortion_n that_o then_o tradition_n it_o seem_v now_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v equal_o certain_a and_o he_o answer_v now_o that_o which_o he_o have_v better_o have_v keep_v in_o he_o say_v now_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o prove_v now_o that_o christ_n do_v such_o miracle_n be_v crucify_v do_v rise_v again_o than_o it_o be_v present_o after_o these_o thing_n happen_v yet_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o infallible_o true_a now_o as_o they_o be_v then_o and_o as_o infallible_a so_o i_o say_v of_o tradition_n which_o for_o all_o this_o do_v not_o lose_v a_o sufficient_a measure_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n ans_fw-fr tradition_n than_o be_v but_o equal_a to_o scripture_n tradition_n now_o be_v not_o equal_a to_o tradition_n then_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o now_o equal_a to_o scripture_n and_o this_o spoil_n their_o tradition_n and_o contradict_v the_o trent_n council_n which_o determin_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la and_o so_o have_v he_o lose_v his_o hold_n of_o tradition_n by_o his_o own_o word_n neither_o will_v it_o save_v he_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v now_o as_o infallible_a as_o then_o in_o themselves_o but_o not_o to_o we_o for_o so_o be_v the_o scripture_n infallible_a in_o itself_o without_o the_o church_n as_o they_o confess_v but_o it_o do_v not_o so_o appear_v to_o we_o they_o say_v 2._o they_o be_v to_o make_v good_a if_o they_o can_v degree_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n by_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o infallibility_n but_o to_o go_v on_o what_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr he_o seem_v to_o be_v towards_o a_o punctum_fw-la reflexionis_fw-la here_o well_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n of_o equal_a assistance_n than_o my_o answer_n to_o such_o text_n be_v the_o better_a and_o then_o let_v they_o take_v the_o rule_n which_o their_o own_o do_v use_v deus_fw-la non_fw-la deficit_fw-la in_o necessaris_fw-la nec_fw-la abundat_fw-la in_o superfluis_fw-la god_n do_v not_o abound_v in_o thing_n superfluous_a nor_o be_v want_v in_o thing_n necessary_a but_o then_o also_o if_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a why_o have_v my_o adversary_n so_o much_o plead_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n indeed_o it_o may_v be_v if_o god_n have_v please_v and_o yet_o not_o necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o consequent_a but_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v because_o it_o be_v necessary_a he_o go_v on_o do_v not_o the_o church_n alone_o serve_v to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v etc._n etc._n we_o answer_v as_o often_o before_o the_o church_n be_v not_o thence_o conclude_v infallible_a put_v it_o into_o form_n that_o which_o decide_v all_o controversy_n be_v infallible_a the_o church_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v do_v decide_v all_o controversy_n therefore_o it_o be_v infallible_a no._n we_o first_o deny_v the_o proposition_n that_o which_o decide_v all_o controversy_n decide_v they_o infallible_o do_v not_o follow_v this_o can_v be_v prove_v less_o will_v not_o serve_v they_o then_o 2._o to_o the_o assumption_n we_o can_v deny_v it_o it_o do_v not_o decide_v all_o controversy_n put_v case_n it_o do_v decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n yet_o not_o all_o controversy_n and_o we_o must_v have_v a_o judge_n they_o say_v to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n whatsoever_o and_o 3._o if_o the_o church_n then_o before_o scripture_n be_v write_v do_v decide_v all_o controversy_n whatsoever_o then_o sure_o there_o be_v not_o that_o assistance_n infallible_a now_o give_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n yet_o they_o can_v decide_v all_o controversy_n if_o they_o can_v they_o be_v not_o faithful_a and_o then_o that_o of_o st._n cyprian_n be_v not_o due_a to_o they_o now_o that_o perfidia_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la habere_fw-la accessum_fw-la if_o they_o can_v where_o be_v the_o equal_a assistance_n and_o then_o also_o what_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o church_n be_v decide_v by_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o though_o not_o then_o write_v so_o that_o he_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o contradistinguish_v this_o decision_n of_o the_o controversy_n to_o the_o use_n of_o scripture_n again_o he_o say_v do_v not_o the_o old_a scripture_n testify_v as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n yes_o to_o what_o end_n then_o be_v john_n baptist_n send_v to_o testify_v this_o ans_fw-fr first_o if_o the_o old_a scripture_n do_v sufficient_o testify_v of_o the_o messiah_n then_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v sure_o sufficient_a if_o it_o do_v not_o sufficient_o testify_v than_o his_o argument_n be_v none_o 2._o there_o be_v not_o par_fw-fr ratio_fw-la for_o the_o add_v infallibility_n to_o the_o church_n after_o the_o canon_n be_v consign_v as_o for_o st._n johns_n testimony_n notwithstanding_o the_o old_a scripture_n more_o may_v be_v requisite_a for_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n then_o after_o because_o the_o church_n after_o be_v to_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o primitive_a but_o he_o say_v there_o be_v as_o good_a reason_n in_o age_n after_o the_o first_o when_o the_o church_n shall_v grow_v from_o a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n etc._n etc._n this_o prove_v nothing_o unless_o there_o may_v arise_v such_o a_o controversy_n which_o can_v not_o upon_o salvation_n be_v decide_v without_o a_o infallible_a judge_n let_v they_o prove_v this_o and_o they_o will_v say_v something_o if_o not_o this_o will_v not_o be_v to_o the_o purpose_n that_o several_a controversy_n in_o such_o a_o space_n may_v arise_v and_o will_v not_o the_o same_o number_n of_o necessary_a point_n material_a and_o formal_a serve_v as_o many_o more_o thousand_o of_o christian_n and_o those_o controversy_n which_o he_o name_v we_o have_v speak_v to_o nay_o when_o they_o have_v as_o they_o suppose_v a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v all_o controversy_n end_v let_v they_o bethink_v themselves_o what_o difference_n among_o they_o be_v yet_o dependent_a as_o before_o we_o wait_v therefore_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o such_o a_o promise_n of_o assistance_n extend_v to_o infallibility_n for_o other_o age_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o he_o to_o say_v why_o may_v not_o christ_n for_o any_o thing_n you_o know_v think_v this_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n a_o posse_fw-la in_o the_o premise_n will_v not_o make_v a_o actuality_n in_o the_o conclusion_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o reason_n after_o the_o thing_n be_v apparent_a and_o a_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v if_o they_o can_v sound_o prove_v to_o we_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o assistance_n give_v in_o promise_n to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n than_o we_o shall_v soon_o be_v induce_v to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o reason_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o reason_n till_o the_o reason_n prove_v the_o thing_n 3._o if_o word_n in_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v take_v always_o simple_o according_a to_o the_o term_n what_o need_n will_v there_o then_o be_v of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o let_v they_o choose_v which_o they_o will_v do_v whether_o they_o will_v always_o have_v scripture_n mean_v according_a to_o the_o uppermost_a import_n of_o the_o letter_n if_o so_o than_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v plain_a which_o they_o have_v deny_v if_o not_o then_o may_v they_o admit_v a_o limitation_n of_o that_o assistance_n speak_v of_o matthew_n 28.3_o this_o form_n of_o modality_n why_o may_v not_o shall_v not_o one_o will_v think_v become_v the_o high_a mode_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n
church_n as_o visible_a who_o proposal_n we_o must_v receive_v and_o submit_v our_o understanding_n unto_o for_o the_o invisible_a church_n or_o church_n as_o invisible_a can_v order_v we_o in_o our_o belief_n because_o as_o such_o it_o be_v not_o know_v to_o we_o i_o come_v now_o to_o your_o testimony_n and_o your_o first_o witness_n be_v saint_n irenaeus_n answ_n we_o yield_v all_o to_o saint_n irenaus_n nothing_o to_o you_o we_o say_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v among_o other_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o may_v easy_o take_v and_o receive_v from_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n yes_o because_o the_o church_n be_v serviceable_a to_o the_o truth_n by_o way_n of_o ministry_n to_o deliver_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n to_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n to_o uphold_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o so_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a treasury_n of_o truth_n because_o we_o have_v therein_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o treasury_n do_v not_o make_v the_o money_n true_a nor_o currant_n for_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o there_o may_v be_v false_a money_n in_o the_o treasury_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o take_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a because_o it_o come_v out_o from_o thence_o and_o so_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o make_v true_a to_o we_o or_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o evident_o credible_a to_o we_o because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o we_o must_v look_v who_o image_n and_o superscription_n the_o doctrine_n have_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v right_a coin_n or_o not_o and_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o right_a stamp_n and_o yet_o not_o therefore_o say_v origen_n in_o his_o 34._o hom._n upon_o matth._n all_o money_n 1._o every_o word_n that_o have_v the_o royal_a stamp_n of_o god_n and_o the_o image_n of_o his_o word_n upon_o it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o we_o must_v bring_v it_o to_o the_o word_n for_o trial_n we_o confess_v we_o may_v take_v out_o of_o her_o the_o drink_n of_o life_n yes_o but_o as_o out_o of_o a_o cistern_n such_o water_n as_o come_v from_o the_o fountain_n the_o scripture_n and_o we_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o water_n of_o life_n as_o tertullian_n in_o his_o prescription_n we_o deny_v not_o this_o to_o be_v the_o entrance_n of_o life_n because_o we_o have_v here_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n administer_v and_o all_o without_o the_o church_n we_o say_v be_v thief_n and_o robber_n and_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v avoid_v yes_o all_o without_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o will_v break_v her_o peace_n and_o rob_v her_o treasury_n be_v as_o thief_n and_o robber_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v avoid_v we_o grant_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v true_a from_o scripture_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o not_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n in_o thing_n of_o discipline_n be_v with_o great_a diligence_n to_o be_v love_v and_o we_o allow_v it_o that_o the_o tradition_n of_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v yes_o thus_o the_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o truth_n or_o the_o truth_n deliver_v in_o writing_n for_o so_o tradition_n not_o seldom_o signify_v or_o tradition_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v according_a to_o scripture_n as_o the_o apostle_n creed_n not_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v shall_v be_v truth_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o but_o whatsoever_o truth_n be_v deliver_v shall_v be_v receive_v this_o be_v all_o that_o place_n as_o seem_v to_o i_o will_v afford_v your_o second_o testimony_n from_o the_o same_o father_n may_v itself_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o former_a and_o may_v confirm_v my_o answer_n only_o let_v i_o add_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n then_o pure_a than_o now_o if_o you_o will_v have_v more_o say_v to_o this_o you_o may_v find_v it_o in_o saint_n cyprian_n authority_n which_o you_o produce_v next_o the_o church_n catholic_n always_o hold_v not_o make_v that_o which_o she_o first_o know_v where_o in_o scripture_n where_o else_o and_o where_o the_o church_n hold_v that_o which_o it_o thus_o know_v we_o hold_v with_o it_o and_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o church_n for_o hold_v it_o forth_o to_o we_o the_o church_n may_v inform_v we_o of_o it_o but_o it_o do_v not_o certify_v it_o to_o we_o therefore_o do_v not_o infallible_o convey_v it_o the_o truth_n to_o we_o therefore_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o a_o candlestick_n to_o hold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o moreover_o though_o be_v do_v always_o hold_v that_o which_o it_o know_v may_v it_o not_o also_o hold_v somewhat_o which_o she_o do_v not_o know_v though_o it_o do_v hold_v that_o which_o be_v true_a may_v it_o not_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v false_a in_o other_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v true_a wherein_o we_o differ_v not_o and_o also_o many_o thing_n false_a wherein_o she_o exceed_v the_o catholic_n faith_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o object_n now_o put_v case_n therefore_o that_o that_o ancient_a church_n near_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v not_o hold_v any_o point_n false_a but_o do_v hold_v every_o point_n true_a yet_o even_o from_o hence_o nothing_o will_v be_v infer_v sufficient_o to_o your_o purpose_n unless_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n by_o a_o impossibility_n of_o error_n in_o any_o particular_a such_o be_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v want_v in_o the_o church_n not_o privative_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v ever_o promise_v but_o negative_o because_o not_o promise_v to_o the_o church_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o err_v yet_o this_o will_v not_o make_v we_o rest_v our_o faith_n in_o it_o faith_n have_v no_o sure_a foot_n in_o such_o contingency_n of_o truth_n unless_o you_o prove_v a_o non-possibility_n of_o err_a you_o do_v nothing_o but_o we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o signal_n testimony_n of_o this_o kind_n that_o of_o saint_n austin_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v move_v i_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o if_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o other_o father_n be_v defective_a in_o clearness_n or_o fullness_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n the_o testimony_n of_o one_o single_a father_n though_o excellent_a will_v not_o amount_v to_o the_o verdict_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o you_o have_v no_o father_n yet_o for_o you_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o see_v second_o take_v this_o passage_n by_o itself_o and_o it_o seem_v to_o speak_v high_a but_o consider_v it_o with_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o discourse_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n and_o it_o be_v like_o you_o will_v begin_v to_o think_v that_o it_o come_v out_o from_o he_o in_o some_o heat_n of_o spirit_n to_o overcome_v his_o adversary_n three_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o use_v a_o criticism_n which_o admit_v according_a to_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o it_o will_v somewhat_o change_v the_o property_n of_o this_o suffrage_n it_o appear_v by_o compare_n of_o place_n in_o african_a writer_n that_o as_o be_v observe_v their_o manner_n be_v to_o express_v the_o tense_n more_o than_o past_a by_o the_o imperfect_a and_o also_o that_o he_o in_o other_o place_n must_v so_o be_v understand_v and_o if_o so_o here_o than_o it_o must_v refer_v to_o he_o as_o when_o he_o be_v a_o manichee_n he_o be_v move_v then_o as_o such_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o embrace_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v move_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n but_o this_o come_v not_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v intend_v for_o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n whether_o we_o shall_v ground_v our_o faith_n of_o they_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o in_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v this_o a_o universal_a way_n as_o be_v pretend_v of_o come_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o some_o have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n immediate_o from_o the_o word_n as_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n at_o the_o preach_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o be_v note_v and_o yet_o fourthly_a mark_v the_o term_n it_o be_v not_o say_v i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cause_v i_o but_o unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v move_v i_o and_o thus_o this_o testimony_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v with_o our_o opinion_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n may_v move_v he_o although_o he_o do_v grind_v his_o
find_v in_o my_o heart_n not_o to_o say_v a_o word_n to_o they_o that_o you_o may_v see_v i_o do_v not_o give_v they_o that_o respect_n as_o to_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o take_v the_o strength_n of_o all_o their_o authority_n together_o and_o make_v of_o they_o a_o accumulative_a argument_n as_o we_o may_v speak_v yet_o they_o do_v not_o conclude_v your_o cause_n calvin_n and_o his_o scholar_n in_o their_o say_n affirm_v no_o more_o than_o that_o which_o we_o acknowledge_v not_o from_o they_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_o furnish_v with_o necessary_a doctrine_n unto_o salvation_n but_o those_o of_o the_o church_n invisible_a may_v be_v save_v though_o the_o church_n visible_a be_v not_o infallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n not_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n as_o for_o doctor_n saravia_n passage_n i_o answer_v it_o do_v not_o come_v up_o close_o to_o your_o purpose_n the_o h._n g._n which_o bear_v rule_n in_o the_o church_n objective_o be_v the_o true_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o and_o if_o you_o understand_v the_o church_n objective_o yet_o first_o the_o matter_n he_o seem_v to_o speak_v to_o be_v of_o discipline_n about_o government_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o primitive_a example_n but_o we_o be_v upon_o point_n of_o faith_n second_o he_o can_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o when_o he_o act_v as_o he_o do_v former_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o whether_o he_o do_v so_o act_v now_o be_v a_o question_n yea_o no_o question_n three_o if_o you_o will_v with_o he_o and_o from_o he_o draw_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v proportionable_o episcopal_a with_o all_o my_o heart_n i_o reject_v they_o that_o reject_v it_o and_o your_o adversary_n of_o wittenberg_n confess_v nothing_o for_o you_o the_o rule_n they_o speak_v of_o namely_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a preach_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v according_a to_o which_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o interpret_v those_o place_n which_o be_v obscure_a and_o to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o she_o have_v receive_v so_o as_o her_o interpretation_n be_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o her_o judgement_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o word_n namely_o hard_a place_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v by_o those_o which_o be_v more_o plain_a and_o controversy_n to_o be_v decide_v by_o that_o rule_n and_o all_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o you_o for_o thus_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n rule_v and_o the_o church_n be_v but_o the_o rule_n rule_v and_o thus_o we_o follow_v the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n follow_v the_o rule_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o as_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n c._n 11._o v._n 1._o or_o if_o those_o lutheran_n mean_v by_o a_o certain_a rule_n any_o rule_n distinguish_v from_o scripture_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o some_o general_a head_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o proportion_n whereunto_o doubtful_a place_n and_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v but_o those_o head_n be_v to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o so_o all_o be_v resolve_v towards_o belief_n in_o scripture_n but_o i_o think_v no_o man_n can_v see_v how_o they_o shall_v say_v such_o a_o rule_n which_o be_v not_o scripture_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n so_o for_o they_o and_o for_o doctor_n field_n if_o you_o will_v go_v through_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o the_o four_o book_n you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o he_o contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n for_o he_o say_v plain_o that_o though_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v receive_v by_o way_n of_o tradition_n yet_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o their_o authority_n from_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o win_v credit_n of_o themselves_o and_o yield_v satisfaction_n to_o all_o man_n of_o their_o divine_a truth_n whence_o we_o judge_v that_o the_o church_n which_o receive_v they_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n observe_v not_o because_o the_o church_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n therefore_o do_v he_o say_v she_o receive_v they_o but_o because_o she_o receive_v they_o therefore_o we_o judge_v she_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o as_o for_o his_o rule_n of_o faith_n descend_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n what_o be_v he_o like_v to_o mean_v but_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o he_o say_v there_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o her_o faith_n but_o even_o this_o bind_v not_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o upon_o virtue_n of_o tradition_n but_o by_o proportion_n to_o scripture_n where_o it_o be_v find_v in_o particular_n of_o matter_n though_o not_o in_o form_n of_o a_o creed_n we_o confess_v also_o that_o we_o shall_v search_v out_o the_o true_a church_n as_o the_o same_o doctor_n say_v we_o confess_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o household_n of_o faith_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v embrace_v her_o communion_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n yes_o but_o how_o not_o ultimate_o not_o absolute_o not_o in_o what_o so_o ever_o she_o say_v because_o she_o say_v it_o but_o in_o what_o so_o ever_o she_o say_v from_o the_o lord_n for_o although_o she_o do_v go_v by_o a_o infallible_a rule_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o sure_a she_o go_v by_o it_o infallible_o therefore_o though_o we_o rest_v in_o her_o judgement_n as_o to_o peace_n yet_o can_v we_o not_o rest_v in_o her_o judgement_n as_o to_o truth_n because_o our_o understanding_n be_v not_o free_a to_o assent_v to_o what_o man_n will_v as_o be_v bind_v to_o assent_v to_o that_o only_a which_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o now_o may_v i_o vie_v with_o you_o in_o number_n of_o pontifician_n against_o you_o see_v durand_n in_o his_o prologue_n upon_o the_o sentence_n where_o he_o have_v more_o to_o our_o purpose_n then_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v transcribe_v read_v he_o yourself_o gerson_n also_o in_o his_o sermon_n concern_v error_n against_o faith_n and_o manner_n about_o the_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v say_v thus_o more_o free_o more_o pure_o more_o true_o more_o speedy_o be_v truth_n find_v out_o and_o error_n reprove_v if_o the_o divine_a law_n alone_o be_v constitute_v as_o judge_n according_a to_o the_o consideration_n of_o aristotle_n he_o which_o make_v the_o law_n the_o judge_n make_v god_n but_o he_o that_o add_v man_n add_v a_o beast_n panormitanus_fw-la also_o upon_o the_o 5._o of_o the_o decret_a concern_v alm_n in_o chap._n qualiter_fw-la &_o quando_fw-la the_o say_n of_o any_o saint_n establish_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o new_a or_o old_a testament_n be_v prefer_v before_o a_o papal_a constitution_n even_o in_o decision_n of_o cause_n also_o ferus_fw-la upon_o the_o 1_o epistle_n of_o saint_n john_n 2._o chapter_n in_o the_o 52.3_o page_n of_o the_o antuerpe_n edition_n thus_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v it_o be_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o word_n again_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v give_v to_o we_o as_o a_o certain_a sure_a rule_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o page_n for_o if_o have_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o a_o most_o certain_a rule_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n set_v before_o our_o eye_n we_o notwithstanding_o teach_v thing_n so_o unlike_a what_o will_v be_v do_v if_o the_o scripture_n be_v take_v away_o and_o if_o you_o say_v now_o that_o there_o be_v add_v to_o those_o place_n tradition_n in_o the_o roman_a edition_n after_o the_o trent_n council_n as_o be_v note_v you_o will_v get_v nothing_o by_o that_o but_o shame_n to_o the_o pontifician_n and_o now_o i_o think_v i_o be_o not_o much_o behind_o hand_n with_o you_o in_o testimony_n about_o the_o question_n but_o then_o afterward_o you_o press_v hard_o upon_o i_o so_o you_o say_v but_o i_o do_v not_o yet_o feel_v the_o weight_n of_o any_o thing_n you_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a and_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v but_o know_v that_o from_o hence_o nothing_o be_v come_v to_o your_o cause_n the_o catholic_n church_n make_v not_o itself_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v ground_v in_o it_o as_o before_o and_o how_o be_v the_o first_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n make_v christian_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o from_o the_o holiness_n of_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v infallibility_n by_o the_o roman_a distinction_n which_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v
follow_a instance_n to_o be_v of_o the_o necessary_n i_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n in_o both_o branch_n if_o not_o i_o deny_v your_o supposition_n take_v you_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o now_o many_o controversy_n necessary_a to_o be_v determine_v unto_o salvation_n which_o may_v not_o undoubted_o be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n and_o also_o i_o say_v there_o may_v not_o be_v yet_o many_o more_o the_o first_o branch_n i_o deny_v because_o though_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v res_fw-la questionis_fw-la be_v not_o decide_v by_o scripture_n yet_o many_o controversy_n in_o thing_n necessary_a can_v be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v undoubted_o decide_v by_o scripture_n because_o in_o thing_n necessary_a there_o be_v not_o many_o controversy_n and_o the_o second_o branch_n i_o deny_v because_o we_o can_v expect_v any_o new_a necessary_n and_o a_o new_a tradition_n be_v a_o certain_a contradiction_n now_o to_o answer_v to_o your_o particular_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o antecedent_n controversy_n may_v be_v move_v you_o say_v concern_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o work_v and_o not_o work_v of_o saturdaye_n and_o sunday_n how_o will_v this_o controversy_n be_v decide_v by_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n so_o you_o to_o which_o we_o return_v you_o this_o answer_n that_o there_o be_v enough_o in_o scripture_n to_o ground_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o observe_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n first_o by_o the_o proportion_n to_o the_o equity_n of_o keep_v one_o day_n in_o seven_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n there_o be_v in_o the_o commandment_n morale_fw-mi naturae_fw-la that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n set_v a_o part_n for_o public_a worship_n and_o this_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o heathen_n do_v see_v as_o tully_n non_fw-la ut_fw-la consilii_fw-la sic_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o be_v not_o a_o day_n appoint_v of_o counsel_n as_o of_o sacrifice_n then_o there_o be_v a_o positive_a determination_n to_o the_o jew_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n to_o be_v the_o day_n in_o the_o week_n of_o their_o solemn_a service_n and_o to_o this_o be_v agreeable_a by_o good_a analogle_v that_o christian_n shall_v keep_v one_o day_n in_o seven_o as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n now_o the_o moment_n in_o scripture_n for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o day_n be_v several_a the_o appellation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n most_o likely_a of_o the_o day_n we_o keep_v the_o meeting_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o order_n for_o the_o provision_n for_o the_o poor_a by_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o these_o we_o add_v the_o syriack_n interpretation_n which_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 11._o chapter_n and_o the_o 20._o verse_n express_v it_o thus_o when_o therefore_o you_o meet_v you_o do_v not_o as_o it_o be_v just_a on_o the_o lord_n day_n eat_v and_o drink_v which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o communion_n according_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n and_o therefore_o may_v we_o think_v that_o this_o point_n of_o practice_n be_v so_o competent_o set_v out_o in_o scripture_n as_o that_o we_o can_v suspend_v the_o usage_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n since_o we_o may_v conceive_v that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o former_a consideration_n to_o celebrate_v the_o day_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n which_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o new_a creature_n the_o seven_o day_n to_o the_o jew_n be_v positive_a and_o ceremonial_a and_o therefore_o upon_o that_o account_n under_o capacity_n of_o be_v alter_v and_o the_o equity_n of_o one_o day_n in_o the_o week_n be_v now_o under_o practice_n upon_o the_o former_a intimation_n second_o if_o the_o jewish_a day_n cease_v not_o in_o the_o obligation_n to_o christian_n than_o the_o time_n when_o christian_n shall_v keep_v be_v under_o the_o divine_a commandment_n and_o be_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o church_n have_v power_n because_o as_o you_o will_v confess_v it_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o rescinde_v a_o divine_a precept_n so_o then_o if_o by_o necessity_n of_o mean_a it_o be_v necessary_a to_o keep_v the_o lord_n day_n it_o be_v lawful_o do_v and_o upon_o duty_n if_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o mean_a then_o be_v this_o example_n of_o you_o impertinent_a and_o so_o this_o argument_n unanswerable_a as_o you_o esteem_v it_o be_v without_o much_o labour_n answer_v by_o those_o who_o make_v the_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n speak_v by_o he_o the_o sole_a infallible_a judge_n not_o exclude_v subordinate_a judge_n which_o be_v to_o regulate_v their_o decision_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n unto_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o silent_a and_o in_o other_o thing_n no_o need_n to_o be_v sure_a of_o such_o a_o judge_n as_o you_o will_v have_v and_o this_o second_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o instance_n may_v be_v available_a for_o your_o satisfaction_n in_o your_o second_o instance_n from_o the_o 15._o of_o the_o acts._n for_o if_o those_o precept_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d in_o that_o council_n do_v bind_v all_o always_o then_o be_v we_o matter_n determine_v by_o scripture_n if_o they_o do_v not_o then_o be_v we_o at_o our_o christian_a liberty_n from_o they_o without_o a_o formal_a discharge_n thereof_o from_o the_o church_n and_o second_o that_o we_o be_v not_o hold_v under_o obedience_n to_o those_o law_n appear_v by_o the_o intention_n of_o their_o imposition_n for_o that_o time_n since_o they_o be_v impose_v upon_o occasion_n of_o scandal_n to_o the_o weak_a jew_n the_o reason_n whereof_o now_o cease_v and_o therefore_o the_o law_n ubi_fw-la ratio_fw-la cessat_fw-la lex_fw-la cessat_fw-la as_o the_o rule_n be_v only_o as_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n bind_v yet_o qu●ad_fw-la genus_fw-la as_o they_o speak_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o decent_a public_a worship_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o quoad_fw-la speciem_fw-la that_o we_o shall_v continue_v the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o ceremony_n so_o even_o these_o precept_n which_o be_v in_o their_o nature_n ceremonial_a do_v yet_o bind_v so_o far_o improportion_n of_o kind_n that_o in_o thing_n of_o indifferency_n we_o shall_v have_v respect_n to_o our_o weak_a brother_n three_o neither_o can_v you_o say_v that_o either_o he_o that_o do_v abstain_v from_o those_o thing_n forbid_v or_o he_o that_o do_v not_o abstain_v be_v upon_o that_o account_n in_o danger_n of_o damnation_n and_o therefore_o as_o quoad_fw-la hoc_fw-la we_o distinguish_v of_o your_o term_n necessary_a if_o you_o take_v this_o matter_n necessary_a as_o absolute_o so_o by_o the_o morality_n of_o it_o or_o perpetual_a by_o appointment_n than_o we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a so_o and_o why_o do_v not_o you_o keep_v they_o if_o only_o necessary_a as_o to_o present_a practice_n then_o do_v it_o not_o come_v up_o to_o our_o question_n for_o it_o be_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v determinable_a by_o the_o church_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n in_o your_o ten_o number_n you_o give_v we_o another_o case_n not_o umpired_a by_o scripture_n whether_o the_o king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o you_o say_v we_o think_v once_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o scripture_n affirmative_o now_o not_o so_o you_o in_o effect_n this_o point_n be_v now_o no_o long_o ascertain_v we_o by_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o scripture_n so_o you_o in_o term_n we_o answer_v first_o what_o be_v infallible_o decide_v in_o scripture_n will_v ever_o be_v so_o although_o we_o do_v not_o always_o find_v it_o but_o we_o can_v find_v any_o thing_n infallible_o decide_v by_o the_o church_n second_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o point_n be_v infallible_o decide_v in_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o decide_v therefore_o if_o you_o mean_v we_o so_o you_o mistake_v we_o and_o now_o premise_v these_o consideration_n we_o answer_v that_o we_o do_v hold_v our_o principle_n still_o if_o you_o will_v understand_v as_o according_a to_o our_o mind_n head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n as_o upon_o his_o infallibility_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o his_o dictate_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n we_o never_o hold_v the_o king_n to_o be_v but_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a governor_n thereof_o as_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o both_o table_n so_o we_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v still_o this_o distinction_n make_v a_o end_n as_o it_o may_v seem_v of_o your_o objection_n and_o yet_o second_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v the_o king_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o you_o pretend_v
if_o one_o be_v sufficient_a why_o the_o other_o if_o both_o be_v necessary_a than_o either_o be_v not_o sufficient_a so_o then_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o most_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n when_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o than_o i_o have_v contradict_v you_o and_o you_o have_v contradict_v yourself_o for_o i_o say_v as_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o most_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n and_o two_o sufficient_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n yes_o you_o say_v but_o first_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v know_v by_o infallible_a authority_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n well_o but_o we_o both_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o infallible_a authority_n we_o do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o we_o do_v believe_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o itself_o which_o you_o say_v be_v infallible_a and_o if_o you_o believe_v it_o by_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o think_v you_o must_v go_v to_o scripture_n for_o this_o authority_n then_o be_v not_o the_o church_n a_o sufficient_a ground_n because_o it_o needs_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n and_o confirm_v its_o authority_n and_o therefore_o my_o conclude_v be_v contradictory_n since_o your_o supposition_n of_o two_o sufficient_a ground_n be_v false_a well_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v evidentlie_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n you_o say_v and_o why_o then_o do_v they_o not_o by_o their_o authority_n evidentlie_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o every_o difficulty_n if_o it_o can_v it_o be_v insufficient_a if_o it_o will_v not_o it_o be_v uncharitable_a and_o beside_o you_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o danger_n again_o for_o where_o have_v it_o this_o authority_n by_o the_o scripture_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o sufficient_a ground_n again_o and_o this_o not_o and_o when_o the_o church_n in_o a_o council_n do_v decide_v a_o controversy_n best_o it_o do_v so_o by_o principle_n of_o scripture_n apply_v they_o to_o particular_a case_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n have_v themselves_o to_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o conclusion_n and_o the_o scripture_n have_v itself_o to_o those_o conclusion_n as_o the_o principle_n and_o therefore_o proper_o the_o principle_n be_v believe_v and_o the_o conclusion_n be_v credible_a not_o by_o themselves_o but_o by_o participation_n from_o the_o principle_n so_o that_o as_o the_o prime_a principle_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o science_n so_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o scripture_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o faith_n and_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o theologie_n must_v be_v this_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o subordinate_a it_o be_v opposite_a to_o scripture_n as_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o so_o stand_v by_o itself_o and_o must_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o if_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o umpire_n all_o doubt_n than_o you_o say_v as_o we_o say_v and_o why_o then_o a_o infallible_a judge_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n why_o do_v you_o contend_v because_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o as_o you_o believe_v it_o but_o if_o you_o intend_v your_o treatise_n in_o charity_n you_o may_v have_v spare_v your_o labour_n for_o we_o be_v in_o a_o sure_a condition_n than_o you_o can_v be_v upon_o your_o principle_n you_o believe_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o believe_v it_o by_o that_o by_o which_o the_o church_n have_v its_o authority_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o only_o the_o first_o ground_n in_o regard_n of_o order_n but_o also_o of_o causalitie_n because_o the_o church_n have_v no_o ground_n but_o by_o scripture_n therefore_o we_o like_v your_o intention_n better_o than_o your_o judgement_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v the_o moment_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n towards_o faith_n so_o that_o we_o have_v all_o the_o authority_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o our_o belief_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n and_o in_o we_o a_o possibility_n of_o error_n by_o apprehension_n that_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n yet_o our_o error_n will_v not_o be_v so_o dangerous_a because_o we_o shall_v err_v in_o honour_n of_o scripture_n as_o you_o be_v or_o will_v be_v who_o err_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n also_o must_v i_o observe_v your_o ingenuity_n again_o here_o that_o you_o do_v profess_v it_o as_o most_o true_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o most_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n when_o we_o know_v by_o infallible_a authority_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o and_o such_o be_v the_o sense_n thereof_o if_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o truth_n and_o sufficiency_n then_o be_v we_o more_o secure_a if_o degree_n of_o truth_n and_o sufficiency_n to_o we_o then_o be_v we_o yet_o more_o right_a and_o also_o this_o do_v deduct_v from_o your_o universality_n of_o faith_n in_o your_o first_o paper_n by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n for_o my_o second_o three_o and_o four_o and_o five_o answer_n the_o paragraph_n of_o your_o discourse_n or_o treatise_n have_v in_o they_o nothing_o which_o have_v any_o potential_a contrariety_n to_o they_o which_o i_o have_v not_o full_o as_o i_o think_v take_v away_o in_o your_o application_n you_o make_v to_o or_o against_o my_o six_o answer_n you_o seem_v to_o take_v another_o argument_n to_o persuade_v i_o that_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n may_v both_o be_v ground_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o interrogation_n can_v i_o not_o say_v you_o ground_n my_o faith_n upon_o what_o saint_n peter_n say_v because_o i_o can_v ground_v it_o upon_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v we_o answer_v your_o question_n be_v out_o of_o question_n but_o your_o consequence_n from_o thence_o be_v unsolid_a and_o unjudicious_a because_o they_o be_v both_o inspire_v in_o their_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v yet_o again_o in_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_o inspire_v and_o we_o can_v be_v infallible_o assure_v thereof_o the_o reason_n be_v not_o the_o same_o your_o reason_n sink_v yet_o you_o insist_v further_o why_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n because_o it_o deliver_v to_o i_o god_n write_v word_n but_o the_o church_n deliver_v to_o i_o god_n word_n write_v and_o unwritten_a i_o may_v therefore_o rule_v myself_o by_o that_o so_o you_o i_o answer_v this_o argument_n have_v no_o strength_n to_o weaken_v that_o which_o i_o lay_v down_o before_o that_o there_o be_v not_o two_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o ministerial_a rule_n and_o subordinate_a to_o scripture_n and_o so_o subordinate_o a_o rule_n as_o to_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v write_v and_o therefore_o can_v it_o not_o ground_n or_o order_v my_o faith_n by_o its_o own_o virtue_n but_o only_o by_o proportion_n to_o scripture_n and_o so_o be_v not_o a_o rule_n equal_a to_o scripture_n intensive_o and_o if_o you_o conceive_v your_o argument_n shall_v have_v any_o force_n because_o the_o church_n do_v exceed_v the_o scripture_n extensive_o in_o that_o it_o deliver_v the_o word_n write_v and_o unwritten_a sure_o you_o be_v much_o mistake_v by_o your_o supposition_n that_o there_o be_v a_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n equal_o credible_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v not_o suppose_v your_o reason_n rather_o have_v force_n against_o yourself_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o rule_n infallible_a because_o it_o deliver_v to_o we_o a_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v for_o herein_o it_o main_o err_v the_o scripture_n be_v not_o only_o a_o necessary_a rule_n but_o also_o sufficient_a most_o sufficient_a and_o therefore_o they_o bring_v in_o tradition_n by_o way_n of_o supplement_n you_o say_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n in_o that_o you_o say_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o faith_n therefore_o must_v you_o expunge_v tradition_n this_o rule_n of_o scripture_n you_o say_v be_v often_o so_o crooked_o apply_v that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o better_a security_n of_o interpretation_n than_o our_o own_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n so_o you_o first_o this_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o infringe_v its_o prerogative_n second_o by_o this_o argument_n if_o you_o drive_v it_o to_o
crimen_fw-la falsi_fw-la for_o i_o do_v not_o see_v upon_o the_o place_n any_o half_a syllable_n out_o of_o which_o you_o may_v draw_v any_o such_o interpretative_a confession_n i_o have_v often_o upon_o your_o occasion_n say_v the_o contrary_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o whether_o you_o have_v any_o faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o scripture_n in_o all_o your_o church_n be_v more_o easy_a to_o be_v find_v then_o say_v and_o assure_o though_o we_o talk_v of_o faith_n in_o the_o world_n the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v but_o opinion_n which_o take_v religion_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o we_o we_o have_v also_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n to_o move_v our_o judgement_n and_o scripture_n to_o settle_v our_o faith_n and_o we_o be_v more_o relate_v to_o the_o four_o general_a council_n in_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n as_o he_o say_v than_o your_o church_n now_o and_o now_o at_o the_o end_n of_o all_o you_o do_v fair_o rebate_v the_o edge_n of_o your_o censure_n of_o my_o expression_n namely_o excess_n of_o faith_n but_o you_o say_v my_o distinction_n do_v no_o way_n salve_v the_o improprietie_n of_o my_o speech_n for_o there_o be_v still_o a_o difference_n in_o more_o believe_a object_n and_o believe_v more_o object_n but_o grant_v that_o it_o may_v be_v improper_o speak_v yet_o even_o in_o that_o sense_n it_o be_v not_o true_o say_v because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o excess_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v that_o which_o god_n have_v say_v so_o then_o by_o my_o distinction_n which_o be_v your_o school_n of_o fides_n subjectiva_n &_o fides_fw-la objectiva_fw-la fides_fw-la qua_fw-la &_o fides_fw-la quae_fw-la there_o may_v be_v a_o excess_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o object_n if_o we_o believe_v more_o than_o god_n have_v say_v suppose_v we_o can_v believe_v what_o god_n have_v not_o say_v although_o there_o be_v not_o a_o excess_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o subject_a for_o we_o can_v have_v too_o much_o faith_n in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o the_o quarrel_n against_o the_o speech_n be_v not_o becacause_v it_o be_v not_o proper_a enough_o and_o congruous_a in_o this_o discourse_n but_o because_o of_o the_o application_n of_o it_o to_o you_o as_o it_o now_o appear_v and_o therefore_o here_o will_v you_o vindicate_v the_o church_n in_o this_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n of_o infallibility_n and_o therefore_o for_o your_o faith_n in_o whatsoever_o you_o believe_v you_o have_v this_o warrant_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n but_o since_o this_o infallibility_n of_o you_o you_o can_v have_v without_o beg_v of_o the_o question_n even_o to_o the_o last_o nor_o shall_v have_v it_o sure_o by_o beg_v you_o be_v yet_o to_o find_v out_o some_o expedience_n of_o mean_n or_o argument_n how_o to_o preserve_v yourselves_o from_o that_o just_a charge_n of_o excess_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o that_o kind_n be_v that_o you_o speak_v of_o your_o infallibility_n for_o which_o you_o have_v not_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n how_o then_o do_v you_o prove_v it_o by_o tradition_n and_o how_o do_v you_o prove_v tradition_n by_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o go_v not_o to_o faith_n about_o by_o a_o circumference_n if_o you_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o rest_v your_o judgement_n and_o your_o soul_n in_o certain_a infallibility_n by_o your_o own_o word_n then_o centre_n in_o scripture_n from_o which_o all_o line_n of_o truth_n be_v draw_v and_o dismiss_v tradition_n as_o your_o man_n state_n it_o for_o which_o this_o infallibility_n be_v devise_v and_o yet_o can_v be_v maintain_v for_o it_o can_v maintain_v itself_o you_o close_o with_o a_o passage_n of_o saint_n austin_n if_o so_o the_o word_n you_o intend_v it_o to_o set_v out_o your_o charity_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o persuade_v my_o faith_n in_o its_o infallibility_n i_o may_v love_v the_o church_n without_o infallibility_n because_o though_o i_o do_v not_o love_v error_n yet_o must_v i_o love_v the_o church_n when_o it_o be_v in_o error_n and_o this_o give_v you_o occasion_n to_o think_v well_o of_o this_o respective_a and_o full_a answer_n to_o your_o last_o paper_n excuse_v i_o that_o it_o be_v so_o long_o ere_o it_o come_v and_o yet_o not_o much_o above_o the_o space_n of_o you_o and_o also_o so_o long_o now_o it_o be_v come_v only_o let_v i_o leave_v you_o with_o a_o father_n or_o two_o in_o who_o company_n you_o be_v delight_v tertullian_n in_o his_o prescript_n cap._n 8._o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o curiosity_n after_o christ_n nor_o further_a inquisition_n after_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o believe_v we_o desire_v to_o believe_v nothing_o beyond_o for_o this_o we_o first_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n beyond_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v again_o against_o hermog_n cap._n 22._o i_o adore_v the_o plenitude_n of_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o scriptum_n esse_fw-la doceat_fw-la hermogenis_n officina_fw-la if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v that_o woe_n appoint_v for_o those_o who_o add_v or_o take_v away_o and_o saint_n austin_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n de_fw-fr doc._n christiana_n cap._n 9_o in_o iis_fw-la enim_fw-la quae_fw-la aperte_fw-la in_o scriptura_fw-la posita_fw-la sunt_fw-la among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n be_v find_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o contain_v faith_n and_o manner_n of_o live_v to_o wit_n hope_n and_o charity_n for_o the_o excellent_a modification_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n magnifice_fw-la igitur_fw-la &_o salubriter_fw-la sp._n sanctus_n ita_fw-la scripturas_fw-la sanitas_fw-la modificavit_fw-la ut_fw-la locis_fw-la apertioribus_fw-la fami_fw-la occurreret_fw-la obscurioribus_fw-la autem_fw-la fastidia_fw-la detergeret_fw-la nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la fere_n de_fw-la illis_fw-la obscuritatibus_fw-la eruitur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la planissime_fw-la dictum_fw-la alibi_fw-la reperiatur_fw-la and_o the_o same_o in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n for_o the_o second_o degree_n or_o step_n to_o wisdom_n he_o say_v deinde_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la mitescere_fw-la pielate_fw-la neque_fw-la contradicere_fw-la divinae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la sive_fw-la intellectae_fw-la si_fw-la aliqua_fw-la vitia_fw-la nostra_fw-la percutit_fw-la sive_fw-la non_fw-la intellectae_fw-la quasi_fw-la nos_fw-la melius_fw-la sapere_fw-la meliusque_fw-la percipere_fw-la possimus_fw-la sed_fw-la cogitare_fw-la potius_fw-la &_o credere_fw-la id_fw-la esse_fw-la melius_fw-la &_o verius_fw-la quod_fw-la ibi_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la lateat_fw-la quam_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la per_fw-la nos_fw-la metipsos_a sapere_fw-la possumus_fw-la and_o again_o saint_n austin_n contra_fw-la literas_fw-la petit._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o proinde_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la quacunque_fw-la alia_fw-la re_fw-la quae_fw-la pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la vitamque_fw-la nostram_fw-la non_fw-la dicam_fw-la nos_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la comparandi_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la dixit_fw-la licet_fw-la si_fw-la nos_fw-la sed_fw-la omnino_fw-la quod_fw-la secutus_fw-la adjecit_fw-la si_fw-mi angelus_n de_fw-la coelo_fw-la vobis_fw-la annuntiaverit_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o scripture_n legalibus_fw-la &_o evangelicis_fw-la accepistis_fw-la anathema_n sit_v consider_v what_o be_v say_v and_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o understanding_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o reader_n how_o in_o these_o time_n in_o which_o there_o be_v so_o many_o religion_n the_o true_a religion_n may_v certain_o be_v find_v out_o 1._o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o this_o title_n will_v alone_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o endless_a controversy_n of_o these_o day_n this_o make_v i_o think_v my_o labour_n well_o bestow_v in_o treat_v this_o point_n somewhat_o large_o and_o because_o that_o treatise_n have_v receive_v a_o very_a large_a answer_n the_o examine_n of_o this_o answer_n will_v make_v the_o truth_n yet_o more_o apparent_a that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v more_o clear_o i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o order_n i_o intend_v to_o observe_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o say_a answer_n and_o because_o this_o answer_n direct_o follow_v the_o same_o order_n which_o i_o observe_v in_o treat_v the_o question_n prefix_v in_o my_o title_n therefore_o when_o i_o have_v show_v you_o the_o order_n of_o that_o treatise_n you_o will_v clear_o see_v that_o i_o shall_v most_o orderly_o answer_v the_o reply_n against_o it_o 2._o that_o treatise_n have_v a_o short_a preface_n to_o tell_v the_o intent_n of_o it_o my_o first_o chapter_n must_v then_o be_v the_o examination_n of_o what_o be_v say_v against_o this_o preface_n again_o that_o treatise_n do_v show_v five_o thing_n first_o it_o do_v show_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o who_o all_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v second_o that_o scripture_n alone_o do_v not_o suffice_v to_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n without_o a_o live_a judge_n to_o
the_o 17._o numb_a three_o that_o this_o judge_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o true_a church_n to_o the_o 21._o numb_a four_o that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o judge_a point_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o 17._o numb_a five_o that_o this_o true_a church_n which_o be_v our_o infallible_a judge_n be_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o 29_o and_o last_o numb_a last_o follow_v the_o conclusion_n my_o answer_n therefore_o must_v have_v five_o more_o chapter_n to_o show_v the_o reply_n make_v against_o that_o treatise_n to_o be_v unsatisfactory_a in_o every_o particular_a argument_n oppose_v against_o i_o in_o all_o these_o five_o point_n 3._o there_o may_v have_v be_v add_v another_o chapter_n to_o examine_v what_o my_o adversary_n say_v concern_v the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o treatise_n but_o as_o he_o himself_o page_n 112._o observe_v very_o well_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v his_o reply_n against_o my_o conclusion_n because_o it_o contain_v no_o new_a thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o main_a controversy_n but_o it_o be_v make_v only_o to_o show_v that_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o main_a controversy_n i_o have_v answer_v all_o his_o paper_n which_o i_o do_v there_o run_v over_o in_o order_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o all_o i_o have_v say_v about_o the_o main_a controversy_n he_o have_v give_v up_o his_o answer_n to_o all_o that_o which_o be_v only_o run_v over_o again_o in_o the_o conclusion_n neither_o know_v i_o any_o reason_n that_o i_o give_v he_o to_o fancy_n as_o he_o say_v he_o do_v that_o i_o shall_v either_o think_v a_o good_a cause_n want_v to_o he_o or_o he_o want_v to_o a_o good_a cause_n unless_o he_o have_v answer_v my_o conclusion_n apart_o though_o something_o be_v in_o it_o not_o say_v before_o by_o i_o and_o some_o few_o thing_n in_o which_o i_o charge_v he_o but_o sir_n that_o which_o i_o stand_v upon_o be_v the_o main_a question_n and_o the_o proof_n or_o disproof_n of_o it_o nor_o will_v i_o judge_v so_o hardly_o of_o you_o as_o to_o think_v you_o will_v conceive_v either_o my_o cause_n worse_o or_o i_o a_o worse_a defender_n of_o it_o because_o i_o tire_v not_o myself_o and_o my_o reader_n with_o our_o personal_a debate_n when_o they_o concern_v not_o the_o main_a question_n in_o which_o both_o of_o we_o have_v be_v so_o large_a and_o so_o as_o you_o think_v you_o may_v have_v end_v when_o you_o come_v to_o that_o conclusion_n so_o i_o think_v i_o may_v well_o end_v when_o i_o have_v answer_v those_o hundred_o page_n and_o more_o which_o i_o meet_v with_o before_o i_o come_v thither_o though_o there_o still_o remain_v something_o which_o concern_v our_o private_a debate_n for_o if_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v before_o do_v not_o satisfy_v no_o great_a satisfaction_n will_v be_v add_v by_o go_v on_o a_o little_a further_o in_o the_o same_o strain_n in_o matter_n less_o to_o the_o matter_n the_o first_o chapter_n the_o answer_n to_o my_o preface_n confute_v 1._o your_o first_o word_n intimate_v that_o you_o fear_v least_o your_o silence_n shall_v make_v i_o seem_v to_o myself_o or_o other_o to_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n sir_n your_o reply_n be_v most_o welcome_a in_o this_o respect_n that_o it_o do_v more_o help_v i_o then_o your_o silence_n can_v not_o to_o seem_v to_o have_v get_v but_o real_o to_o get_v that_o victory_n which_o i_o desire_v not_o to_o myself_o but_o to_o truth_n for_o the_o examination_n of_o your_o reply_n will_v serve_v for_o a_o touchstone_n to_o my_o argument_n i_o will_v follow_v you_o as_o you_o desire_v step_n after_o step_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2._o to_o show_v the_o necessity_n of_o treat_v the_o matter_n i_o have_v undertake_v i_o say_v that_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n as_o be_v permit_v by_o you_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n with_o so_o unlimited_a a_o licence_n to_o interpret_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o private_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o a_o thing_n most_o apt_a to_o cause_v a_o numberless_a number_n of_o sect_n and_o heresy_n a_o priori_fw-la this_o be_v prove_v thus_o you_o permit_v any_o artificer_n who_o can_v read_v to_o take_v the_o bible_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o to_o take_v it_o for_o his_o sole_n and_o only_a judge_n of_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n and_o though_o all_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n consist_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o sincere_a interpretation_n of_o it_o yet_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o you_o leave_v this_o interpretation_n to_o be_v make_v by_o every_o reader_n though_o never_o so_o unskilful_a with_o so_o great_a latitude_n that_o though_o a_o general_n council_n of_o the_o great_a doctor_n which_o can_v be_v gather_v together_o shall_v have_v define_v such_o and_o such_o a_o point_n for_o undoubted_a true_a doctrine_n and_o to_o be_v hold_v so_o according_a to_o scripture_n yet_o you_o permit_v any_o cobbler_n to_o make_v a_o review_n of_o this_o decree_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o on_o the_o other_o judge_v at_o last_o that_o the_o whole_a council_n have_v err_v in_o interpret_n scripture_n you_o leave_v he_o free_a to_o hold_v himself_o so_o strong_o to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n neither_o will_v you_o hear_v of_o any_o obligation_n which_o he_o have_v interior_o to_o submit_v his_o judgement_n which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o true_a faith_n or_o error_n to_o any_o other_o judge_n upon_o earth_n for_o sure_o if_o he_o be_v leave_v by_o your_o principle_n so_o free_a in_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n as_o not_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v interior_o to_o a_o whole_a general_n council_n he_o have_v far_o great_a freedom_n in_o not_o be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o any_o other_o private_a doctor_n be_v not_o this_o to_o leave_v man_n in_o a_o mighty_a hazard_n of_o misunderstanding_n god_n word_n and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n second_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v a_o posteriori_fw-la in_o those_o place_n where_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v thus_o prostitute_v not_o only_o to_o the_o bare_a read_n but_o also_o to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o every_o profane_a and_o ignorant_a fellow_n i_o still_o mean_v when_o he_o shall_v have_v hear_v or_o see_v what_o can_v be_v allege_v on_o all_o side_n there_o and_o only_o there_o sect_n have_v multiply_v and_o do_v multiply_v beyond_o measure_n 3._o neither_o do_v any_o of_o your_o argument_n prove_v this_o not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o heresy_n and_o bad_a life_n which_o follow_v heresy_n first_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o text_n you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o it_o for_o a_o most_o fit_a way_n to_o err_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o permit_v such_o and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o such_o man_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o be_v most_o fit_a to_o err_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o especial_o be_v license_v to_o cross_v all_o antiquity_n and_o all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n if_o these_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n and_o i_o wonder_v why_o you_o call_v this_o your_o manner_n of_o proceed_v the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n if_o the_o work_n of_o these_o famous_a physician_n galen_n and_o hipocrates_n be_v thrust_v into_o all_o tradesman_n hand_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v license_v to_o interpret_v as_o they_o sincere_o think_v best_o will_v you_o call_v this_o the_o knowledge_n of_o physic_n especial_o if_o every_o one_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o hold_v his_o interpretation_n against_o a_o general_n assembly_n of_o most_o learned_a physician_n second_o you_o in_o vain_a object_n that_o of_o saint_n paul_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n far_o be_v it_o from_o the_o intention_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o every_o giddy_a fancy_n for_o thus_o they_o may_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o our_o damnation_n saint_n paul_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a to_o salvation_n because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n who_o do_v continue_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o learned_a and_o have_v be_v assure_v of_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o oral_a tradition_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n a_o man_n know_v of_o who_o he_o have_v learn_v these_o thing_n and_o these_o tradition_n let_v such_o man_n read_v scripture_n and_o let_v they_o with_o such_o interpretation_n understand_v they_o and_o they_o will_v make_v they_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o to_o continue_v still_o assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o never_o to_o
do_v rely_v only_o upon_o tradition_n for_o if_o they_o have_v rely_v upon_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o their_o belief_n their_o example_n have_v be_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n to_o show_v what_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v when_o we_o have_v only_o tradition_n to_o rely_v upon_o 14._o as_o for_o argue_v about_o tradition_n i_o go_v no_o further_o than_o to_o show_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n testify_v she_o own_o infallibility_n in_o propose_v for_o god_n word_n that_o which_o she_o deliver_v we_o for_o god_n word_n as_o worthy_a of_o a_o infallible_a assent_n in_o this_o point_n and_o the_o example_n i_o bring_v prove_v this_o now_o if_o this_o point_n be_v once_o assent_v unto_o with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n it_o draw_v by_o inevitable_a consequence_n the_o like_a assent_n to_o all_o other_o point_n which_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n be_v testify_v to_o be_v likewise_o deliver_v as_o god_n word_n or_o else_o you_o must_v be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o assent_v to_o this_o authority_n as_o divine_v in_o all_o thing_n it_o deliver_v as_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o to_o deny_v it_o in_o some_o thing_n which_o it_o deliver_v as_o god_n word_n which_o be_v a_o plain_a contradiction_n well_o then_o if_o upon_o this_o presuppose_a authority_n as_o infallible_a i_o believe_v the_o church_n deliver_v such_o and_o such_o point_n by_o her_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n which_o be_v point_n never_o write_v then_o it_o be_v manifest_a i_o believe_v she_o in_o other_o point_n then_o those_o which_o be_v then_o write_v &_o so_o i_o may_v with_o as_o good_a reason_n believe_v she_o now_o upon_o her_o own_o authority_n testify_v other_o point_n then_o those_o which_o be_v write_v whence_o you_o see_v all_o i_o say_v hold_v good_a even_o in_o tradition_n of_o proper_a name_n which_o we_o say_v be_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v write_v i_o can_v conclude_v more_o opposite_a to_o you_o then_o with_o your_o own_o word_n here_o p._n 73._o tradition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n unwritten_a be_v of_o equal_a authority_n to_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n we_o stand_v upon_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n true_o once_o reveal_v by_o our_o saviour_n or_o his_o apostle_n though_o this_o revelation_n be_v not_o write_v by_o they_o therefore_o this_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n to_o scripture_n even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o word_n 15_o i_o go_v on_o to_o prove_v yet_o further_o that_o christ_n intend_v to_o guide_v we_o not_o by_o the_o scripture_n only_o but_o chief_o by_o his_o church_n use_v this_o argument_n neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o their_o successor_n take_v any_o care_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n communicate_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o such_o language_n as_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o can_v understand_v you_o answer_v they_o do_v take_v care_n that_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v write_v in_o greek_a then_o you_o be_v still_o to_o prove_v that_o greek_a be_v understand_v by_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n your_o only_a proof_n of_o this_o be_v only_o out_o of_o tully_n say_v graeca_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la leguntur_fw-la greek_n be_v read_v though_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o be_v virgil_n in_o latin_a but_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sense_n make_v to_o our_o purpose_n for_o both_o these_o say_n be_v only_o true_a thus_o that_o the_o more_o learned_a sort_n of_o man_n every_o where_o read_v greek_a and_o virgil._n and_o these_o word_n of_o tully_n be_v deliver_v in_o on_o encomiasticall_a oration_n pro_fw-la archia_fw-la may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v speak_v by_o way_n of_o a_o notable_a amplification_n and_o either_o this_o must_v be_v confess_v or_o scripture_n deny_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o scripture_n that_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o diverse_a nation_n situate_v even_o between_o that_o place_n we_o call_v constantinople_n and_o the_o city_n of_o antioch_n in_o which_o a_o man_n will_v suppose_v the_o greek_a language_n far_o more_o common_a then_o in_o the_o more_o western_a or_o any_o northern_a or_o southern_a place_n yet_o i_o say_v even_o between_o those_o two_o city_n of_o antioch_n where_o the_o same_o tully_n say_v archias_n be_v bear_v and_o study_v and_o constantinople_n the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o pontus_n cappadocia_n asia_n minor_fw-la phrygia_n pamphilia_n all_o which_o nation_n the_o scripture_n act._n 2._o testify_v to_o have_v have_v different_a language_n within_o that_o compass_n be_v also_o galatia_n which_o saint_n hierome_n testify_v to_o have_v have_v a_o language_n somewhat_o like_o those_o of_o trever_n if_o nation_n so_o near_o greece_n have_v not_o the_o vulgar_a use_n of_o that_o language_n but_o that_o tongue_n have_v so_o small_a a_o compass_n even_o in_o asia_n and_o some_o few_o eastern_a part_n of_o europe_n all_o other_o part_n of_o europe_n and_o whole_a africa_n use_v vulgar_o other_o tongue_n how_o short_a do_v you_o fall_v of_o prove_v that_o greek_a be_v understand_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v than_o i_o say_v true_o that_o though_o the_o apostle_n write_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o greek_a yet_o they_o do_v not_o take_v any_o care_n to_o have_v it_o communicate_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o such_o language_n as_o they_o can_v all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n understand_v for_o all_o or_o the_o great_a part_n can_v not_o understand_v greek_a call_v here_o to_o mind_n how_o loud_o you_o use_v to_o cry_v out_o against_o we_o for_o use_v our_o common_a prayer_n in_o latin_a though_o latin_a be_v so_o common_a among_o all_o well_o breed_v people_n and_o yet_o our_o common_a prayer_n be_v a_o thing_n only_o offer_v to_o god_n by_o the_o priest_n who_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v for_o the_o people_n but_o the_o new_a testament_n contain_v as_o you_o say_v the_o only_a necessary_a ground_n of_o faith_n faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o the_o falsity_n of_o this_o your_o say_n be_v convince_v by_o the_o apostle_n take_v no_o care_n neither_o read_v we_o of_o any_o care_n take_v for_o many_o year_n after_o their_o time_n to_o communicate_v the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o several_a convert_v nation_n in_o their_o several_a tongue_n i_o pray_v name_n i_o the_o time_n when_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v first_o show_v to_o have_v be_v thus_o communicate_v to_o the_o people_n of_o so_o several_a language_n you_o will_v sweat_v for_o some_o hundred_o year_n before_o you_o can_v find_v this_o either_o do_v or_o effectual_o desire_v to_o be_v do_v they_o know_v the_o tongue_n can_v sufficient_o deliver_v god_n word_n to_o the_o people_n and_o that_o oral_a tradition_n join_v to_o daily_a profession_n practice_n will_v abundant_o suffice_v for_o the_o infallible_a delivery_n of_o god_n word_n 16._o you_o move_v the_o question_n how_o the_o people_n shall_v clear_o know_v the_o true_a tradition_n from_o the_o false_a i_o answer_v first_o they_o can_v know_v this_o better_a than_o know_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a for_o they_o can_v not_o do_v that_o but_o by_o know_v first_o the_o true_a tradition_n recommend_v the_o true_a scripture_n from_o the_o tradition_n recommend_v false_a again_o after_o christ_n they_o can_v do_v this_o as_o well_o and_o better_a than_o their_o forefather_n for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n yea_o for_o two_o thousand_o yea_o for_o twice_o two_o thousand_o year_n together_o reflect_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o efficacy_n of_o tradition_n join_v with_o perpetual_a profession_n and_o answerable_a practice_n daily_o occur_v for_o example_n the_o apostle_n by_o only_a unwriting_n tradition_n do_v clear_o undeniable_o teach_v the_o baptise_v of_o child_n prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a depart_v this_o tradition_n from_o hence_o come_v to_o be_v profess_v as_o true_a doctrine_n by_o all_o the_o first_o christian_n and_o conformable_o hereunto_o they_o in_o all_o place_n baptize_v their_o child_n in_o all_o place_n they_o pray_v for_o the_o faithful_a depart_v nothing_o more_o common_a than_o be_v bear_v every_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v die_v whence_o daily_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o baptise_v infant_n and_o yet_o more_o daily_o the_o practice_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a because_o they_o baptize_v infant_n but_o once_o but_o they_o pray_v often_o for_o the_o same_o man_n who_o be_v dead_a will_v we_o suppose_v these_o two_o tradition_n be_v call_v in_o question_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o let_v we_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o last_o age_n learned_a man_n look_v in_o record_n of_o their_o own_o and_o all_o other_o country_n will_v find_v every_o where_o christen_n and_o every_o where_o prayer_n
may_v gain_v more_o credit_n to_o their_o error_n by_o holiness_n of_o life_n as_o socinus_n and_o other_o you_o come_v then_o to_o refute_v my_o argument_n first_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v contrary_a from_o that_o text_n you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o it_o for_o a_o most_o fit_a way_n to_o err_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o permit_v such_o and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o such_o man_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o be_v most_o fit_a to_o err_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o be_v this_o a_o good_a refutation_n and_o therefore_o the_o meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n must_v be_v according_a to_o your_o use_n they_o err_v because_o they_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o misinterpret_v shift_v you_o how_o you_o will_v you_o can_v evade_v be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o error_n no_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o our_o saviour_n who_o say_v you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n be_v it_o necessary_a that_o those_o who_o do_v know_v the_o scripture_n shall_v misinterpret_v they_o no_o for_o then_o that_o will_n by_o a_o recideration_n come_v into_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n for_o then_o the_o knowledge_n will_v be_v a_o certain_a mean_v at_o least_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n of_o this_o misinterpretation_n and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v our_o best_a way_n to_o know_v nothing_o of_o scripture_n that_o so_o we_o may_v not_o err_v 3._o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n discourse_v as_o you_o do_v that_o because_o by_o our_o fault_n the_o scripture_n be_v a_o occasion_n of_o misinterpretation_n therefore_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o common_o use_v they_o be_v this_o symbolical_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n 4._o our_o saviour_n then_o by_o you_o rebuke_n their_o misinterpretation_n then_o he_o will_v have_v they_o know_v the_o scripture_n better_o not_o have_v the_o people_n deprive_v of_o they_o 5._o there_o be_v a_o double_a knowledge_n as_o to_o this_o purpose_n 1._o a_o habitual_a knowledge_n which_o be_v chief_o of_o the_o principle_n in_o scripture_n this_o they_o have_v in_o their_o mind_n then_o there_o be_v a_o actual_a knowledge_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o application_n of_o those_o principle_n to_o particular_a conclusion_n of_o belief_n and_o practice_n they_o be_v want_v it_o seem_v in_o the_o late_a in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v consider_v that_o text_n in_o moses_n which_o our_o saviour_n make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o resurrection_n they_o may_v have_v infer_v the_o resurrection_n from_o that_o text_n and_o so_o not_o have_v err_v therefore_o have_v they_o more_o need_v to_o look_v over_o the_o scripture_n again_o and_o consider_v they_o better_o the_o say_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v good_a he_o that_o read_v a_o book_n a_o hundred_o time_n be_v not_o like_o he_o that_o read_v it_o a_o hundred_o time_n and_o one_o the_o often_o we_o read_v it_o especial_o the_o bible_n the_o more_o we_o see_v in_o it_o but_o you_o bring_v a_o corroboration_n of_o your_o answer_n special_o be_v license_v to_o cross_v all_o antiquity_n and_o all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n sir_n this_o will_v not_o do_v 1._o we_o licence_v they_o not_o to_o cross_v all_o antiquity_n &_o we_o need_v not_o give_v they_o such_o a_o direction_n and_o sure_o if_o they_o shall_v you_o will_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o blame_v they_o we_o have_v liberty_n to_o use_v that_o of_o the_o philosopher_n in_o his_o rhet._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v you_o look_v to_o that_o who_o contradict_v god_n and_o father_n and_o doctor_n 2._o they_o can_v intend_v sure_o the_o cross_n of_o all_o antiquity_n for_o certain_o they_o do_v not_o know_v all_o antiquity_n yea_o if_o you_o speak_v all_o antiquity_n with_o a_o full_a universality_n there_o be_v few_o of_o your_o own_o learned_a man_n that_o know_v it_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o of_o their_o interpretation_n do_v cross_v antiquity_n it_o do_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v but_o by_o accident_n and_o in_o thing_n necessary_a they_o be_v not_o so_o like_a to_o do_v so_o 3._o who_o be_v there_o of_o all_o your_o man_n that_o have_v prove_v this_o proposition_n that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n suppose_v make_v a_o argument_n of_o divine_a faith_n therefore_o though_o we_o love_v their_o company_n yet_o we_o desire_v to_o see_v our_o way_n but_o object_n to_o we_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a how_o shall_v your_o man_n know_v that_o what_o they_o hold_v do_v not_o cross_v all_o antiquity_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n give_v they_o neither_o faith_n of_o it_o nor_o knowledge_n yea_o some_o of_o you_o say_v omnes_fw-la patres_fw-la sic_fw-la ego_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la sic_fw-la you_o go_v on_o and_o i_o wonder_v why_o you_o call_v this_o your_o manner_n of_o proceed_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n unto_o second_o ans_fw-fr you_o make_v yourself_o sport_n with_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n knowledge_n you_o mean_v it_o by_o way_n of_o a_o science_n as_o physic_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o tradesman_n make_v any_o knowledge_n of_o divinity_n so_o as_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o body_n of_o it_o no_o but_o they_o may_v have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n sufficient_a for_o their_o use_n although_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v other_o as_o if_o there_o be_v plain_a principle_n of_o physic_n in_o our_o language_n we_o may_v make_v use_v they_o for_o ourselves_o as_o tiberius_n say_v after_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n he_o will_v laugh_v at_o those_o who_o do_v need_v a_o physician_n you_o be_v deceive_v then_o or_o will_v deceive_v in_o the_o fallacy_n of_o consequent_a though_o all_o science_n be_v knowledge_n all_o knowledge_n be_v not_o science_n for_o knowledge_n be_v more_o general_a and_o therefore_o sure_o of_o itself_o do_v not_o infer_v the_o most_o perfect_a species_n you_o say_v second_o you_o in_o vain_a object_n that_o of_o st._n paul_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n unto_o three_o wherein_o you_o allow_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o text_n with_o your_o gloss_n namely_o not_o as_o they_o be_v interpret_v by_o every_o giddy_a fancy_n but_o by_o tim._n who_o do_v continue_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o learned_a and_o have_v be_v assure_v of_o by_o oral_a tradition_n ans_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o will_v you_o get_v by_o this_o answer_n if_o you_o understand_v by_o oral_a tradition_n such_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v first_o preach_v afterward_o write_v we_o grant_v you_o the_o use_n of_o such_o oral_a tradition_n but_o this_o boot_v you_o not_o for_o you_o must_v have_v tradition_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n beside_o what_o be_v write_v and_o such_o we_o deny_v unto_o you_o that_o timothy_n have_v and_o i_o prove_v my_o denial_n by_o your_o own_o word_n for_o how_o can_v timothy_n understand_v scripture_n by_o what_o be_v beside_o scripture_n you_o speak_v of_o his_o understanding_n the_o scripture_n by_o tradition_n tradition_n of_o proper_a name_n be_v that_o which_o be_v beside_o scripture_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o and_o how_o can_v he_o by_o that_o which_o be_v different_a in_o matter_n understand_v the_o scripture_n if_o you_o mean_v by_o oral_a tradition_n some_o traditive_a interpretation_n as_o learned_a man_n call_v they_o of_o the_o more_o difficult_a passage_n of_o scripture_n this_o indeed_o be_v more_o reasonable_a in_o the_o hypothesis_n as_o to_o timothy_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o unless_o you_o can_v tell_v we_o certain_o how_o many_o and_o what_o they_o be_v if_o there_o be_v such_o and_o lose_v than_o your_o church_n be_v lose_v 2._o again_o we_o allow_v no_o giddy_a fancy_n to_o define_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o in_o thing_n necessary_a and_o plain_a their_o own_o knowledge_n may_v be_v sufficient_a and_o their_o private_a judgement_n may_v be_v as_o safe_o exercise_v in_o the_o sense_n thereof_o as_o in_o the_o choice_n of_o your_o religion_n but_o three_o by_o your_o own_o word_n i_o will_v conclude_v against_o you_o a_o fortiori_fw-la for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a who_o be_v a_o teacher_n much_o more_o other_o since_o as_o mr._n cressy_n and_o you_o afterward_o affirm_v there_o be_v more_o requisite_a to_o a_o minister_n to_o be_v believe_v than_o other_o if_o then_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o minister_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n than_o one_o of_o the_o people_n much_o more_o who_o according_a
put_v in_o such_o word_n as_o i_o know_v how_o to_o answer_v and_o leave_v out_o his_o true_a word_n i_o alter_v no_o word_n but_o expound_v he_o in_o they_o as_o i_o have_v reason_n for_o if_o every_o one_o may_v be_v leave_v free_a without_o such_o a_o judge_n to_o what_o he_o judge_v best_a this_o freedom_n will_v be_v simple_a or_o moral_a if_o simple_a than_o it_o will_v be_v without_o a_o fault_n and_o if_o moral_a it_o will_v be_v without_o a_o fault_n but_o now_o he_o deny_v that_o he_o mean_v a_o moral_a freedom_n yet_o be_v it_o best_o for_o he_o to_o understand_v such_o a_o freedom_n according_a to_o his_o principle_n for_o if_o we_o have_v not_o a_o moral_a freedom_n without_o a_o fault_n to_o believe_v what_o we_o judge_v best_a then_o have_v we_o less_o reason_n of_o give_v undisputed_a assent_n to_o a_o external_a judge_n since_o we_o be_v awe_v and_o command_v under_o peril_n of_o a_o fault_n to_o take_v heed_n what_o we_o do_v believe_v and_o therefore_o can_v we_o believe_v this_o judge_n with_o blind_a obedience_n because_o it_o seem_v now_o we_o may_v not_o believe_v what_o we_o will_v but_o we_o must_v see_v good_a reason_n for_o what_o we_o do_v believe_v and_o good_a reason_n it_o be_v that_o good_a reason_n shall_v exclude_v blind_a obedience_n and_o indeed_o his_o consequence_n be_v false_a in_o terminis_fw-la for_o we_o have_v not_o a_o simple_a freedom_n to_o believe_v what_o we_o will_v as_o i_o say_v because_o the_o understanding_n natural_o assent_v to_o truth_n apparent_a but_o this_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o as_o if_o i_o have_v say_v no_o such_o thing_n how_o much_o of_o my_o word_n he_o take_v away_o privative_o which_o must_v infer_v a_o variation_n of_o my_o sense_n may_v be_v gather_v by_o compare_n of_o my_o copy_n with_o his_o rehearsal_n and_o it_o appear_v that_o negative_o he_o have_v take_v away_o a_o great_a part_n of_o my_o word_n for_o he_o say_v to_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o his_o argument_n be_v null_a and_o his_o vindication_n nullify_v only_o i_o must_v also_o note_v that_o he_o do_v not_o well_o weigh_v his_o own_o consequence_n if_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v free_a to_o hold_v what_o he_o judge_v best_a we_o shall_v have_v as_o many_o religion_n as_o private_a judgement_n for_o in_o principle_n of_o religion_n we_o be_v not_o like_a to_o differ_v if_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o particular_a controversy_n which_o you_o direct_v your_o discourse_n to_o if_o you_o speak_v ad_fw-la idem_fw-la if_o not_o you_o be_v more_o to_o be_v blame_v do_v not_o make_v different_a religion_n because_o than_o you_o must_v have_v different_a religion_n among_o yourselves_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o number_n my_o adversary_n will_v fain_o take_v i_o trip_v or_o enterfear_v upon_o my_o own_o word_n by_o a_o consequence_n 4._o num._n 4._o because_o as_o he_o think_v i_o take_v away_o all_o mean_n of_o regulate_v our_o judgement_n and_o yet_o say_v we_o shall_v not_o follow_v our_o own_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n without_o mean_n of_o regulate_v our_o judgement_n ans_fw-fr his_o reason_n may_v well_o be_v put_v into_o this_o form_n he_o that_o take_v away_o all_o infallible_a mean_n take_v away_o all_o mean_n able_a to_o produce_v a_o infallible_a assent_n but_o i_o take_v away_o all_o infallible_a mean_n then_o i_o deny_v his_o assumption_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v all_o infallible_a mean_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v all_o mean_n because_o i_o deny_v some_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v all_o infallible_a mean_n because_o i_o deny_v some_o that_o he_o think_v infallible_a in_o both_o he_o will_v impose_v upon_o i_o the_o fallacy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o a_o particulari_fw-la all_o mean_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o there_o may_v be_v and_o be_v other_o infallible_a mean_n beside_o those_o which_o he_o suppose_v and_o i_o deny_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o infallible_a mean_n to_o hold_v to_o this_o i_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n and_o then_o again_o second_o i_o deny_v a_o necessity_n of_o infallible_a assent_n to_o all_o point_n of_o question_n either_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n may_v consist_v with_o salvation_n for_o corroboration_n of_o his_o opinion_n about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n he_o bring_v in_o afterward_o st._n gregory_n the_o great_a be_v say_n i_o do_v profess_v myself_o to_o reverence_v the_o first_o four_o council_n as_o i_o reverence_v the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n i_o do_v receive_v the_o five_o council_n whosoever_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n let_v he_o be_v a_o anathema_n ans_fw-fr first_o we_o do_v not_o think_v the_o judgement_n of_o st._n gregory_n to_o be_v great_a than_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o four_o council_n if_o we_o do_v not_o think_v they_o infallible_a we_o have_v no_o cause_n or_o reason_n to_o be_v urge_v with_o one_o gregory_n second_o we_o also_o reverence_v the_o learning_n of_o that_o gregory_n as_o he_o reverence_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o as_o be_v take_v in_o similitude_n not_o proportion_n in_o the_o quality_n not_o equality_n three_o if_o the_o opinion_n of_o st._n gregory_n shall_v prevail_v with_o i_o why_o do_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n who_o i_o produce_v for_o our_o cause_n and_o the_o answer_v i_o give_v to_o his_o authority_n before_o prevail_v with_o he_o testem_fw-la quem_fw-la quis_fw-la inducit_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la tenetur_fw-la recipere_fw-la contra_fw-la se_fw-la four_o let_v we_o mark_v his_o own_o word_n and_o i_o also_o receive_v the_o five_o council_n in_o like_a manner_n now_o the_o five_o council_n be_v that_o of_o constantinople_n wherein_o vigilius_n be_v condemn_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o the_o council_n proceed_v without_o his_o consent_n yea_o and_o against_o his_o mind_n so_o that_o if_o st._n gregory_n authority_n be_v authentic_a the_o cause_n be_v spoil_v for_o so_o infallibility_n shall_v not_o be_v state_v in_o a_o council_n with_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n five_o oppose_v and_o confront_v gregory_n with_o gregory_n nazianzen_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v we_o believe_v for_o council_n neither_o do_v the_o whole_a machine_n of_o our_o religion_n tople_n and_o tumble_v to_o the_o ground_n upon_o my_o former_a principle_n as_o he_o imagine_v though_o he_o will_v press_v i_o more_o strong_o to_o show_v upon_o what_o authority_n i_o take_v scripture_n by_o a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o by_o the_o way_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v bring_v into_o question_n with_o we_o since_o we_o give_v more_o reverence_n to_o the_o scripture_n than_o they_o do_v and_o therefore_o be_v like_a to_o have_v a_o firm_a faith_n in_o it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o they_o the_o main_a design_n of_o my_o adversary_n at_o first_o i_o suppose_v be_v to_o debate_v the_o faith_n of_o particular_a point_n the_o scripture_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n although_o not_o suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n but_o therefore_o let_v i_o return_v his_o own_o word_n change_v the_o table_n that_o the_o whole_a machine_n of_o his_o religion_n do_v tople_n and_o tumble_v to_o the_o ground_n upon_o his_o ground_n by_o press_v he_o to_o show_v by_o what_o authority_n he_o take_v scripture_n by_o a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o he_o have_v prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n his_o reason_n follow_v because_o there_o can_v be_v a_o more_o groundless_a ground_n upon_o which_o you_o by_o reject_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v force_v to_o build_v your_o whole_a religion_n to_o wit_n that_o you_o by_o mere_a read_n of_o scripture_n can_v by_o its_o light_n as_o you_o discover_v the_o sun_n by_o its_o light_n discover_v it_o so_o manifest_o to_o be_v the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n that_o this_o discovery_n suffice_v to_o ground_v your_o infallible_a assent_n to_o that_o verity_n ans_fw-fr first_o he_o be_v not_o sure_o right_a in_o this_o that_o i_o be_o force_v by_o reject_v his_o way_n of_o believe_a scripture_n to_o this_o way_n if_o he_o be_v than_o i_o be_o right_a in_o the_o choice_n of_o my_o principle_n upon_o my_o refusal_n of_o he_o but_o mr._n chillingworth_n who_o he_o blame_v i_o for_o differ_v from_o in_o this_o point_n do_v find_v as_o it_o may_v seem_v and_o as_o he_o himself_o profess_v a_o middle_a way_n of_o ground_v faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n namely_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o universal_a tradition_n which_o as_o any_o can_v distinguish_v from_o this_o way_n so_o he_o do_v distinguish_v from_o the_o pontifician_n
from_o his_o impropriation_n of_o it_o yet_o we_o will_v give_v answer_n to_o his_o own_o form_n and_o as_o to_o his_o major_n we_o grant_v it_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v so_o far_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o it_o be_v enjoin_v unto_o salvation_n and_o that_o proposition_n of_o he_o be_v clear_a than_o his_o proof_n for_o his_o reason_n do_v not_o infer_v it_o namely_o because_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o have_v that_o faith_n without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n ebr._n ebr._n for_o let_v the_o reason_n be_v put_v into_o form_n of_o a_o argument_n and_o then_o let_v any_o one_o see_v whether_o it_o will_v be_v cogent_a thus_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o have_v that_o faith_n without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n therefore_o his_o major_n be_v true_a under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n all_o be_v bind_v to_o agree_v etc._n etc._n no_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v true_a but_o one_o be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o other_o that_o axiom_n in_o the_o scope_n of_o it_o speak_v of_o a_o faith_n as_o to_o that_o place_n only_o in_o this_o particular_a that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o this_o text_n apt_o prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o interior_a assent_n to_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o salvation_n it_o seem_v by_o the_o compendiousness_n of_o that_o text_n that_o very_o few_o principle_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v unto_o salvation_n because_o according_a to_o my_o adversary_n we_o may_v please_v god_n with_o the_o belief_n according_a to_o this_o text_n which_o intend_v but_o that_o one_o main_a principle_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o they_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o and_o so_o this_o will_v abate_v the_o plea_n of_o mr._n cressy_n and_o of_o my_o adversary_n who_o contend_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o if_o he_o will_v extend_v that_o text_n virtual_o to_o a_o necessity_n of_o particular_a persuasion_n that_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v be_v lawful_a as_o if_o it_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o sense_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n first_o that_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n and_o then_o second_o so_o it_o will_v exceed_v his_o purpose_n which_o be_v for_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o so_o it_o will_v also_o have_v reference_n to_o thing_n indifferent_a unto_o which_o the_o other_o text_n be_v proper_o apply_v well_o let_v we_o see_v his_o minor_a prove_v he_o prove_v it_o thus_o a_o infallible_a assent_n can_v be_v build_v but_o upon_o submission_n to_o a_o infallible_a authority_n and_o no_o other_o infallible_a authority_n sufficient_a to_o breed_v this_o agreement_n in_o their_o interior_a assent_n to_o all_o point_n necessary_a can_v be_v assign_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n well_o the_o major_a of_o this_o syllogism_n we_o grant_v but_o first_o how_o prove_v he_o the_o minor_a and_o yet_o we_o may_v also_o except_v against_o the_o form_n of_o it_o for_o it_o shall_v be_v thus_o for_o the_o minor_a but_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a authority_n but_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o so_o the_o form_n be_v not_o right_a neither_o for_o the_o medium_n be_v not_o due_o place_v but_o how_o prove_v he_o the_o minor_a for_o this_o be_v yet_o to_o we_o the_o question_n out_o of_o question_n he_o may_v prove_v what_o he_o will_v if_o he_o can_v make_v the_o question_n proof_n and_o therefore_o lest_o his_o minor_a shall_v appear_v to_o be_v gross_o false_a for_o he_o by_o and_o by_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n authority_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o lest_o that_o minor_a as_o it_o shall_v be_v form_v shall_v not_o full_o infer_v the_o minor_a of_o his_o prosyllogism_n he_o shuffle_n in_o in_o the_o minor_a of_o his_o last_o more_o than_o shall_v be_v and_o let_v i_o now_o make_v use_n of_o his_o principle_n without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n in_o all_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n i_o can_v have_v faith_n therefore_o in_o all_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n i_o can_v please_v god_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v scripture_n and_o a_o principle_n which_o he_o also_o use_v my_o second_o proposition_n i_o prove_v by_o his_o proof_n of_o he_o thus_o a_o infallible_a assent_n can_v be_v build_v but_o upon_o submission_n to_o a_o infallible_a authority_n the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o prove_v to_o have_v infallible_a authority_n therefore_o can_v we_o have_v infallible_a assent_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o consequent_a not_o faith_n for_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o a_o infallible_a assent_n then_o towards_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o last_o minor_a he_o come_v over_o with_o the_o denial_n of_o this_o property_n to_o scripture_n the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n though_o infallible_a do_v not_o give_v we_o clear_a text_n to_o ground_n our_o infallible_a assent_n upon_o they_o in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chap._n this_o be_v beg_v of_o the_o question_n in_o the_o second_o chap._n not_o in_o the_o three_o if_o it_o be_v there_o prove_v but_o here_o he_o afford_v i_o then_o that_o which_o be_v a_o positive_a minor_fw-la to_o my_o last_o syllogism_n against_o he_o and_o complete_o it_o be_v make_v by_o his_o own_o principle_n now_o infallible_a assent_n be_v not_o build_v but_o upon_o submission_n to_o a_o infallible_a authority_n the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v infallible_a therefore_o both_o his_o own_o proposition_n only_o the_o form_n of_o the_o discourse_n follow_v he_o but_o notwithstanding_o its_o infallible_a authority_n he_o say_v it_o do_v not_o give_v clear_a text_n to_o ground_n our_o infallible_a assent_n upon_o they_o in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o now_o all_o the_o question_n seem_v to_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o debate_n about_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o text_n he_o seem_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o text_n in_o the_o subject_n but_o deny_v they_o in_o the_o adjunct_n of_o clearness_n ans_fw-fr first_o if_o there_o be_v text_n for_o all_o point_n necessary_a material_o then_o be_v that_o main_a opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n about_o tradition_n sink_v for_o since_o they_o be_v say_v to_o come_v in_o upon_o way_n of_o supply_n of_o what_o be_v not_o set_v down_o at_o all_o in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v then_o if_o all_o be_v set_v down_o in_o scripture_n but_o some_o thing_n not_o clear_o then_o have_v we_o no_o need_n of_o any_o new_a matter_n of_o tradition_n but_o only_o of_o traditive_a interpretation_n which_o what_o they_o be_v and_o where_o they_o be_v who_o can_v tell_v second_o if_o he_o suppose_v more_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o indeed_o be_v necessary_a as_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v then_o indeed_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o afford_v clear_a text_n for_o all_o thing_n necessary_a in_o their_o opinion_n yea_o none_o at_o all_o for_o some_o of_o their_o opinion_n but_o as_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v real_o necessary_a so_o we_o deny_v it_o the_o scripture_n have_v sufficient_a clearness_n for_o all_o thing_n necessary_a upon_o due_a account_n three_o the_o council_n do_v give_v we_o no_o other_o sense_n of_o those_o text_n which_o be_v not_o clear_a in_o themselves_o than_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o do_v they_o no_o he_o will_v say_v for_o than_o they_o shall_v not_o declare_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o make_v it_o which_o their_o great_a doctor_n when_o they_o be_v in_o their_o sober_a mind_n do_v deny_v then_o be_v we_o determine_v in_o the_o controversy_n by_o those_o text_n and_o not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n the_o council_n do_v but_o rub_v the_o glass_n that_o we_o may_v see_v more_o clear_o the_o sense_n but_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n which_o decide_v the_o point_n they_o do_v not_o make_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n but_o show_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o high_a way_n but_o the_o scripture_n if_o they_o by_o their_o discussion_n and_o discourse_n add_v one_o degree_n of_o claritude_n to_o those_o text_n must_v the_o causality_n formal_a of_o the_o assent_n be_v attribute_v to_o their_o authority_n they_o do_v but_o make_v clear_a the_o object_n the_o assent_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o clearness_n but_o to_o the_o object_n clear_v four_o what_o if_o some_o of_o the_o great_a doctor_n do_v give_v all_o this_o power_n of_o explication_n of_o ambiguous_a scripture_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o
three_o it_o be_v a_o great_a question_n upon_o the_o supposition_n who_o succeed_v st._n peter_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n and_o carranza_n can_v determine_v it_o four_o st._n peter_n be_v appoint_v rather_o for_o the_o jew_n than_o for_o the_o gentile_n and_o therefore_o the_o trent_n council_n in_o their_o commination_n do_v very_o well_o to_o put_v st._n paul_n with_o st._n peter_n for_o indeed_o st_n paul_n be_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n yea_o five_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n together_o there_o be_v no_o pastor_n at_o rome_n in_o their_o sense_n not_o pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o gregory_n protestation_n against_o john_n of_o constantinople_n who_o will_v arrogate_v and_o usurp_v universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v not_o alwye_n in_o the_o church_n in_o my_o adversary_n sense_n a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pastor_n because_o there_o be_v not_o pastor_n in_o his_o sense_n and_o so_o by_o his_o argument_n there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_n church_n for_o that_o time_n yea_o sixthly_a and_o last_o how_o can_v we_o be_v ascertain_v by_o certitude_n of_o faith_n that_o there_o be_v ever_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o rome_n because_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a in_o that_o kind_n of_o certainty_n to_o be_v sure_a nor_o indeed_o in_o any_o other_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v true_a bishop_n or_o true_a priest_n or_o true_a christian_n because_o their_o principle_n bring_v it_o into_o question_n by_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o qualification_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o make_v they_o christian_n by_o baptism_n or_o priest_n by_o order_n or_o bishop_n by_o consecration_n and_o also_o second_o because_o some_o as_o it_o be_v know_v by_o history_n have_v get_v into_o the_o sea_n by_o simony_n which_o make_v it_o disputable_a even_o among_o themselves_o whether_o it_o do_v not_o ex_fw-la vi_fw-la criminis_fw-la make_v they_o no_o bishop_n and_o the_o thirty_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o acknowledge_v as_o bind_v too_o injoin_v that_o such_o as_o get_v their_o dignity_n by_o money_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o yea_o three_o when_o there_o be_v antipape_n how_o can_v the_o common_a people_n by_o assurance_n of_o faith_n know_v which_o be_v the_o right_a for_o though_o they_o say_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o right_a who_o the_o council_n do_v accept_v yet_o be_v it_o a_o question_n whether_o they_o can_v infallible_o judge_v in_o the_o case_n otherwise_o no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o then_o there_o be_v not_o always_o a_o council_n and_o how_o can_v the_o council_n be_v call_v without_o a_o true_a pope_n if_o they_o may_v then_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n essential_a to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v answer_n enough_o to_o what_o he_o say_v about_o his_o lawful_a succession_n of_o true_a pastor_n that_o which_o append_v hereunto_o be_v collateral_o answer_v here_o more_o particular_o before_o he_o go_v on_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o do_v some_o thing_n and_o not_o to_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n ans_fw-fr not_o so_o necessary_a as_o it_o be_v not_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n so_o often_o this_o proposition_n do_v indeed_o plain_o contradict_v our_o proposition_n but_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v false_a unless_o it_o by_o itself_o do_v evident_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a therefore_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o deny_v it_o be_v the_o respondent_fw-la but_o we_o see_v by_o the_o way_n that_o those_o who_o make_v the_o church_n its_o infallibility_n their_o first_o principle_n be_v apt_a to_o make_v all_o it_o say_v to_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o science_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o do_v according_a to_o scripture_n be_v sure_a of_o salvation_n than_o all_o the_o church_n can_v make_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o ignatius_n phrase_n be_v he_o that_o go_v by_o the_o rule_n be_v safe_a he_o that_o go_v by_o scripture_n in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n go_v by_o the_o rule_n therefore_o now_o god_n have_v propose_v the_o scripture_n as_o our_o rule_n by_o bellarmin_n confession_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o controversy_n as_o before_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o complete_a rule_n than_o indeed_o be_v it_o not_o a_o rule_n for_o it_o come_v short_a of_o a_o rule_n and_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v bellarmin_n use_n because_o than_o they_o who_o he_o dispute_v against_o might_n have_v urge_v their_o revelation_n beside_o the_o rule_n though_o not_o against_o it_o as_o the_o pontifician_n be_v please_v to_o distinguish_v and_o as_o for_o point_n of_o faith_n we_o have_v beside_o what_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o father_n for_o this_o i_o have_v give_v before_o the_o plain_a authority_n of_o st._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o 4_o cat._n p._n 85._o edit_fw-la gr._n lat._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d concern_v thing_n divine_a and_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o faith_n there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v deliver_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o in_o another_o place_n he_o understand_v by_o tradition_n the_o sum_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v take_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o 5._o cat._n p._n 117._o and_o so_o tertullian_n in_o his_o prae_n cap._n 13._o his_o regula_n fidei_fw-la be_v a_o sum_n of_o main_a point_n of_o doctrine_n take_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o concern_v this_o rule_n he_o say_v adversus_fw-la regulam_fw-la nihil_fw-la scire_fw-la omne_fw-la scire_fw-la est_fw-la and_o so_o irenaeus_n also_o mean_v tradition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o several_a place_n indeed_o tertullian_n and_o irenaeus_n and_o cyprian_a and_o basill_n and_o austin_n be_v quote_v by_o the_o pontifician_n in_o the_o trent_n council_n for_o hold_v that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v contain_v partly_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o partly_o in_o tradition_n but_o for_o these_o father_n if_o their_o consent_n do_v ground_n infallible_a assent_n be_v either_o misunderstand_a or_o else_o be_v contradictory_n to_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v rely_v upon_o they_o because_o one_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n must_v be_v false_a as_o for_o st._n austin_n i_o have_v former_o quote_v he_o for_o hold_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n be_v among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o st._n basill_n i_o have_v produce_v too_o and_o as_o for_o cyprian_a we_o will_v quote_v he_o for_o the_o other_o part_n namely_o of_o action_n though_o we_o may_v also_o name_v he_o for_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n in_o thing_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o make_v his_o proof_n from_o scripture_n in_o his_o second_o b._n of_o epistle_n three_o epistle_n he_o have_v these_o word_n quare_fw-la si_fw-la solus_fw-la christus_fw-la audiendus_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la attendere_fw-la quid_fw-la aliquis_fw-la ante_fw-la nos_fw-la faciendum_fw-la putaverit_fw-la sed_fw-la quid_fw-la qui_fw-la ante_fw-la omnes_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la prio_fw-la fecerit_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la hominis_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la sequi_fw-la oportet_fw-la sed_fw-la dei_fw-la veritatem_fw-la wherein_o he_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n to_o whatsoever_o custom_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n he_o understand_v to_o be_v of_o the_o word_n write_v for_o there_o he_o prove_v all_o about_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v mingle_v with_o wine_n and_o water_n out_o of_o scripture_n which_o prove_v however_o he_o take_v scripture_n to_o be_v our_o rule_n in_o agent_n yea_o also_o this_o point_n be_v agitate_a by_o marinarus_n in_o the_o trent_n council_n where_o he_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n z._n p._n 151._o z._n that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o make_v tradition_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v he_o reprehend_v in_o the_o council_n by_o cardinal_n poole_n for_o not_o allow_v that_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o kind_n some_o publish_v by_o writing_n other_o command_v to_o be_v communicate_v by_o voice_n and_o can_v any_o sober_a man_n imagine_v that_o god_n shall_v by_o his_o spirit_n give_v order_n for_o the_o write_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o shall_v also_o give_v order_n by_o his_o spirit_n that_o somewhat_o shall_v not_o be_v write_v but_o keep_v in_o mystery_n for_o oral_a tradition_n and_o yet_o shall_v be_v as_o much_o necessary_a as_o that_o which_o be_v write_v credat_fw-la judaeus_n every_o one_o be_v to_o believe_v some_o thing_n distinct_o now_o which_o these_o thing_n be_v or_o how_o many_o scripture_n express_v not_o ans_fw-fr let_v this_o be_v take_v for_o a_o antecedent_n will_v it_o be_v concluce_v from_o hence_o that_o therefore_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v not_o plain_o set_v
he_o note_v this_o because_o it_o be_v right_a will_v he_o correct_v the_o magnificate_n this_o be_v ad_fw-la verbum_fw-la to_o the_o text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yea_o he_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o our_o translation_n in_o this_o without_o condemnation_n of_o the_o rhemish_n for_o so_o they_o to_o correct_v from_o hence_o he_o say_v you_o shall_v conclude_v thus_o all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n but_o all_o doctrine_n give_v by_o inspiration_n from_o god_n contain_v plain_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o all_o scripture_n contain_v plain_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n ans_fw-fr i_o be_o easy_o bring_v to_o st._n basil_n rule_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o teach_v without_o envy_n to_o learn_v without_o shame_n but_o i_o need_v not_o learn_v from_o my_o adversary_n how_o to_o order_v my_o discourse_n in_o this_o particular_a the_o forename_a text_n which_o i_o use_v in_o my_o second_o rejoinder_n be_v produce_v pat_o against_o his_o assertion_n that_o if_o god_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o his_o church_n he_o have_v not_o well_o provide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n to_o this_o i_o oppose_v the_o text_n in_o the_o 15_o and_o 16._o v._n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o by_o consequent_a god_n have_v well_o provide_v for_o salvation_n of_o man_n in_o general_n then_o i_o urge_v the_o particular_n in_o which_o it_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n in_o the_o 16._o ver_fw-la and_o now_o because_o i_o do_v not_o conclude_v punctual_o against_o the_o term_n he_o have_v in_o this_o paper_n and_o yet_o nemo_fw-la temetur_fw-la divinare_fw-la he_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o and_o we_o have_v a_o notable_a talon_n in_o not_o conclude_v contradictory_o as_o he_o say_v in_o tacitus_n utinam_fw-la tu_fw-la tam_fw-la fortiter_fw-la fery_n to_o the_o business_n then_o we_o say_v first_o that_o my_o adversary_n do_v or_o may_v know_v that_o in_o a_o discourse_n every_o syllogism_n or_o proof_n or_o answer_v do_v not_o formal_o and_o in_o terminis_fw-la conclude_v against_o the_o main_a question_n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o it_o conclude_v against_o the_o last_o instance_n for_o if_o that_o be_v right_o make_v the_o virtue_n thereof_o will_v rebound_v ultimate_o to_o the_o principal_a question_n and_o second_o as_o to_o his_o syllogism_n which_o he_o think_v conclude_v absurd_o upon_o our_o opinion_n we_o say_v it_o be_v unanswerable_a because_o it_o have_v neither_o mode_n nor_o figure_n he_o have_v better_o have_v put_v it_o into_o a_o enthymem_n or_o a_o full_a syllogism_n thus_o whatsoever_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n contain_v plain_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n all_o scripture_n be_v inspire_v by_o god_n therefore_o all_o scripture_n now_o he_o have_v the_o wit_n not_o to_o put_v it_o thus_o because_o we_o shall_v so_o easy_o have_v deny_v the_o major_a as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o note_n of_o universality_n whatsoever_o distributive_o yea_o also_o and_o because_o whatsoever_o so_o be_v inspire_v do_v not_o contain_v any_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n do_v not_o contain_v any_o necessary_a point_n and_o therefore_o like_o a_o sophister_n he_o wrap_v it_o up_o in_o a_o obscure_a form_n yea_o none_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v discover_v three_o if_o all_o in_o the_o proposition_n be_v take_v collective_o or_o complexive_o so_o we_o own_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o proposition_n and_o the_o conclusion_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o sound_a doctrine_n without_o his_o consequence_n of_o teach_v submission_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o she_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o fourthly_a he_o shall_v discreet_o have_v take_v all_o scripture_n complexive_o for_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v distributive_o then_o if_o every_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a to_o all_o those_o end_n what_o will_v become_v of_o their_o addition_n of_o verbum_fw-la non_fw-la scriptum_fw-la if_o every_o part_n can_v make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a what_o use_v of_o the_o merchandise_n of_o tradition_n as_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o five_o it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v have_v swallow_v his_o own_o discourse_n for_o the_o church_n thus_o all_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v inspire_v by_o god_n all_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n inspire_v by_o god_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o all_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n this_o will_v have_v please_v he_o well_o since_o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n teach_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la by_o this_o one_o article_n because_o it_o teach_v we_o submission_n to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o she_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o sixthly_a he_o mistake_v i_o simple_o or_o worse_o if_o he_o think_v that_o i_o mean_v to_o conclude_v contradictory_o by_o every_o particular_a unto_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a he_o commit_v herein_o a_o fallacy_n of_o division_n make_v that_o to_o be_v conclude_v several_o which_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v joint_o and_o seventh_o we_o will_v now_o join_v issue_n with_o our_o adversary_n upon_o the_o text_n and_o first_o upon_o the_o 15._o ver_fw-la thus_o that_o which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n contain_v plain_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n contain_v plain_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o if_o there_o be_v exception_n make_v as_o to_o the_o major_a that_o timothy_n be_v not_o a_o ordinary_a man_n and_o therefore_o though_o they_o may_v have_v that_o effect_n upon_o timothy_n yet_o not_o upon_o every_o one_o we_o say_v as_o before_o that_o it_o follow_v ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la if_o there_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v he_o wise_a than_o a_o majori_fw-la other_o because_o he_o as_o a_o minister_n need_v more_o direction_n as_o my_o adversary_n affirm_v with_o mr._n cressy_n and_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n because_o he_o have_v learn_v they_o from_o his_o youth_n for_o than_o if_o they_o will_v learn_v they_o from_o their_o youth_n they_o may_v make_v they_o also_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v also_o learn_v they_o from_o their_o youth_n as_o the_o say_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v a_o boy_n of_o five_o year_n old_a be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o bible_n again_o a_o fortiori_fw-la if_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n then_o sure_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a together_o but_o the_o old_a be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n the_o new_a not_o be_v yet_o for_o a_o great_a part_n write_v as_o the_o rhemists_n note_n and_o when_o they_o can_v find_v as_o much_o reason_n for_o the_o addition_n of_o their_o word_n not-written_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o there_o be_v for_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o the_o old_a then_o let_v they_o say_v that_o this_o text_n do_v not_o exclude_v tradition_n if_o they_o do_v say_v it_o do_v not_o exclude_v traditive_a interpretation_n it_o will_v be_v more_o reasonable_a because_o the_o new_a be_v add_v to_o illustrate_v and_o declare_v the_o old_a but_o it_o exclude_v tradition_n of_o new_a matter_n because_o the_o new_a add_v no_o new_a matter_n to_o the_o old_a and_o yet_o again_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o delivery_n of_o thing_n necessary_a in_o scripture_n if_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v more_o obscure_a be_v yet_o able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a as_o to_o point_n of_o knowledge_n unto_o salvation_n then_o certain_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v there_o sufficiency_n of_o plainness_n because_o the_o new_a be_v the_o old_a reveal_v as_o st._n paul_n speak_v 2._o ep._n to_o the_o cor._n 3.18_o but_o we_o all_o with_o open_a face_n behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_v as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o now_o we_o will_v put_v into_o the_o argument_n all_o the_o end_n unto_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a that_o which_o be_v profitable_a to_o all_o those_o end_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o 16._o ver_fw-la to_o doctrine_n in_o thing_n to_o be_v know_v to_o redargution_n of_o error_n to_o correction_n of_o manner_n to_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a furnish_v for_o every_o good_a work_n do_v sufficient_o provide_v all_o
unto_o salvation_n because_o timothy_n as_o before_o and_o also_o with_o sufficient_a plainness_n since_o the_o old_a testament_n can_v do_v it_o before_o the_o new_a be_v consign_v but_o the_o scripture_n take_v in_o complexo_fw-la do_v so_o therefore_o this_o text_n be_v sufficient_o full_a and_o clear_a against_o they_o and_o his_o argument_n out_o of_o this_o text_n against_o i_o wherein_o he_o say_v he_o have_v a_o contradictory_n conclusion_n against_o i_o we_o will_v now_o hear_v this_o it_o be_v that_o which_o in_o this_o text_n be_v say_v only_o to_o be_v profitable_a for_o these_o end_n be_v not_o thereby_o say_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o these_o end_n and_o yet_o much_o less_o sufficient_a to_o end_v all_o controversy_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o itself_o alone_o but_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o text_n be_v say_v only_o to_o be_v profitable_a to_o these_o end_n here_o express_v ergo_fw-la ans_fw-fr the_o answer_n unto_o this_o of_o he_o may_v maintain_v the_o major_a of_o my_o last_o syllogism_n for_o thus_o estius_n and_o my_o adversary_n distinguish_v upon_o the_o major_a that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v profitable_a and_o not_o necessary_a for_o these_o end_n and_o so_o in_o effect_n the_o rhemist_n upon_o the_o text_n that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o great_a defence_n and_o help_n of_o the_o faithful_a especial_o of_o a_o bishop_n and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o argument_n we_o answer_v therefore_o first_o if_o he_o mean_v his_o major_n thus_o that_o what_o be_v not_o say_v in_o term_n to_o be_v so_o be_v not_o say_v so_o by_o consequence_n neither_o his_o minor_a be_v not_o true_a and_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o otherwise_o it_o be_v peccant_a in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o elench_v for_o we_o can_v acknowledge_v his_o conclusion_n without_o prejudice_n to_o our_o cause_n for_o though_o it_o be_v not_o say_v so_o in_o term_n yet_o by_o equivalence_n and_o interpretative_a it_o be_v second_o to_o the_o minor_a we_o say_v though_o it_o be_v only_o say_v to_o be_v profitable_a yet_o since_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v only_o profitable_a it_o do_v not_o exclude_v sufficiency_n that_o which_o affirm_v so_o much_o simple_o do_v not_o simple_o deny_v more_o for_o than_o we_o can_v no_o way_n reconcile_v divers_a historical_a passage_n of_o the_o evangelist_n but_o that_o it_o do_v include_v sufficiency_n bellarmin_n and_o my_o adversary_n do_v deny_v bellarmin_n to_o chemnitius_n my_o adversary_n to_o i_o yet_o bellarmin_n stand_v not_o so_o much_o against_o the_o term_n as_o if_o it_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v sufficient_a but_o contend_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a alone_o as_o meat_n though_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o nutrition_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a alone_o for_o if_o natural_a heat_n be_v want_v or_o any_o other_o instrument_n of_o the_o body_n necessary_a to_o nutrition_n it_o will_v not_o nourish_v in_o his_o four_o b._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la cap._n 10._o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o we_o do_v not_o maintain_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n alone_o for_o there_o must_v be_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o obedience_n and_o therefore_o st._n paul_n add_v upon_o the_o place_n through_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n but_o we_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a in_o svo_fw-la genere_fw-la as_o to_o direction_n of_o we_o this_o satisfy_v our_o cause_n if_o this_o be_v confess_v we_o have_v do_v as_o meat_n be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o shall_v nourish_v so_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v yea_o for_o our_o comfort_n too_o as_o isid_n clarius_n upon_o the_o text_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v when_o st._n paul_n have_v use_v many_o consolation_n he_o use_v here_o the_o great_a for_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o most_o strong_a consolation_n to_o have_v the_o scripture_n send_v from_o heaven_n quae_fw-la et_fw-la tantis_fw-la in_o tenebris_fw-la lumen_fw-la praeferat_fw-la et_fw-la gravissima_fw-la quaeque_fw-la efficiat_a ut_fw-la fiant_fw-la levia_fw-la and_o these_o comfort_n he_o say_v he_o do_v seasonable_o give_v he_o when_o he_o be_v to_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o sad_a news_n of_o his_o departure_n and_o as_o for_o the_o word_n there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o we_o will_v take_v aim_n of_o the_o sense_n by_o the_o syriack_n since_o the_o greek_a intimate_v the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o syriack_n be_v call_v the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o profitable_a as_o be_v sufficient_a because_o the_o word_n for_o profitable_a in_o the_o syriack_n be_v take_v from_o a_o word_n which_o signify_v to_o abound_v and_o exceed_v three_o although_o all_o that_o be_v profitable_a be_v not_o sufficient_a though_o all_o that_o be_v sufficient_a be_v profitable_a yet_o that_o which_o be_v profitable_a ut_fw-la sic_fw-la as_o to_o perfection_n seem_v very_o sufficient_a that_o which_o help_v he_o to_o perfection_n help_v he_o sufficient_o quoad_fw-la hoc_fw-la as_o to_o point_v of_o knowledge_n and_o if_o it_o extend_v not_o to_o sufficencie_n in_o the_o expression_n the_o reason_n may_v be_v because_o other_o thing_n also_o be_v profitable_a practical_o and_o therefore_o be_v sufficient_a to_o end_v all_o controversy_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o itself_o alone_o because_o there_o need_v not_o be_v any_o controversy_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n yea_o rather_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o controversy_n about_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n because_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o dangerous_a and_o therefore_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v for_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a by_o scripture_n ready_a furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n the_o man_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n the_o minister_n so_o st._n paul_n of_o timothy_n according_a to_o proportion_n to_o the_o jewish_a title_n but_o thou_o man_n of_o god_n fly_v these_o thing_n and_o this_o we_o strengthen_v with_o st._n crysostom_n note_n upon_o the_o text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o simple_o partake_v but_o with_o accurateness_n furnish_v and_o again_o before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d instead_o of_o i_o thou_o have_v the_o scripture_n not_o tradition_n if_o you_o will_v learn_v any_o thing_n from_o thence_o you_o may_v so_o that_o the_o father_n comment_n import_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o learning_n if_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v pretend_v as_o equal_o profitable_a then_o either_o st._n paul_n teach_v he_o but_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v and_o in_o stead_n of_o he_o he_o be_v to_o have_v the_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n but_o he_o say_v not_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n not_o write_v but_o thou_o have_v the_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n by_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v with_o accurateness_n furnish_v therefore_o until_o they_o can_v find_v any_o thing_n sufficient_a without_o scripture_n or_o any_o thing_n necessary_o conduce_v to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n we_o rest_v content_v with_o our_o cause_n upon_o account_n of_o this_o text_n wherein_o also_o as_o usual_o by_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d less_o be_v say_v more_o be_v understand_v if_o the_o pontifician_n have_v such_o a_o text_n for_o their_o cause_n this_o profitable_a text_n will_v have_v be_v make_v sufficient_a as_o for_o the_o three_o answer_n that_o st._n paul_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n whence_o he_o be_v most_o weak_o cite_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o whole_a canon_n contain_v clear_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o this_o be_v weak_o urge_v for_o the_o argument_n proceed_v a_o fortiori_fw-la as_o before_o if_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n if_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v sufficient_a than_o the_o whole_a much_o more_o and_o if_o tradition_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o happy_o they_o will_v say_v why_o do_v god_n give_v we_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o be_v even_o with_o they_o again_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o may_v also_o say_v this_o be_v weak_o urge_v to_o prove_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o they_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n again_o when_o this_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v manifest_v that_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v lose_v how_o then_o know_v you_o the_o same_o necessary_a point_v not_o deliver_v in_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deliver_v in_o these_o part_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v perish_v and_o so_o be_v come_v not_o to_o be_v extant_a
in_o write_v ans_fw-fr the_o former_a be_v i_o suppose_v prove_v more_o than_o they_o desire_v and_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v first_o if_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o some_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v perish_v he_o may_v have_v tell_v we_o which_o otherwise_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o manifest_a no_o certain_a and_o manifest_a knowledge_n of_o the_o general_n but_o by_o some_o particular_n second_o if_o any_o part_n be_v lose_v it_o be_v either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n if_o of_o the_o old_a the_o new_a have_v the_o same_o matter_n as_o to_o sufficiency_n with_o clearness_n if_o of_o the_o new_a the_o old_a be_v able_a to_o make_v timothy_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o my_o adversary_n may_v have_v know_v that_o not_o only_a mr._n chillingworth_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v enough_o in_o one_o gospel_n precise_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o also_o that_o their_o bellarmin_n in_o the_o former_a b._n and_o ch._n say_v that_o all_o the_o utility_n of_o scripture_n which_o here_o be_v rehearse_v be_v find_v in_o the_o second_o ep._n of_o st._n john_n if_o any_o book_n then_o be_v lose_v which_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o nor_o they_o neither_o because_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n yet_o by_o nis_fw-la opinion_n namely_o beauty_n that_o which_o remain_v may_v be_v profitable_a yea_o sufficient_a for_o those_o use_n without_o a_o infallible_a judge_n and_o again_o if_o any_o book_n of_o either_o testament_n or_o any_o of_o both_o be_v lose_v this_o will_v redound_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o roman_a because_o they_o account_v that_o they_o only_o be_v the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o keeper_n of_o divine_a truth_n then_o they_o have_v not_o faithful_o preserve_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v infallible_a in_o what_o they_o do_v propose_v how_o shall_v we_o trust_v they_o that_o what_o be_v deliver_v as_o truth_n they_o will_v keep_v since_o through_o their_o negligence_n they_o have_v let_v some_o book_n or_o book_n of_o scripture_n perish_v quis_fw-la custodiet_fw-la ipsos_fw-la custodes_fw-la but_o it_o may_v be_v they_o have_v keep_v tradition_n more_o faithful_o then_o sure_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v lose_v with_o good_a discretion_n that_o it_o may_v reflect_v honour_n to_o the_o integrity_n of_o tradition_n o_o sanctas_fw-la gentes_fw-la quibus_fw-la haec_fw-la nascuntur_fw-la in_o hortis_fw-la numina_fw-la your_o second_o text_n to_o prove_v this_o be_v heb._n 4.12_o here_o be_v the_o text_n 10._o num._n 10._o but_o where_o be_v the_o contradictory_n conclusion_n in_o terminis_fw-la and_o that_o evident_o that_o it_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n by_o itself_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr omne_fw-la reducitur_fw-la ad_fw-la principium_fw-la as_o aquinas_n rule_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o begin_v thus_o i_o be_v to_o dispute_v against_o the_o judge_n authority_n to_o bind_v upon_o his_o own_o account_n as_o he_o may_v have_v note_v have_v he_o please_v my_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o judge_n determin_n by_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o he_o make_v a_o new_a law_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o propose_v divine_a truth_n be_v immediate_a by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o disquisition_n which_o stapleton_n deny_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o six_o general_a controversy_n if_o by_o scripture_n then_o do_v his_o determination_n bind_v by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o he_o be_v but_o a_o minister_n this_o my_o adversary_n say_v not_o a_o word_n unto_o then_o ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la i_o put_v this_o text_n to_o he_o to_o give_v he_o a_o check_n in_o the_o course_n of_o his_o exception_n against_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v formal_o a_o judge_n but_o yet_o by_o this_o text_n we_o have_v so_o much_o say_v as_o amount_n in_o effect_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n internal_a by_o mediation_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v more_o than_o their_o judge_n infallible_a can_v pretend_v to_o and_o therefore_o as_o to_o the_o demand_n of_o a_o contradictory_n conclusion_n from_o hence_o i_o say_v this_o text_n be_v pertinent_o produce_v to_o that_o purpose_n i_o intend_v of_o it_o which_o be_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o directory_n weapon_n against_o my_o adversary_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v of_o use_n to_o cut_v off_o their_o plea_n against_o scripture_n as_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a letter_n not_o a_o live_a judge_n it_o be_v live_v quick_a that_o it_o can_v do_v nothing_o it_o be_v active_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o it_o can_v decide_v controversy_n it_o be_v sharp_a than_o any_o two_o edge_a sword_n as_o the_o law_n decide_v case_n of_o right_a so_o it_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n pretend_v which_o be_v not_o contain_v therein_o it_o do_v cut_v off_o if_o they_o say_v it_o can_v reach_v the_o conscience_n what_o then_o can_v it_o be_v pierce_v to_o the_o divide_v of_o soul_n and_o spirit_n joint_n and_o marrow_n if_o they_o say_v it_o can_v judge_v it_o be_v here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d critical_a exact_o judicative_a of_o the_o thought_n and_o notion_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o point_n he_o will_v have_v i_o show_v that_o this_o sharpness_n be_v in_o order_n not_o only_o to_o decide_v controversy_n but_o also_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n and_o to_o do_v this_o by_o itself_o alone_o and_o if_o not_o where_o be_v then_o your_o contradictory_n conclusion_n ans_fw-fr it_o may_v decide_v controversy_n and_o not_o necessary_a controversy_n but_o if_o it_o decide_v necessary_a controversy_n then_o to_o be_v sure_a it_o do_v decide_v controversy_n our_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o determin_n necessary_a controversy_n yea_o neither_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o dispute_v the_o question_n because_o we_o say_v it_o not_o nor_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o make_v it_o good_a in_o their_o sense_n in_o our_o sense_n yet_o it_o do_v sufficient_o decide_v all_o necessary_a controversy_n because_o it_o do_v so_o plain_o deliver_v thing_n of_o necessary_a faith_n that_o there_o need_v not_o be_v any_o decision_n of_o they_o by_o any_o inerrable_a judge_n and_o then_o also_o second_o because_o if_o there_o be_v any_o question_n about_o necessary_a point_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v determine_v and_o three_o it_o do_v in_o effect_n examine_v and_o judge_v in_o the_o inward_a man_n case_n of_o opinion_n and_o of_o action_n which_o a_o external_a judge_n do_v not_o as_o such_o because_o they_o be_v not_o know_v to_o he_o and_o in_o this_o regard_n i_o conceive_v that_o the_o heretic_n be_v say_v as_o before_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o law_n do_v by_o his_o own_o conscience_n condemn_v he_o in_o hold_v a_o material_a error_n against_o his_o own_o light_n yea_o let_v they_o answer_v to_o their_o own_o estius_n who_o upon_o the_o place_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o property_n of_o god_n attribute_v to_o it_o and_o because_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v ut_fw-la gladius_n penetrate_v et_fw-fr laedit_fw-la ita_fw-la sermo_fw-la dei_fw-la intuetur_fw-la et_fw-la punit_fw-la itaque_fw-la significatur_fw-la cognitio_fw-la non_fw-la nuda_fw-la sed_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la judicis_fw-la examinantis_fw-la et_fw-la cognoscentis_fw-la ut_fw-la puniat_fw-la as_o the_o sword_n pierce_v and_o wound_v so_o do_v the_o word_n of_o god_n take_v notice_n and_o punish_v therefore_o be_v signify_v not_o a_o naked_a knowledge_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o judge_n examine_v and_o take_v cognizance_n that_o it_o may_v punish_v now_o because_o that_o which_o be_v not_o intend_v sometime_o prove_v better_a than_o that_o which_o be_v intend_v as_o the_o rule_n be_v melius_fw-la est_fw-la aliquando_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la accidens_fw-la quam_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la therefore_o may_v we_o draw_v a_o argument_n in_o form_n from_o hence_o thus_o that_o which_o judge_v and_o infallible_o be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n the_o scripture_n judge_v so_o the_o text_n and_o estius_n upon_o it_o and_o infallible_o as_o they_o will_v confess_v then_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n now_o if_o it_o be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n it_o be_v very_o reasonable_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n as_o to_o point_n necessary_a and_o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o a_o external_a infallible_a judge_n as_o to_o determine_v faith_n for_o that_o be_v do_v by_o it_o there_o
those_o text_n defend_v do_v sufficient_o confirm_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n in_o matter_n and_o manner_n to_o this_o end_n of_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o it_o that_o be_v not_o our_o assertion_n nor_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n betwixt_o we_o our_o position_n may_v be_v true_a and_o yet_o this_o false_a for_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n may_v be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o not_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n neither_o can_v they_o maintain_v this_o of_o their_o church_n which_o they_o think_v more_o fit_a to_o decide_v controversy_n than_o scripture_n for_o then_o why_o do_v not_o the_o trent_n council_n clear_o determine_v on_o which_o part_n many_o question_n shall_v be_v hold_v but_o the_o plainness_n of_o thing_n necessary_a be_v in_o scripture_n sufficient_a against_o the_o necessity_n of_o any_o controversy_n as_o the_o fullness_n be_v sufficient_a against_o the_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n which_o be_v their_o word_n unwritten_a and_o therefore_o be_v not_o we_o bind_v by_o any_o necessity_n of_o our_o cause_n to_o find_v any_o text_n wherein_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o our_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n for_o the_o text_n before_o maintain_v be_v good_a to_o prove_v we_o oblige_v to_o scripture_n for_o salvation_n whereunto_o thing_n necessary_a be_v plain_o set_v down_o if_o he_o may_v have_v make_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n for_o his_o own_o turn_n my_o discourse_n shall_v have_v be_v impertinent_a a_o ruffle_a adversary_n will_v have_v say_v that_o he_o have_v shift_v and_o shuffle_v in_o the_o change_n of_o the_o question_n as_o if_o we_o have_v hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n all_o prime_a controversy_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o there_o need_v be_v any_o it_o do_v and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o against_o they_o but_o he_o think_v he_o have_v devise_v a_o way_n how_o this_o opinion_n may_v be_v make_v good_a that_o the_o scripture_n do_v suffice_v for_o the_o decide_n of_o all_o controversy_n thus_o yet_o the_o scripture_n want_v not_o that_o glory_n of_o be_v sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o imaginable_a controversy_n because_o she_o teach_v we_o that_o christ_n have_v erect_v a_o church_n build_v upon_o a_o rock_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n abide_v with_o she_o to_o teach_v she_o all_o truth_n o_o excellent_a provision_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o scripture_n one_o in_o the_o trent_n council_n as_o i_o remember_v do_v not_o like_a reference_n but_o will_v have_v all_o do_v uniform_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n but_o we_o must_v from_o scripture_n refer_v to_o the_o church_n and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o cardinal_n bellarmin_n that_o be_v ask_v a_o question_n too_o difficult_a say_v he_o can_v not_o tell_v how_o to_o answer_v it_o but_o he_o will_v show_v the_o party_n one_o that_o can_v and_o then_o show_v he_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o excellent_a divine_a so_o the_o scripture_n can_v answer_v all_o controversy_n but_o it_o have_v reputation_n in_o this_o that_o it_o can_v show_v and_o do_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o imaginable_a controversy_n the_o church_n to_o this_o first_o methinks_v then_o if_o it_o be_v but_o for_o this_o use_n the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v more_o common_a to_o the_o laity_n because_o it_o show_v so_o clear_o this_o judge_n second_o let_v they_o show_v unto_o we_o where_o the_o scriptture_v do_v plain_o show_v unto_o we_o this_o judge_n that_o they_o may_v no_o long_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o three_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o why_o the_o church_n do_v not_o determine_v all_o controversy_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o not_o imaginable_a only_o but_o real_a controversy_n as_o concern_v the_o pope_n power_n in_o compare_n with_o a_o council_n and_o concern_v his_o temporal_a power_n and_o concern_v the_o right_a of_o bishop_n concern_v original_a sin_n concern_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n be_v these_o determine_v with_o satisfaction_n to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o council_n four_o do_v the_o scripture_n give_v the_o denomination_n of_o this_o church_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o all_o truth_n that_o shall_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n five_o if_o they_o think_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n do_v abide_v with_o the_o church_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n by_o way_n of_o a_o habitual_a gift_n then_o must_v this_o church_n have_v more_o privilege_n than_o the_o apostle_n have_v for_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n by_o way_n of_o a_o transient_a gift_n and_o therefore_o some_o particular_a question_n they_o do_v not_o decide_v by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o stand_a faculty_n to_o decide_v all_o imaginable_a controversy_n six_o may_v not_o we_o as_o well_o say_v this_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n for_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n that_o it_o send_v we_o to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a and_o clear_a enough_o in_o thing_n of_o necessary_a faith_n this_o honour_n the_o father_n before_o the_o universal_a bishop_n give_v to_o the_o scripture_n the_o romanist_n now_o will_v arrogate_v it_o to_o the_o church_n if_o they_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o competition_n which_o in_o ingenuity_n shall_v carry_v the_o honour_n the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o father_n or_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o romanist_n but_o he_o think_v according_a to_o his_o principle_n he_o be_v not_o engage_v to_o find_v a_o plain_a text_n where_o this_o be_v set_v down_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v decide_v with_o infallible_a authority_n all_o our_o controversy_n because_o according_a to_o they_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o answ_n then_o first_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o and_o we_o must_v account_v it_o no_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n because_o it_o be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o know_v it_o what_o by_o its_o own_o light_n or_o may_v we_o know_v the_o church_n by_o scripture_n and_o not_o the_o infallibility_n which_o be_v the_o privilege_n second_o how_o then_o can_v he_o say_v by_o scripture_n that_o god_n have_v provide_v a_o way_n so_o direct_v that_o fool_n can_v err_v three_o if_o he_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o clear_a text_n which_o show_v this_o privilege_n of_o and_o our_o duty_n to_o the_o church_n than_o the_o disputation_n be_v at_o a_o end_n for_o he_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o i_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o cause_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o and_o if_o he_o say_v we_o must_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v the_o question_n four_o therefore_o be_v we_o in_o this_o agree_v which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n of_o the_o question_n namely_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o plain_o set_v it_o down_o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o decide_v with_o infallible_a authority_n all_o our_o controversy_n for_o if_o it_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o we_o also_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o as_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o though_o it_o will_v not_o therefore_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n simple_o because_o it_o be_v plain_o deliver_v all_o necessary_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o according_a to_o our_o opinion_n but_o all_o that_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n ex_fw-la natura_fw-la principii_fw-la and_o then_o five_o if_o he_o doubt_v of_o this_o point_n as_o to_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n than_o his_o principle_n be_v less_o capable_a of_o certainty_n than_o we_o for_o he_o have_v no_o ground_n certain_a of_o his_o faith_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n because_o if_o the_o church_n do_v ground_v her_o infallibility_n upon_o her_o own_o authority_n contradistinct_o to_o scripture_n she_o can_v not_o by_o her_o own_o authority_n contradistinct_o to_o scripture_n prove_v that_o she_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o yet_o neither_o have_v the_o church_n or_o their_o church_n for_o aught_o i_o have_v read_v in_o any_o of_o their_o council_n determine_v itself_o by_o scripture_n or_o otherwise_o infallible_a to_o the_o decision_n of_o all_o imaginable_a controversy_n nay_o neither_o do_v bellarmin_n or_o stapleton_n if_o i_o be_v not_o mistake_v assert_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o extent_n therefore_o my_o adversary_n in_o this_o walk_v alone_o yet_o he_o say_v the_o text_n he_o will_v produce_v hereafter_o be_v a_o hundred_o time_n more_o clear_a that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o decide_v all_o our_o controversy_n than_o
that_o it_o be_v not_o argumentative_a to_o other_o and_o therefore_o as_o to_o the_o question_n about_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n mr._n hooker_n say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o notwithstanding_o he_o think_v this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o itself_o yet_o in_o his_o first_o book_n 34._o p._n he_o speak_v enough_o in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n do_v sufficient_o direct_v we_o to_o salvation_n and_o he_o quote_v for_o it_o sotus_n in_o the_o margin_n and_o if_o it_o sufficient_o direct_v we_o to_o salvation_n then_o must_v it_o be_v sufficient_o clear_a of_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o principal_a point_n unto_o salvation_n must_v be_v know_v otherwise_o and_o if_o they_o think_v to_o argue_v well_o that_o we_o must_v have_v all_o faith_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o we_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v as_o well_o conclude_v that_o since_o we_o have_v sufficient_a direction_n to_o salvation_n from_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v also_o sufficient_o direct_v to_o this_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yea_o more_o the_o scripture_n do_v give_v better_a evidence_n of_o itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o church_n can_v give_v testimony_n of_o itself_o to_o be_v infallible_a because_o the_o church_n as_o such_o in_o religion_n be_v a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la without_o scripture_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o but_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o exception_n against_o i_o in_o vary_v from_o other_o this_o be_v the_o common_a protestant_a principle_n or_o else_o stapleton_n be_v decieve_v who_o make_v account_n that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o ad_fw-la unum_fw-la do_v hold_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v know_v per_fw-la se_fw-la et_fw-la sva_fw-la quadam_fw-la luce_fw-fr propria_fw-la principionem_fw-la in_o analsiy_a principionem_fw-la therefore_o if_o the_o question_n be_v how_o we_o be_v private_o assure_v ultimate_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o say_v with_o stapleton_n that_o we_o be_v assure_v hereof_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o the_o question_n be_v how_o we_o prove_v it_o to_o other_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o can_v for_o extrinsecall_v proof_n make_v use_n with_o mr._n chillingworth_n of_o universal_a tradition_n his_o exception_n then_o against_o our_o private_a assurance_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o his_o follow_a word_n come_v to_o nothing_o for_o we_o need_v not_o from_o what_o we_o have_v say_v say_v that_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n be_v evident_a as_o to_o a_o object_n of_o sense_n but_o yet_o the_o assent_n may_v be_v more_o firm_a and_o certain_a the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v inevident_a yet_o may_v we_o more_o fast_o hold_v to_o what_o we_o believe_v than_o to_o what_o we_o see_v because_o what_o we_o see_v depend_v upon_o our_o fallible_a sense_n but_o what_o we_o believe_v have_v a_o infallible_a ground_n namely_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o this_o be_v his_o word_n for_o this_o ultimate_o must_v settle_v our_o personal_a faith_n or_o else_o we_o have_v no_o faith_n of_o proper_a name_n which_o be_v infallible_o ground_v all_o believe_v that_o what_o god_n say_v be_v true_a but_o if_o to_o the_o question_n whether_o god_n say_v this_o god_n can_v bring_v his_o own_o testimony_n there_o can_v be_v no_o authentic_a ground_n of_o religion_n in_o subjecto_fw-la and_o those_o therefore_o who_o will_v not_o have_v die_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o a_o thing_n of_o sense_n have_v die_v to_o bear_v testimony_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o also_o have_v die_v for_o it_o assure_o ex_fw-la vi_fw-la habitus_fw-la by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n not_o ex_fw-la vi_fw-la traditionis_fw-la by_o the_o credibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o to_o that_o which_o he_o take_v ●●●tice_n of_o that_o i_o acknowledge_v a_o great_a necessity_n of_o such_o a_o church_n to_o declare_v by_o infallible_a authority_n which_o book_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n which_o not_o than_o to_o declare_v any_o other_o point_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o very_o ingenuous_o take_v here_o by_o he_o what_o i_o say_v for_o i_o speak_v by_o way_n of_o supposition_n that_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a as_o to_o propose_v or_o tax_v and_o consign_v canonical_a book_n as_o stapleton_n speak_v yet_o that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o church_n infallible_o to_o propose_v every_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n he_o it_o seem_v take_v positive_o what_o be_v speak_v upon_o supposition_n every_o thing_n which_o be_v give_v in_o discourse_n be_v not_o grant_v to_o he_o but_o this_o he_o refer_v to_o num_fw-la 43._o for_o the_o end_n then_o of_o this_o paragraph_n and_o sufficient_o for_o the_o controversy_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n it_o remain_v that_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v credible_a for_o itself_o or_o else_o the_o church_n not_o the_o church_n that_o must_v be_v know_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o before_o therefore_o those_o text_n by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o infallibility_n must_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o themselves_o or_o not_o if_o so_o then_o why_o not_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o we_o have_v our_o purpose_n if_o not_o then_o be_v we_o in_o a_o circle_n and_o must_v beg_v the_o question_n and_o never_o be_v satisfy_v 22._o num._n 22._o here_o another_o argument_n be_v draw_v against_o i_o from_o the_o effect_n negative_o which_o in_o the_o kind_n of_o it_o do_v not_o conclude_v a_o non_fw-la esse_fw-la ad_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la and_o we_o may_v as_o well_o argue_v that_o some_o have_v this_o way_n attain_v faith_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o way_n however_o the_o possibility_n proceed_v from_o the_o effect_n to_o 〈◊〉_d but_o it_o do_v not_o proceed_v against_o a_o possibility_n from_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o to_o some_o because_o pighius_fw-la and_o hermannus_n have_v not_o find_v assurance_n this_o way_n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o the_o way_n for_o final_a assurance_n be_v inconsequent_a second_o the_o cause_n of_o non-assurance_n thus_o do_v not_o arise_v from_o the_o defect_n in_o scripture_n which_o stapleton_n say_v and_o some_o other_o be_v true_a and_o holy_a and_o authentic_a but_o god_n do_v not_o give_v by_o his_o spirit_n faith_n to_o all_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n as_o common_o we_o expound_v it_o and_o though_o they_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n yet_o by_o a_o internal_a act_n of_o faith_n many_o not_o three_o neither_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o maintain_v this_o proposition_n of_o they_o facienti_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la datur_fw-la gratia_fw-la ex_fw-la congruo_fw-la and_o therefore_o if_o upon_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n they_o have_v not_o this_o divine_a faith_n infuse_v it_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o our_o cause_n for_o not_o only_a gift_n be_v gratiae_fw-la gratis_o datae_fw-la but_o also_o the_o gratiae_fw-la gratum_fw-la facientes_fw-la be_v also_o free_o give_v and_o therefore_o be_v their_o distinction_n by_o the_o way_n faulty_a and_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v many_o million_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o than_o he_o can_v know_v who_o can_v true_o and_o sincere_o protest_v before_o god_n and_o take_v it_o upon_o their_o salvation_n that_o they_o be_v whole_o unable_a by_o the_o read_n these_o book_n to_o come_v to_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n that_o this_o be_v god_n word_n this_o infer_v nothing_o of_o moment_n against_o we_o because_o although_o we_o have_v not_o ordinary_o the_o effect_n without_o the_o mean_n yet_o because_o we_o use_v the_o mean_n therefore_o necessary_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o effect_n do_v not_o follow_v if_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v free_a yea_o fourthly_a those_o million_o he_o mean_n be_v of_o their_o church_n we_o may_v suppose_v and_o they_o we_o may_v think_v be_v instruct_v to_o find_v no_o resolution_n but_o in_o their_o own_o way_n by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o as_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 10.3_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o righteousness_n have_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n so_o also_o may_v we_o say_v of_o these_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o point_n have_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n yea_o five_o and_o last_o to_o be_v even_o
or_o in_o a_o high_a kind_n nothing_o be_v more_o credible_a for_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o disprove_v make_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o prudent_o credible_a but_o necessary_o and_o in_o the_o way_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o that_o which_o be_v prudent_o credible_a do_v not_o include_v this_o but_o this_o eminent_o include_v that_o which_o be_v prudentiall_a credibility_n yet_o he_o go_v on_o yet_o here_o i_o entreat_v you_o to_o mark_v how_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n then_o etc._n etc._n namely_o in_o the_o space_n of_o the_o 200_o year_n and_o more_o wherein_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o tradition_n to_o make_v they_o give_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o their_o church_n ans_fw-fr this_o i_o have_v mark_v and_o not_o precarious_o but_o what_o shall_v i_o see_v in_o it_o that_o will_v give_v a_o sober_a man_n any_o satisfaction_n for_o first_o what_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a because_o god_n say_v it_o by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n because_o it_o say_v that_o it_o have_v commission_n from_o god_n be_v authorize_v with_o infallibility_n and_o do_v also_o believe_v this_o because_o the_o church_n say_v so_o and_o why_o so_o because_o they_o will_v do_v so_o what_o of_o all_o this_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o infallible_o assure_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o they_o do_v believe_v indeed_o in_o way_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n than_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v assure_v they_o by_o tradition_n for_o otherwise_o they_o forsake_v the_o ancient_a theological_a account_n of_o faith_n and_o they_o must_v either_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o habit_n infuse_v or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o habit_n infuse_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o if_o they_o believe_v improper_o or_o in_o the_o way_n of_o humane_a faith_n as_o we_o do_v believe_v there_o be_v seven_o hill_n at_o rome_n without_o universal_a tradition_n or_o a_o miracle_n than_o this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o discourse_n be_v peccant_a in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o elench_v we_o can_v say_v as_o much_o without_o contradiction_n to_o our_o cause_n second_o they_o can_v sure_o expect_v that_o we_o shall_v gratify_v they_o so_o much_o as_o to_o say_v there_o be_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o believe_v tradition_n now_o as_o then_o because_o now_o they_o themselves_o will_v say_v that_o we_o have_v the_o benefit_n of_o what_o assurance_n the_o general_a council_n can_v make_v and_o also_o 3._o we_o must_v here_o note_v out_o of_o their_o own_o word_n for_o the_o use_n of_o our_o cause_n that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 200_o year_n and_o more_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o tradition_n to_o make_v they_o give_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o their_o church_n so_o then_o for_o the_o same_o space_n they_o have_v not_o the_o coroboration_n of_o general_a council_n and_o therefore_o these_o do_v not_o make_v the_o reason_n of_o belief_n simple_o as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o because_o the_o church_n be_v so_o long_o without_o they_o 4._o though_o the_o universal_a comprehend_v particular_n yet_o a_o particular_a do_v not_o comprehend_v a_o universal_a therefore_o whatsoever_o assent_n be_v due_a to_o tradition_n universal_a be_v not_o due_a to_o tradition_n particular_a of_o rome_n this_o be_v their_o trick_n to_o build_v all_o upon_o the_o common_a ground_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o then_o to_o enclose_v the_o universal_a church_n within_o the_o wall_n of_o rome_n this_o we_o must_v enter_v our_o plea_n against_o upon_o all_o occasion_n 5._o we_o see_v they_o be_v come_v off_o unto_o some_o latitude_n in_o their_o conception_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o last_o resolution_n in_o this_o quest_n of_o faith_n they_o make_v to_o be_v thus_o and_o they_o will_v do_v so_o because_o they_o will_v do_v so_o and_o again_o because_o it_o have_v be_v more_o folly_n not_o to_o accept_v of_o this_o church_n commission_n to_o teach_v they_o infallible_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o now_o the_o acquiscence_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o deep_a mystery_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v terminate_v and_o determine_v upon_o rhe_n variable_a point_n and_o principle_n of_o prudence_n and_o that_o which_o must_v eterna_o settle_v our_o mind_n in_o the_o first_o and_o last_o ground_n of_o infallibility_n must_v be_v this_o we_o do_v so_o because_o we_o will_v do_v so_o or_o because_o it_o be_v folly_n not_o to_o believe_v so_o then_o since_o currente_n rota_fw-la the_o discourse_n be_v come_v to_o this_o let_v we_o have_v our_o liberty_n to_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v believe_v because_o we_o see_v it_o to_o be_v folly_n for_o aught_o can_v be_v see_v by_o they_o to_o accept_v the_o church_n commission_n to_o teach_v infallible_o all_o truth_n six_o if_o they_o say_v all_o truth_n than_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v fall_v from_o their_o former_a concession_n and_o also_o stapleton_n that_o some_o truth_n may_v be_v believe_v without_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n seven_o as_o for_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o they_o insist_v in_o to_o have_v be_v believe_v because_o god_n say_v it_o by_o the_o church_n we_o say_v easy_o that_o this_o might_n with_o less_o difficulty_n be_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v sure_o probable_a and_o some_o will_v say_v demonstrable_a by_o reason_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o only_o assert_v by_o plato_n who_o may_v have_v it_o from_o the_o jew_n by_o redundance_n in_o egypt_n whither_o he_o and_o pythagoras_n and_o some_o other_o travel_v for_o wisdom_n as_o justin_n martyr_n witness_v but_o also_o in_o effect_n as_o i_o think_v by_o aristotle_n and_o also_o here_o certain_o they_o must_v be_v put_v to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o else_o his_o word_n be_v not_o true_a or_o else_o pope_n john_n the_o 22._o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n for_o he_o do_v not_o commend_v to_o other_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o yet_o he_o go_v on_o which_o commission_n to_o teach_v they_o infallible_o all_o truth_n they_o know_v by_o tradition_n to_o have_v be_v ever_o accept_v as_o divine_a by_o all_o good_a people_n this_o reason_n if_o i_o may_v say_v so_o be_v sure_o full_a of_o itself_o but_o not_o solid_a for_o it_o do_v in_o effect_n run_v round_o again_o and_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o church_n for_o they_o make_v all_o good_a people_n to_o be_v convertible_a with_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o make_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a but_o how_o then_o be_v the_o church_n regula_n regulata_fw-la the_o rule_n rule_v as_o have_v be_v confess_v before_o second_o must_v we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o this_o in_o the_o grand_a concernment_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o church_n do_v accept_v this_o commission_n as_o divine_a which_o we_o know_v by_o tradition_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v this_o tradition_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n before_o we_o know_v the_o church_n be_v they_o advise_v of_o this_o then_o must_v we_o come_v to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o doctrine_n before_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o doctrine_n we_o must_v be_v assure_v of_o independent_o of_o the_o church_n because_o we_o can_v know_v the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n too_o as_o s._n austin_n discourse_v against_o the_o donatist_n three_o if_o all_o good_a people_n know_v by_o tradition_n this_o commission_n to_o be_v divine_a than_o my_o adversary_n need_v not_o to_o have_v pinch_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n so_o as_o to_o have_v say_v they_o believe_v because_o they_o will_v do_v so_o or_o because_o it_o have_v be_v mere_a folly_n not_o to_o accept_v this_o commission_n for_o though_o universal_a tradition_n can_v transcend_v its_o sphere_n unto_o a_o causality_n of_o proper_a faith_n divine_a yet_o have_v it_o more_o reason_n in_o it_o than_o to_o make_v a_o general_a belief_n arbitrary_a or_o to_o preserve_v the_o act_n of_o it_o from_o folly_n in_o the_o negative_a a_o divine_a assurance_n will_v not_o be_v compare_v with_o a_o negative_a prudence_n but_o universal_a tradition_n do_v surpass_v it_o we_o have_v best_a then_o compound_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o himself_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o division_n thus_o negative_a prudence_n be_v suitable_a to_o his_o former_a proof_n aqua_fw-la ascendit_fw-la quantum_fw-la descendit_fw-la but_o divine_a assurance_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o urge_v by_o tradition_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o question_n for_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n be_v such_o as_o cvi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la falsum_fw-la in_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o
and_o none_o but_o this_o from_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o scripture_n have_v no_o colour_n or_o shadow_n of_o scripture_n or_o any_o thing_n like_o scripture_n you_o must_v therefore_o ground_v your_o faith_n not_o upon_o scripture_n but_o upon_o reason_n now_o the_o reason_n upon_o which_o you_o reject_v the_o scripture_n be_v because_o you_o have_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o external_a infallible_a judge_n ever_o since_o the_o whole_a canon_n be_v finish_v and_o for_o this_o only_a reason_n without_o any_o text_n you_o put_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n to_o expire_v and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n even_o after_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o canon_n now_o if_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o you_o discard_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n be_v this_o because_o all_o point_n be_v not_o sufficient_o clear_v by_o scripture_n than_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o prudent_a reason_n for_o which_o you_o in_o this_o one_o point_n may_v suppose_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a than_o this_o that_o that_o one_o point_n namely_o that_o we_o be_v to_o repair_v to_o the_o church_n for_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n can_v be_v infallible_o ascertain_v by_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o great_a necessity_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n undoubted_o infallible_a in_o all_o point_n which_o do_v not_o causal_o bring_v forth_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n let_v i_o put_v they_o to_o it_o do_v the_o scripture_n bring_v forth_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n or_o do_v it_o not_o if_o it_o do_v not_o what_o hold_v have_v they_o for_o the_o church_n and_o why_o do_v they_o make_v use_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o give_v letter_n of_o credence_n to_o the_o church_n if_o it_o do_v than_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o this_o controversy_n now_o the_o two_o inference_n he_o will_v have_v i_o mark_v as_o clear_o deduce_v from_o my_o principle_n be_v ground_v but_o upon_o a_o supposition_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v mark_v but_o return_v upon_o his_o concession_n first_o that_o all_o point_n necessary_a be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n for_o no_o point_n more_o necessary_a than_o this_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o come_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o this_o point_n be_v not_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n nor_o that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a obscure_o yea_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n send_v we_o to_o the_o church_n the_o universal_a church_n do_v send_v we_o to_o the_o infallible_a scripture_n for_o our_o necessary_a direction_n and_o this_o will_v give_v they_o satisfaction_n if_o it_o can_v serve_v their_o turn_n moreover_o the_o second_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v have_v i_o mark_v halt_v upon_o the_o same_o unequal_a ground_n of_o suppose_v i_o to_o affirm_v what_o be_v but_o suppose_v yet_o also_o we_o can_v send_v it_o home_o again_o and_o i_o can_v say_v that_o their_o former_a concession_n speak_v of_o before_o do_v overthrow_v that_o principle_n which_o be_v the_o groundwork_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o if_o there_o be_v a_o great_a necessity_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n in_o thing_n necessary_a for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v this_o one_o point_n of_o the_o church_n because_o this_o one_o point_n in_o particular_a be_v less_o clear_a of_o itself_o that_o grand_a principle_n of_o they_o which_o be_v or_o must_v be_v their_o principle_n evident_o appear_v false_a namely_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v evident_o see_v by_o its_o own_o light_n which_o must_v be_v or_o else_o they_o be_v all_o undo_v and_o again_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a necessity_n on_o the_o one_o side_n to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v infallible_a by_o itself_o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n this_o point_n of_o all_o other_o point_n have_v this_o particular_a privilege_n to_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o it_o bear_v witness_v of_o itself_o that_o it_o carry_v its_o own_o light_n with_o it_o so_o they_o may_v see_v what_o they_o get_v by_o take_v a_o supposition_n for_o a_o affirmation_n tacitus_n rule_n be_v good_a let_v nothing_o be_v think_v prosperous_a which_o be_v not_o ingenuous_a some_o other_o line_n he_o have_v in_o this_o section_n to_o tell_v i_o what_o he_o have_v do_v before_o and_o i_o have_v undo_v but_o as_o to_o a_o passage_n which_o i_o use_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n to_o confirm_v a_o dilemma_n which_o he_o tell_v i_o here_o that_o he_o have_v break_v before_o lest_o the_o contrary_n shall_v have_v be_v better_o discern_v upon_o the_o place_n he_o refer_v i_o to_o bellarmin_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o in_o fine_a as_o much_o as_o i_o can_v read_v the_o hand_n i_o make_v use_v of_o bellarmin_n against_o new_a revelation_n beside_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o church_n for_o itself_o because_o we_o can_v believe_v it_o but_o by_o a_o revelation_n and_o no_o revelation_n beside_o scripture_n as_o he_o dispute_v against_o the_o anabaptist_n for_o my_o answer_n he_o put_v i_o off_o to_o the_o former_a place_n i_o think_v in_o the_o end_n and_o there_o be_v little_a to_o the_o business_n he_o say_v indeed_o in_o the_o end_n that_o we_o do_v receive_v the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a book_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o of_o old_a it_o be_v lay_v out_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n et_fw-la certam_fw-la ac_fw-la stabilem_fw-la regulam_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o the_o certain_a and_o stable_a rule_n of_o faith_n now_o i_o hope_v these_o latter_a word_n be_v for_o we_o for_o if_o these_o word_n be_v take_v in_o their_o just_a and_o full_a sense_n than_o the_o cause_n be_v we_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o certain_a and_o stable_a rule_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o must_v be_v clear_a otherwise_o how_o be_v it_o a_o certain_a rule_n and_o therefore_o no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n and_o it_o must_v be_v sufficient_a always_o otherwise_o how_o be_v it_o a_o stable_a rule_n and_o so_o it_o exclude_v tradition_n but_o sure_o that_o be_v not_o the_o chapter_n because_o my_o adversary_n say_v in_o that_o place_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n in_o particular_a which_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o first_o that_o chapter_n where_o he_o particular_o speak_v of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v the_o fifteen_o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n neither_o thus_o he_o put_v i_o to_o the_o hunt_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v at_o a_o loss_n well_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v sure_o in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n where_o at_o the_o end_n he_o answer_v as_o my_o adversary_n do_v to_o s._n jeroms_n authority_n against_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n but_o this_o be_v beside_o the_o butt_n for_o that_o which_o i_o look_v for_o to_o be_v answer_v out_o of_o bellarmin_n be_v the_o other_o point_n of_o no_o revelation_n beside_o scripture_n it_o be_v true_a that_o i_o do_v in_o the_o same_o place_n name_n bellarmine_n as_o relate_v s._n jeroms_n differ_v from_o my_o adversary_n about_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o why_o shall_v i_o expect_v a_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n in_o this_o testimony_n when_o he_o produce_v it_o only_o that_o he_o may_v refute_v it_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v have_v have_v satisfaction_n in_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n be_v speak_v by_o he_o out_o of_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o again_o why_o do_v not_o my_o adversary_n save_v i_o the_o labour_n of_o look_v up_o and_o down_o for_o the_o passage_n by_o give_v i_o the_o entire_a word_n of_o the_o cardinal_n there_o i_o may_v have_v think_v my_o adversary_n will_v have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o prove_v rather_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o he_o think_v it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o i_o shall_v find_v the_o place_n because_o there_o be_v some_o adjacent_a word_n which_o i_o can_v improve_v he_o say_v jerome_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n quia_fw-la nondum_fw-la generale_fw-mi concilium_fw-la de_fw-fr his_o libris_fw-la aliquid_fw-la statuerat_fw-la excepto_fw-la libro_fw-la judith_n quem_fw-la etiam_fw-la hieronymus_n postea_fw-la recepit_fw-la mark_v the_o word_n because_o the_o general_n council_n have_v not_o yet_o determine_v any_o thing_n of_o those_o book_n except_o the_o book_n of_o judith_n which_o also_o afterward_o s._n jerome_n receive_v so_o than_o it_o seem_v a_o general_n council_n have_v before_o take_v these_o book_n into_o consideration_n namely_o that_o of_o toby_n and_o judith_n and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o determine_v nothing_o but_o
intend_v by_o god_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v fomal_o any_o judge_n but_o we_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o full_o and_o so_o plain_o set_v down_o thing_n necessary_a so_o full_o and_o so_o plain_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n for_o more_o matter_n or_o of_o infallible_a judge_n for_o more_o clear_a proposal_n of_o thing_n necessary_a so_o that_o this_o which_o he_o say_v be_v peccant_a in_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o elench_v he_o say_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o manifest_a that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v a_o book_n as_o perfect_a as_o can_v be_v for_o the_o intent_n for_o which_o god_n make_v it_o this_o we_o may_v take_v for_o his_o proposition_n then_o bellarmin_n as_o before_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v our_o rule_n against_o the_o aanbaptist_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n but_o elsewhere_o bellarmin_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v but_o our_o commonitory_n then_o why_o do_v he_o dispute_v it_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n against_o the_o aanbaptist_n whereas_o then_o my_o adversary_n will_v return_v the_o disgrace_n to_o scripture_n upon_o i_o he_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v i_o for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v nor_o be_v bind_v to_o say_v that_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n be_v plain_o decide_v by_o scripture_n alone_o and_z that_o god_n intend_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o plain_a decision_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o we_o deny_v his_o consequence_n that_o since_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v any_o text_n of_o scripture_n decide_v many_o and_o most_o important_a controversy_n this_o in_o effect_n be_v to_o say_v god_n perform_v very_o insufficient_o what_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v by_o scripture_n first_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n be_v plain_o decide_v by_o scripture_n for_o we_o say_v no_o controversy_n be_v necessary_a in_o point_n of_o necessary_a faith_n he_o put_v in_o necessary_a controversy_n for_o necessary_a truth_n we_o say_v the_o scripture_n plain_o propose_v all_o necessary_a truth_n and_o he_o will_v bring_v we_o in_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n plain_o decide_v all_o necessary_a contoversy_n and_o therefore_o how_o can_v he_o say_v that_o we_o say_v god_n intend_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o plain_a decision_n of_o they_o 2._o therefore_o we_o deny_v those_o point_n to_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o clear_o propose_v in_o scripture_n 3._o whereas_o they_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v propose_v upon_o god_n intention_n the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o can_v show_v any_o text_n wherein_o this_o be_v clear_o deliver_v they_o do_v dishonour_n god_n and_o scripture_n and_o they_o dishonour_v god_n by_o accuse_v of_o scripture_n as_o nilus_n before_o in_o this_o number_n he_o hold_v the_o conclusion_n that_o expression_n of_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a in_o way_n of_o prophecy_n or_o type_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a mean_n of_o direction_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o than_o that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n but_o nothing_o be_v answer_v to_o my_o answer_n about_o it_o and_o do_v he_o think_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o manner_n of_o expression_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o their_o own_o language_n or_o that_o david_n do_v not_o bear_v the_o type_n of_o christ_n how_o else_o be_v they_o save_v in_o the_o time_n before_o christ_n and_o be_v the_o exact_a sense_n of_o every_o expression_n or_o type_n necessary_a such_o exception_n do_v not_o weigh_v and_o then_o again_o if_o there_o have_v be_v need_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n for_o a_o infallible_a illumination_n of_o dark_a expression_n then_o if_o so_o dato_fw-la non_fw-la concesso_fw-la what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o old_a testament_n reveal_v 54._o n_o 54._o to_o pass_v by_o any_o slip_n in_o the_o former_a number_n by_o the_o scribe_n or_o otherwise_o we_o come_v to_o this_o paragr_n wherein_o he_o be_v not_o please_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o what_o be_v reply_v about_o the_o several_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o he_o will_v here_o corroborate_v his_o argument_n with_o dr._n tailer_n judgement_n in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v and_o he_o say_v he_o think_v i_o not_o to_o be_v so_o much_o esteem_v among_o our_o own_o clergy_n or_o laity_n as_o he_o i_o confess_v it_o neque_fw-la de_fw-la i_o quisquam_fw-la vilius_fw-la sentit_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la as_o one_o say_v but_o though_o this_o be_v very_o true_a that_o my_o authority_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o rational_a for_o my_o adversary_n to_o diminish_v i_o because_o it_o make_v a_o prejudice_n to_o his_o cause_n that_o so_o weak_a a_o man_n can_v oppose_v it_o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v spare_v he_o in_o this_o kind_n let_v my_o adversary_n be_v the_o champion_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a author_n he_o name_v be_v not_o always_o please_v with_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v in_o that_o book_n and_o yet_o also_o we_o can_v grant_v what_o be_v say_v by_o the_o doctor_n who_o do_v not_o say_v that_o no_o argument_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n but_o from_o those_o scripture_n which_o have_v many_o sense_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o those_o text_n which_o have_v many_o sense_n do_v contain_v point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o do_v he_o say_v that_o if_o they_o do_v contain_v point_n necessary_a they_o be_v not_o elsewhere_o explain_v by_o more_o clear_a text_n or_o may_v be_v explain_v for_o so_o he_o shall_v disagree_v from_o st._n austin_n as_o before_o but_o to_o say_v no_o more_o let_v the_o doctor_n have_v the_o honour_n with_o all_o my_o heart_n of_o the_o umpirage_n of_o the_o controversy_n in_o the_o example_n which_o my_o adversary_n have_v put_v take_v for_o a_o example_n those_o four_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n indeed_o some_o there_o be_v which_o will_v have_v five_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o also_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o he_o may_v exceed_v in_o his_o number_n of_o interpretation_n of_o these_o word_n unless_o he_o take_v in_o their_o own_o many_o difference_n hereabout_o in_o the_o manner_n and_o time_n of_o the_o conversion_n they_o will_v hardly_o come_v up_o to_o two_o hundred_o divers_a interpretation_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v speak_v in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n and_o not_o in_o their_o natural_a sense_n we_o can_v answer_v that_o we_o do_v deny_v the_o literal_a sense_n and_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o figurative_a sense_n may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o good_a sort_n natural_a to_o the_o sacramental_a use_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o much_o more_o may_v be_v say_v herein_o but_o let_v this_o point_n be_v compromise_v to_o the_o doctor_n in_o that_o excellent_a book_n which_o he_o have_v late_o write_v on_o purpose_n he_o say_v all_o that_o i_o can_v say_v and_o more_o here_o he_o will_v make_v good_a another_o argument_n of_o his_o the_o scripture_n use_v the_o imperative_fw-it mood_n as_o well_o when_o it_o counsel_v as_o when_o it_o command_v he_n ask_v now_o what_o infallible_a mean_n we_o have_v to_o know_v what_o be_v recommend_v to_o we_o as_o a_o counsel_n or_o as_o a_o precept_n to_o be_v keep_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n we_o answer_v first_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o counsel_n to_o be_v right_a and_o sound_a yet_o be_v they_o in_o no_o great_a danger_n by_o the_o uncertainty_n whether_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v propose_v by_o way_n of_o counsel_n or_o precept_n since_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o great_a perfection_n to_o perform_v a_o counsel_n therefore_o if_o they_o take_v a_o thing_n of_o counsel_n for_o a_o thing_n of_o command_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n sure_o in_o do_v more_o than_o they_o be_v simple_o command_v to_o so_o than_o if_o this_o be_v all_o it_o will_v be_v no_o such_o difficulty_n as_o to_o practice_v because_o if_o they_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v propose_v pro_fw-la imperio_fw-la in_o the_o imperative_fw-it mood_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n if_o it_o be_v command_v it_o be_v necessary_a if_o counsel_v there_o be_v great_a perfection_n and_o a_o accidental_a reward_n above_o the_o essential_a god_n can_v distinguish_v which_o be_v which_o though_o they_o can_v and_o sure_o will_n if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a reward_v they_o according_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o
effect_n christians_n though_o not_o in_o denomination_n that_o which_o follow_v be_v cast_v in_o by_o i_o ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la and_o not_o as_o such_o a_o decretory_a argument_n namely_o beside_o what_o may_v be_v suppose_v by_o the_o baptism_n of_o whole_a family_n and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v say_v it_o be_v no_o evident_a consequence_n it_o be_v never_o intend_v for_o such_o valeat_fw-la quantum_fw-la valere_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v as_o probable_a or_o more_o that_o in_o all_o those_o family_n complexive_o there_o be_v some_o at_o least_o if_o but_o one_o or_o two_o infant_n this_o consequence_n i_o think_v i_o may_v say_v be_v better_a than_o any_o they_o have_v give_v we_o to_o prove_v their_o infallibility_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o number_n he_o say_v i_o insist_v not_o upon_o the_o authority_n i_o allege_v out_o of_o st._n austin_n st._n chrys_n because_o i_o deal_v with_o one_o who_o little_o regard_v authority_n confess_v to_o be_v the_o father_n ans_fw-fr he_o may_v first_o have_v answer_v what_o i_o say_v to_o his_o citation_n of_o st._n austin_n but_o it_o seem_v by_o his_o neglect_n either_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o for_o he_o or_o he_o not_o for_o the_o father_n or_o indeed_o both_o and_o the_o latter_a because_o the_o former_a he_o be_v not_o for_o the_o father_n because_o they_o be_v not_o for_o he_o and_o let_v they_o consider_v that_o of_o st._n austin_n in_o his_o 4._o b._n de_fw-fr bap._n contra_fw-la don._n 28._o ch_n tamen_fw-la veraciter_fw-la conjicere_fw-la possumus_fw-la quid_fw-la valeat_fw-la in_o parvulis_fw-la baptismi_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la ex_fw-la circumcisione_n carnis_fw-la quam_fw-la prio_fw-la populus_fw-la accepit_fw-la notwithstanding_o we_o may_v true_o guess_v what_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n do_v avail_v in_o infant_n out_o of_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o the_o former_a people_n receive_v and_o bellarmin_n must_v think_v scripture_n good_a against_o anabaptist_n but_o not_o for_o we_o against_o they_o who_o make_v better_a use_n of_o it_o as_o a_o tradition_n 62._o n._n 62._o and_o now_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o long_a chap._n as_o he_o say_v himself_o and_o i_o say_v so_o too_o but_o it_o may_v have_v be_v make_v short_a by_o he_o by_o half_a he_o say_v he_o conclude_v as_o i_o will_v have_v he_o namely_o that_o these_o point_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n he_o say_v now_o this_o i_o prove_v by_o this_o argument_n this_o point_n and_o all_o the_o former_a be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n but_o we_o can_v believe_v any_o point_n with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n unless_o it_o be_v determine_v by_o infallible_a authority_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o determine_v these_o point_n then_o since_o no_o other_o infallible_a authority_n can_v be_v find_v on_o earth_n if_o we_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a her_o authority_n must_v needs_o be_v infallible_a ans_fw-fr after_o a_o long_a chap._n to_o make_v his_o word_n good_a he_o make_v as_o long_o a_o argument_n which_o may_v have_v be_v put_v into_o two_o line_n but_o part_n of_o his_o book_n be_v to_o be_v length_n but_o we_o answer_v in_o short_a first_o to_o the_o major_a proposition_n if_o he_o mean_v when_o they_o be_v believe_v they_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n we_o grant_v it_o or_o when_o they_o be_v clear_o propose_v be_v so_o to_o be_v believe_v we_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v it_o thus_o that_o this_o point_n and_o all_o the_o former_a be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n it_o be_v deny_v and_o he_o have_v not_o nor_o can_v prove_v it_o 2._o as_o to_o his_o assume_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o determine_v these_o point_n we_o say_v first_o that_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v necessary_a they_o be_v determine_v in_o scripture_n and_o 2._o they_o be_v not_o so_o clear_o determine_v in_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a and_o yet_o we_o may_v say_v as_o st._n austin_n in_o such_o a_o case_n about_o intellectual_a vision_n lib._n 12_o de_fw-la gen_fw-la ad_fw-la literam_fw-la cap._n 25_o aliud_fw-la est_fw-la errare_fw-la in_o his_o quae_fw-la videt_fw-la aliud_fw-la errare_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la videt_fw-la we_o do_v not_o err_v in_o see_v they_o in_o scripture_n but_o we_o do_v err_v because_o we_o do_v not_o see_v they_o to_o end_v then_o scotus_n propose_v this_o question_n note_n as_o mr._n hooker_n note_n utrùm_fw-la cognitio_fw-la supernaturalis_fw-la necessaria_fw-la viatori_fw-la sit_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la tradita_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la whether_o supernatural_a knowledge_n necessary_a to_o a_o travailler_n be_v sufficient_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o he_o conclude_v affirmative_o and_o so_o may_v we_o 3._o and_o for_o overplus_n if_o these_o point_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v easy_o dato_fw-la non_fw-la concesso_fw-la remove_v they_o from_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o try_v they_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o all_o place_n and_o time_n with_o which_o universal_a church_n the_o roman_a be_v not_o convert_v and_o by_o which_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v convert_v chap._n iu._n the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a judge_n the_o first_o number_n be_v a_o preface_n depend_v upon_o hope_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n but_o to_o this_o we_o say_v nothing_o save_v only_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v reward_v for_o such_o hope_n unless_o they_o can_v prove_v their_o word_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n first_o those_o word_n matthew_n 16.19_o speak_v to_o st._n peter_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o allow_v the_o church_n a_o security_n from_o ever_o admit_v any_o doctrine_n so_o pernicious_a that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v prevail_v against_o she_o ans_fw-fr first_o though_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o st._n peter_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o st._n peter_n exclusive_o to_o the_o rest_n and_o then_o the_o father_n as_o before_o understand_v it_o of_o his_o faith_n not_o of_o his_o person_n and_o of_o his_o faith_n objective_o not_o subjective_o and_o then_o 3._o this_o respect_v not_o only_o the_o church_n repraesentative_a but_o the_o church_n formal_a against_o which_o principal_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o prevail_v and_o so_o the_o word_n run_v handsome_o for_o the_o church_n that_o the_o word_n allow_v the_o church_n security_n from_o ever_o admit_v any_o doctrine_n so_o pernicious_a that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v prevail_v against_o she_o and_o therefore_o upon_o these_o consideration_n we_o flat_o deny_v to_o he_o the_o follow_a word_n that_o this_o promise_v make_v to_o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o main_o make_v for_o my_o purpose_n and_o sure_o that_o which_o follow_v make_v for_o we_o and_o may_v be_v a_o four_o answer_n to_o the_o former_a word_n whether_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n or_o upon_o the_o faith_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n i_o chief_o aim_v at_o my_o aim_n be_v to_o find_v a_o church_n build_v on_o a_o rock_n so_o strong_a that_o no_o error_n shall_v ever_o overthrow_v it_o so_o than_o if_o we_o assume_v that_o the_o invisible_a church_n be_v such_o we_o be_v agree_v only_o my_o adversary_n seem_v to_o have_v more_o mind_n to_o retreat_v then_o to_o retract_v but_o my_o adversary_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o representative_a church_n because_o he_o say_v he_o be_v now_o assure_v the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v a_o nest_n of_o error_n idolatrous_a superstitious_a wicked_o assume_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o infallible_a tribunal_n without_o sufficient_a warrant_n all_o or_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n will_v bring_v she_o to_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n they_o be_v all_o damnable_a impiety_n ans_fw-fr now_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o this_o make_v not_o for_o he_o he_o be_v for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v he_o not_o and_o yet_o will_v not_o here_o meddle_v how_o this_o concern_v the_o roman_a church_n then_o how_o do_v this_o make_v for_o he_o in_o the_o former_a treatise_n of_o he_o this_o text_n be_v mean_v of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o now_o he_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o what_o concern_v st._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n will_v these_o thing_n here_o be_v reconcile_v till_o tishby_n come_v 2._o this_o make_v for_o i_o not_o only_o that_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a as_o
teach_v they_o what_o the_o universal_a church_n hold_v to_o be_v god_n law_n than_o by_o teach_v they_o what_o they_o themselves_o conceive_v to_o be_v god_n law_n as_o you_o will_v have_v they_o do_v ans_fw-fr this_o do_v not_o contradict_v if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v more_o likely_a we_o can_v say_v it_o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o faith_n and_o upon_o this_o condition_n they_o be_v undo_v for_o which_o of_o their_o private_a priest_n be_v able_a to_o say_v positive_o that_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o all_o age_n and_o place_n since_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n otherwise_o consider_v have_v no_o considerable_a authority_n and_o so_o we_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n second_o although_o thus_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o regula_fw-la regulans_fw-la but_o the_o regula_fw-la regulata_fw-la yet_o they_o can_v bring_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n ad_fw-la num_fw-la 11._o 12._o 13._o 14._o herein_o he_o give_v i_o many_o word_n towards_o assert_v tradition_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a bottom_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o all_o these_o how_o little_o he_o take_v away_o of_o my_o answer_n any_o one_o may_v say_v better_a than_o i._n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eleven_o he_o go_v upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o moses_n the_o tradition_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n not_o infallible_o by_o the_o church_n the_o church_n have_v itself_o herein_o as_o a_o mean_a of_o proposal_n not_o as_o the_o last_o motive_n of_o faith_n their_o faith_n be_v terminate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n be_v not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n authoritative_a delivery_n the_o objectum_fw-la quod_fw-la of_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o church_n proposal_n then_o 2._o suppose_v what_o we_o do_v not_o grant_v yet_o there_o be_v not_o now_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o church_n because_o they_o have_v more_o appearance_n t●en_o of_o god_n to_o and_o in_o the_o church_n than_o now_o there_o be_v or_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o therefore_o the_o rule_n be_v good_a distingue_n tempora_fw-la 3._o this_o will_v make_v a_o circle_n how_o be_v they_o assure_v infallible_o of_o tradition_n by_o the_o church_n how_o be_v they_o infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n then_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o into_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n as_o infallible_a therefore_o do_v my_o antagonist_n in_o vain_a say_v to_o i_o show_v the_o ground_n they_o have_v there_o to_o hold_v the_o church_n infallible_a nay_o the_o proof_n hereof_o must_v come_v from_o the_o affirmer_n asserentis_fw-la est_fw-la probare_fw-la they_o be_v to_o make_v good_a here_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o they_o do_v hold_v their_o church_n infallible_a otherwise_o how_o can_v any_o of_o the_o people_n hold_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a unless_o the_o church_n do_v so_o determine_v of_o i●_n self_n and_o than_o that_o though_o they_o do_v hold_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a yet_o that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o must_v be_v so_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v anything_o afterward_o he_o make_v a_o perstriction_n of_o my_o distinction_n that_o the_o word_n in_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v before_o the_o church_n which_o be_v beget_v by_o it_o and_o then_o he_o tell_v i_o what_o i_o add_v thereunto_o that_o when_o there_o be_v as_o much_o need_n and_o as_o great_a a_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n as_o former_o than_o he_o may_v urge_v the_o argument_n here_o he_o shift_n and_o shuffle_n he_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o must_v understand_v it_o of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n and_o to_o be_v only_o in_o oral_a tradition_n right_o i_o understand_v it_o so_o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o 〈◊〉_d question_n whether_o the_o manner_n of_o conveyance_n by_o t●e_v 〈◊〉_d in_o way_n of_o oral_a tradition_n be_v infallible_a and_o than_o whether_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v all_o or_o part_n of_o necessary_a doctrine_n from_o the_o church_n this_o way_n and_o can_v they_o now_o conclude_v the_o church_n infallible_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n bes●ide_v the_o word_n write_v by_o their_o tradition_n of_o the_o word_n unwritten_a and_o can_v they_o show_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v equal_o bind_v to_o any_o tradition_n before_o the_o word_n write_v which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n afterward_o write_v otherwise_o how_o can_v they_o supply_v this_o to_o their_o purpose_n in_o urge_v tradition_n differ_v from_o scripture_n in_o matter_n equal_o to_o scripture_n as_o the_o trent_n council_n define_v as_o before_o let_v they_o come_v to_o the_o point_n and_o satisfy_v demand_n in_o his_o discourse_n follow_v i_o can_v grant_v he_o all_o until_o he_o come_v to_o this_o they_o only_o have_v god_n word_n reveal_v by_o tradition_n this_o we_o must_v debate_v upon_o as_o be_v ambiguous_o deliver_v for_o only_a may_v relate_v to_o the_o subject_n they_n and_o so_o the_o sense_n be_v the_o jew_n only_o have_v god_n word_n reveal_v by_o tradition_n but_o this_o be_v concern_v here_o or_o only_a may_v have_v relation_n to_o god_n word_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v reveal_v and_o so_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o they_o have_v only_o that_o word_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o tradition_n and_o this_o come_v not_o to_o the_o point_n neither_o or_o only_o may_v relate_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o reveal_v by_o tradition_n and_o thus_o indeed_o it_o be_v proper_a for_o the_o debate_n but_o thus_o it_o be_v deny_v if_o we_o take_v it_o thus_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o otherwise_o assure_v to_o they_o than_o by_o tradition_n though_o they_o only_o be_v jew_n have_v only_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o tradition_n to_o believe_v yet_o have_v they_o not_o only_a tradition_n by_o which_o they_o do_v believe_v and_o therefore_o his_o conclusion_n must_v be_v naught_o and_o all_o he_o say_v to_o that_o purpose_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o paragraph_n in_o the_o twelve_o he_o deal_v about_o the_o need_n of_o tradition_n and_o he_o say_v that_o the_o need_n or_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n which_o you_o conceive_v to_o have_v be_v great_a than_o than_o now_o do_v not_o make_v the_o tradition_n more_o credible_a ans_fw-fr true_a it_o be_v that_o simple_o the_o need_n of_o they_o do_v not_o make_v they_o to_o be_v more_o credible_a if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v but_o there_o be_v the_o question_n whether_o there_o be_v now_o any_o to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n when_o there_o be_v not_o such_o need_n of_o they_o scripture_n be_v as_o credible_a when_o we_o be_v heaven_n in_o regard_n of_o itself_o yet_o there_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o it_o but_o as_o since_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o it_o there_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o it_o will_v not_o take_v place_n so_o neither_o shall_v tradition_n when_o there_o be_v not_o that_o need_n of_o they_o my_o answer_n then_o do_v bear_v itself_o upon_o this_o that_o if_o there_o be_v that_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n now_o as_o then_o he_o may_v urge_v the_o argument_n because_o god_n have_v will_v provide_v sufficient_o for_o security_n of_o tradition_n now_o as_o then_o falsum_fw-la prius_fw-la and_o we_o may_v take_v his_o own_o similitude_n those_o that_o have_v read_v many_o credible_a book_n of_o france_n have_v they_o any_o need_n of_o oral_a tradition_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o kingdom_n as_o france_n he_o say_v no_o yet_o these_o last_o be_v as_o certain_a he_o say_v well_o then_o no_o more_o need_n have_v we_o of_o tradition_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o sufficient_o read_v in_o scripture_n so_o then_o although_o he_o conclude_v tradition_n hopeful_a and_o superflua_fw-la non_fw-la nocent_a yet_o can_v he_o not_o conclude_v they_o as_o necessary_a which_o shall_v have_v be_v demonstrate_v but_o this_o he_o will_v do_v in_o follow_v word_n even_o now_o when_o we_o have_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n we_o have_v ever_o have_v with_o they_o a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o horrible_a division_n open_v still_o wide_o and_o wide_o again_o odd_a reflection_n upon_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v well_o he_o jopnes_n tradition_n with_o it_o to_o take_v part_n of_o the_o consequence_n as_o he_o think_v and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v he_o do_v not_o think_v so_o but_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o division_n be_v only_a scripture_n and_o have_v we_o have_v no_o scripture_n we_o shall_v have_v have_v few_o division_n do_v he_o think_v so_o then_o how_o be_v scripture_n necessary_a as_o they_o general_o confess_v when_o it_o
of_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o so_o than_o they_o hold_v their_o virtue_n by_o scripture_n if_o not_o they_o remain_v under_o debate_n whether_o they_o be_v infallible_a neither_o be_v tradition_n before_o scripture_n to_o be_v confound_v with_o tradition_n after_o scripture_n we_o can_v grant_v more_o to_o the_o former_a than_o we_o can_v to_o the_o latter_a both_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o certification_n and_o for_o the_o time_n after_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v write_v he_o do_v well_o to_o say_v that_o it_o remain_v almost_o sole_o and_o alone_o to_o the_o jew_n for_o what_o be_v job_n and_o why_o may_v not_o other_o of_o the_o learned_a gentile_n travail_v for_o divine_a knowledge_n as_o well_o as_o pythagoras_n and_o plato_n and_o orpheus_n into_o egypt_n as_o justin_n martyr_n say_v of_o they_o nine_o he_o answer_v to_o the_o cause_n put_v of_o a_o pope_n differ_v from_o the_o council_n upon_o a_o question_n he_o say_v nothing_o shall_v be_v defer_v and_o yet_o no_o peril_n for_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v a_o present_a definition_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o forget_v to_o inspire_v the_o party_n requisite_a to_o do_v their_o duty_n ans_fw-fr again_o what_o necessity_n then_o of_o every_o controversy_n to_o be_v end_v second_o how_o shall_v the_o people_n know_v whether_o the_o business_n require_v a_o present_a definition_n sure_o they_o may_v know_v by_o this_o that_o it_o do_v not_o require_v a_o present_a definition_n because_o if_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o have_v forget_v to_o have_v inspire_v the_o party_n requisite_a to_o do_v their_o duty_n well_o then_o also_o we_o can_v say_v that_o we_o may_v be_v as_o confident_a that_o what_o be_v not_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n do_v not_o require_v a_o full_a definition_n because_o if_o it_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o have_v forget_v to_o inspire_v the_o penman_n of_o scripture_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o ten_o answer_n he_o be_v very_o suspensive_a how_o to_o declare_v himself_o in_o the_o point_n of_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n he_o say_v a_o monarch_n in_o some_o nation_n can_v not_o do_v all_o thing_n without_o a_o parliament_n but_o he_o think_v himself_o on_o the_o sure_a side_n that_o he_o be_v sufficient_o assist_v when_o he_o define_v with_o a_o council_n ans_fw-fr first_o why_o do_v they_o not_o speak_v out_o and_o tell_v we_o which_o be_v which_o the_o church_n can_v end_v all_o controversy_n as_o they_o say_v but_o not_o that_o capital_a controversy_n about_o the_o church_n that_o whereby_o all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v make_v manifest_a be_v that_o not_o to_o be_v make_v manifest_a we_o must_v see_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o light_n but_o the_o light_n must_v be_v private_a do_v they_o declaim_v against_o private_a spirit_n and_o will_v not_o let_v we_o public_o know_v the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n comparate_o to_o a_o council_n and_o yet_o they_o together_o must_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o public_a authority_n and_o why_o do_v they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v prove_v itself_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o resolve_v our_o faith_n in_o that_o and_o yet_o we_o must_v resolve_v ourselves_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n can_v tell_v we_o where_o this_o authority_n supreme_a be_v or_o will_v not_o and_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o we_o for_o we_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a as_o well_o by_o their_o want_n of_o will_n to_o show_v we_o light_n as_o of_o power_n but_o since_o it_o seem_v we_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jesuit_n or_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o sorbonist_n we_o draw_v this_o advantage_n from_o it_o that_o notwithstanding_o we_o know_v not_o infallible_o which_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n to_o hold_v in_o point_n of_o question_n we_o may_v yet_o be_v secure_v against_o damnation_n pendenti_fw-la light_fw-la and_o what_o controversy_n be_v of_o such_o moment_n for_o a_o infallible_a judge_n as_o who_o it_o be_v second_o infallibility_n may_v be_v in_o one_o as_o well_o as_o in_o many_o since_o it_o come_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o if_o they_o think_v god_n have_v provide_v absolute_o the_o most_o plain_a and_o expedite_a way_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o church_n this_o must_v be_v place_v in_o the_o pope_n without_o a_o council_n i_o hope_v the_o holy_a ghost_n need_v no_o council_n which_o can_v soon_o and_o easy_o be_v make_v in_o all_o the_o essential_o and_o therefore_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v compare_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o monarch_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v compare_v upon_o this_o reckon_n a_o monarch_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o though_o a_o monarch_n can_v not_o do_v all_o thing_n without_o a_o parliament_n yet_o a_o pope_n may_v do_v all_o without_o a_o council_n because_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o they_o do_v not_o think_v so_o of_o a_o monarch_n again_o they_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o that_o a_o king_n be_v mere_o a_o creature_n of_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o have_v a_o divine_a institution_n must_v needs_o have_v more_o divine_a assistance_n again_o when_o he_o define_v with_o a_o council_n he_o define_v not_o so_o much_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o a_o bishop_n in_o communi_fw-la with_o the_o rest_n as_o indeed_o ancient_o the_o custom_n be_v and_o this_o derogate_v from_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o have_v a_o priority_n of_o order_n this_o do_v not_o infer_v a_o priority_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o church_n which_o pelagius_n and_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n abhor_v eleven_o he_o say_v not_o one_o council_n have_v be_v opposite_a to_o another_o ans_fw-fr this_o proposition_n in_o term_n be_v not_o true_a the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o leo_n the_o emperor_n decree_v against_o image_n the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v for_o they_o and_o what_o do_v they_o think_v of_o pope_n vigilius_n his_o judgement_n betwixt_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n about_o the_o epistle_n of_o ibas_n whether_o it_o contain_v heresy_n or_o not_o and_o be_v not_o the_o african_a council_n against_o appeal_n opposite_a to_o the_o trent_n council_n which_o add_v to_o the_o catholic_a apostolic_a church_n the_o roman_a as_o make_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la matrem_fw-la &_o magistram_fw-la of_o all_o church_n the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n but_o this_o have_v be_v touch_v before_o he_o go_v on_o in_o the_o nicene_n he_o the_o pope_n err_v not_o as_o you_o will_v grant_v nor_o in_o the_o three_o next_o general_n council_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n grant_v ans_fw-fr he_o say_v well_o he_o err_v not_o in_o the_o first_o nicene_n but_o this_o antecedent_n will_v not_o make_v a_o conclusion_n or_o consequent_a that_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o or_o can_v err_v in_o other_o it_o follow_v not_o from_o a_o negative_a sure_o of_o one_o act_n to_o a_o negative_a of_o the_o power_n they_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o can_v err_v which_o be_v infallibility_n but_o second_o we_o say_v also_o that_o he_o can_v not_o err_v in_o the_o other_o general_a council_n neither_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v have_v err_v as_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v not_o err_v not_o that_o we_o do_v assert_v he_o to_o have_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o we_o say_v he_o be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o err_v as_o such_o he_o go_v on_o he_o subscribe_v not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n how_o then_o do_v he_o err_v in_o it_o yea_o because_o he_o subscribe_v not_o that_o council_n be_v never_o account_v lawful_a by_o any_o but_o arrian_n ans_fw-fr he_o seem_v now_o to_o come_v to_o term_n more_o moderate_a before_o he_o speak_v of_o council_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n subscription_n be_v less_o and_o more_o general_a every_o confirmation_n include_v eminent_o a_o subscription_n but_o every_o subscription_n make_v not_o a_o confirmation_n for_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o other_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o subscribe_v second_o they_o may_v know_v that_o the_o 5._o council_n of_o constantinople_n go_v for_o good_a without_o his_o subscription_n nay_o notwithstanding_o what_o he_o publish_v for_o the_o tria_fw-la capitula_fw-la which_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o foresay_a council_n therefore_o if_o they_o have_v
definition_n of_o council_n to_o be_v prophetical_a if_o they_o be_v conclude_v by_o discourse_n then_o be_v they_o fallible_a if_o their_o conclusion_n be_v prophetical_a then_o by_o revelation_n but_o also_o these_o term_n to_o propose_v faithful_o what_o be_v former_o reveal_v be_v somewhat_o obscure_o propose_v do_v he_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n then_o where_o be_v it_o former_o reveal_v if_o it_o be_v clear_o reveal_v what_o need_v of_o a_o council_n to_o see_v that_o which_o other_o may_v see_v if_o not_o how_o be_v the_o sense_n reveal_v to_o they_o infallible_o without_o a_o revelation_n if_o he_o mean_v what_o be_v former_o reveal_v of_o tradition_n those_o be_v beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o these_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o also_o the_o church_n have_v not_o be_v so_o faithful_a in_o propose_v these_o as_o have_v be_v note_v before_o or_o do_v he_o mean_v it_o of_o traditive_a interpretation_n as_o they_o be_v call_v but_o where_o be_v these_o to_o be_v find_v who_o give_v we_o their_o number_n formal_a and_o material_a let_v they_o then_o take_v home_o to_o their_o own_o tent_n those_o that_o claim_v full_a assurance_n by_o the_o spirit_n in_o any_o point_n we_o differ_v from_o they_o much_o first_o because_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v any_o such_o necessity_n of_o full_a assurance_n in_o every_o point_n but_o the_o roman_a must_v otherwise_o what_o need_v of_o a_o infallible_a live_a judge_n 2._o we_o pretend_v not_o to_o any_o prerogative_n above_o other_o church_n as_o to_o the_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n they_o do_v therefore_o they_o urge_v that_o of_o st._n cyprian_n in_o allusion_n to_o what_o st._n paul_n say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n then_o for_o their_o church_n now_o that_o perfidiousness_n can_v have_v access_n to_o they_o not_o consider_v beside_o what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o it_o before_o what_o nilus_n comment_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v it_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o time_n that_o be_v past_a not_o of_o the_o future_a and_o three_o we_o do_v use_v mean_n towards_o the_o find_n out_o the_o true_a sense_n but_o they_o must_v have_v it_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o need_v not_o mean_n if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n in_o place_n of_o controversy_n therefore_o stapleton_n think_v rational_o that_o conclusion_n from_o discourse_n can_v be_v infallble_a and_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v prophetical_a and_o that_o will_v be_v by_o revelation_n this_o number_n receive_v again_o my_o reinforcement_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o that_o text_n forename_a about_o the_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o we_o ordinary_o read_v it_o i_o say_v it_o respect_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o school-man_n he_o say_v again_o no_o it_o respect_v the_o authority_n and_o here_o he_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o he_o offer_v no_o reason_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v take_v in_o his_o way_n for_o as_o to_o that_o which_o he_o urge_v here_o that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o solid_o object_v for_o the_o term_n in_o the_o greek_a be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o be_v to_o keep_v firm_a and_o stable_a the_o prop_n the_o support_n and_o this_o fair_o import_v a_o act_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la to_o keep_v up_o and_o uphold_v the_o truth_n he_o say_v also_o it_o suit_v well_o with_o his_o sense_n to_o give_v order_n to_o timothy_n to_o carry_v himself_o well_o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v infallible_a so_o as_o not_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v it_o improbable_a that_o god_n shall_v assist_v infallible_o such_o a_o church_n ans_fw-fr the_o strength_n of_o this_o argument_n himself_o destroy_v he_o be_v afraid_a to_o make_v good_a life_n a_o argument_n of_o infallibility_n because_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a argument_n since_o solomon_n the_o idolater_n be_v assist_v with_o infallibility_n well_o but_o let_v they_o first_o take_v my_o sense_n with_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o so_o compare_v they_o with_o his_o reason_n which_o be_v but_o a_o pitiful_a argument_n and_o then_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o best_o to_o take_v my_o account_n upon_o the_o place_n second_o if_o badness_n of_o life_n be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o infallibility_n then_o since_o they_o can_v deny_v that_o some_o of_o their_o chief_a pastor_n have_v be_v in_o life_n scandalous_a their_o infallibility_n will_v be_v scandalize_v and_o so_o can_v be_v such_o a_o way_n as_o that_o fool_n can_v err_v as_o he_o urge_v before_o three_o if_o this_o satisfy_v the_o multitude_n that_o those_o who_o be_v to_o instruct_v they_o be_v of_o unblamable_a life_n yet_o this_o though_o it_o be_v enough_o ad_fw-la faciendum_fw-la populum_fw-la yet_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o judicious_a man_n who_o look_v for_o satisfaction_n upon_o solid_a principle_n nor_o can_v this_o make_v faith_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o their_o infallibility_n but_o a_o better_a opinion_n thereof_o four_o as_o for_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n which_o he_o say_v shall_v be_v so_o qualify_v by_o the_o order_n of_o st_n paul_n to_o and_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o such_o a_o church_n he_o do_v not_o there_o find_v in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n any_o cardinal_n bishop_n or_o cardinal_n presbyter_n or_o cardinal_n deacon_n in_o who_o the_o power_n of_o infallibility_n according_a to_o they_o shall_v chiefl_o consist_v and_o therefore_o that_o text_n do_v not_o positive_o serve_v their_o turn_n five_o i_o have_v think_v infallibility_n can_v have_v defend_v itself_o without_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o good_a life_n since_o the_o grace_n of_o gift_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o grace_n be_v two_o thing_n i_o say_v moreover_o what_o need_v of_o such_o instruction_n which_o st._n paul_n give_v to_o timothy_n if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a since_o infallible_a assistance_n be_v immediate_a he_o answer_v here_o this_o be_v a_o strange_a consequence_n the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o defend_v point_n in_o a_o general_a council_n ergo_fw-la no_o man_n need_v instruction_n for_o his_o private_a good_a behaviour_n ans_fw-fr but_o first_o the_o instruction_n he_o give_v to_o timothy_n be_v such_o as_o respect_v he_o in_o his_o place_n for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n in_o rebus_fw-la fidei_fw-la in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o he_o give_v he_o great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n etc._n etc._n second_o by_o my_o adversary_n opinion_n there_o be_v no_o such_o need_n of_o instruction_n for_o a_o private_a life_n since_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a argument_n to_o derogate_v from_o infallibility_n by_o a_o bad_a life_n three_o neither_o be_v timothy_n i_o hope_v in_o their_o account_n a_o private_a man_n after_o this_o he_o have_v two_o question_n in_o the_o cloud_n be_v it_o so_o for_o the_o first_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v ans_fw-fr this_o be_v immediate_o subjoin_v to_o the_o other_o before_o and_o therefore_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v univocal_a to_o it_o and_o then_o we_o say_v two_o thing_n first_o he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n in_o that_o space_n be_v absolute_o infallible_a 2._o much_o less_o be_v it_o infallible_a in_o council_n as_o he_o now_o pretend_v which_o then_o be_v not_o as_o he_o now_o will_v have_v they_o therefore_o from_o hence_o it_o shall_v follow_v that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a it_o may_v be_v infallible_a without_o council_n and_o this_o be_v against_o he_o another_o question_n be_v this_o or_o do_v we_o perhaps_o teach_v this_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o be_v communicate_v to_o every_o one_o immediate_o ans_fw-fr he_o speak_v grave_o as_o ancient_a man_n be_v wont_a with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o note_v in_o his_o rhetoric_n but_o why_o shall_v he_o think_v we_o think_v he_o do_v for_o the_o church_n by_o he_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v infallible_a though_o timothy_n be_v not_o because_o according_a to_o he_o infallibility_n be_v in_o a_o representative_a and_o though_o timothy_n may_v have_v be_v precedent_n of_o a_o council_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o to_o be_v according_a to_o my_o adversary_n personal_o infallible_a but_o as_o head_n of_o the_o council_n yea_o he_o can_v not_o be_v head_n of_o a_o council_n then_o for_o this_o be_v according_a to_o my_o adversary_n reserve_v for_o st._n peter_n and_o yet_o infallible_a assistance_n be_v communicate_v to_o every_o of_o
this_o manner_n of_o speech_n may_v serve_v we_o against_o their_o infallibility_n but_o no_o speech_n serve_v infallibility_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o all_o those_o testimony_n be_v give_v to_o the_o jew_n as_o ill_o as_o they_o be_v dispose_v ans_fw-fr he_o seem_v to_o mistake_v what_o i_o say_v former_o about_o indisposition_n to_o receive_v infallibility_n for_o i_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o those_o who_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o it_o for_o the_o church_n and_o he_o now_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o order_n to_o the_o people_n but_o 2._o suppose_v there_o be_v as_o good_a a_o disposition_n the_o possibility_n hereof_o can_v conclude_v the_o same_o necessity_n of_o the_o same_o assistance_n and_o some_o of_o their_o man_n be_v name_v by_o some_o of_o we_o for_o deny_v any_o such_o disposition_n towards_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o former_o be_v give_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v still_o the_o same_o certainty_n he_o say_v categorical_o be_v apparent_o false_a speak_v as_o you_o speak_v in_o order_n to_o assure_v we_o etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr all_o his_o reason_n be_v invalid_a for_o as_o for_o the_o first_o that_o i_o confess_v some_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v formerly_z not_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o which_o now_o be_v receive_v this_o be_v of_o no_o weight_n because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o discourse_n that_o they_o have_v still_o the_o same_o certainty_n from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o general_a reception_n and_o 2._o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o always_o the_o same_o credibility_n as_o well_o as_o his_o tradition_n as_o he_o have_v note_v before_o and_o that_o many_o and_o a_o good_a many_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v quite_o lose_v be_v first_o in_o those_o term_n at_o least_o a_o supposition_n whether_o any_o be_v lose_v be_v yet_o work_v for_o tishbi_n special_o whether_o many_o much_o more_o whether_o a_o good_a many_o but_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o a_o romanist_n that_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o find_v it_o imperfect_a in_o the_o matter_n in_o ingenuity_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v nothing_o herein_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v interpret_v for_o his_o own_o end_n as_o the_o socinian_n who_o deny_v christ_n satisfaction_n to_o prove_v his_o opinion_n deny_v christ_n divinity_n that_o so_o the_o satisfaction_n shall_v not_o be_v sufficient_a so_o the_o romanist_n lest_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n say_v a_o good_a part_n of_o it_o be_v lose_v thus_o with_o their_o honesty_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o modesty_n second_o let_v they_o again_o consider_v how_o much_o prejudice_n come_v to_o their_o church_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o depositary_a of_o christian_a doctrine_n upon_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o good_a many_o book_n of_o scripture_n three_o yet_o dato_fw-la non_fw-la concesso_fw-la suppose_v so_o yet_o that_o which_o do_v remain_v be_v sure_o as_o sufficient_a as_o the_o old_a scripture_n without_o all_o the_o new_a four_o my_o word_n do_v not_o engage_v i_o in_o this_o debate_n because_o they_o be_v of_o a_o capacity_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o that_o scripture_n which_o do_v remain_v five_o if_o any_o be_v lose_v i_o think_v as_o the_o sibyl_n book_n the_o rest_n shall_v bear_v a_o better_a price_n and_o as_o to_o his_o other_o exception_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o of_o baptism_n whether_o to_o infant_n or_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n or_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o have_v power_n to_o sacrifice_v or_o absolve_v or_o not_o we_o say_v first_o that_o we_o have_v say_v enough_o already_o and_o we_o say_v that_o we_o need_v not_o say_v any_o more_o in_o these_o point_n till_o they_o make_v good_a these_o postulate_v first_o whether_o the_o exact_a knowledge_n of_o these_o point_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n second_o whether_o if_o not_o they_o can_v yet_o prove_v a_o infallible_a judge_n in_o all_o point_n of_o controversy_n appoint_v to_o we_o by_o god_n and_o as_o to_o the_o last_o they_o be_v first_o to_o prove_v a_o real_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o object_n for_o a_o special_a act_n of_o a_o priest_n as_o such_o and_o absolution_n simple_o we_o deny_v not_o their_o absolution_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o it_o can_v make_v attrition_n to_o be_v as_o good_a as_o contrition_n be_v task_n for_o they_o to_o prove_v who_o affirm_v they_o and_o as_o for_o that_o he_o say_v that_o then_o they_o have_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o the_o know_a disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o tell_v they_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n he_o do_v not_o well_o consider_v what_o he_o say_v if_o they_o give_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o place_n which_o be_v obscure_a where_o be_v these_o interpretation_n why_o have_v we_o not_o a_o tradition_n of_o they_o if_o not_o they_o say_v nothing_o if_o so_o they_o must_v derogate_v from_o the_o church_n fidelity_n because_o it_o have_v just_o communicate_v and_o hand_v to_o we_o tradition_n of_o other_o matter_n than_o be_v write_v and_o not_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o text_n which_o be_v write_v 2._o we_o be_v yet_o entire_o able_a to_o hold_v the_o buckler_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o position_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a exposition_n of_o those_o text_n which_o contain_v point_n necessary_a for_o faith_n or_o practice_n the_o water_n where_o the_o lamb_n may_v wade_v be_v clear_a enough_o then_o and_o have_v be_v yet_o clear_a enough_o have_v not_o the_o great_a fisher_n trouble_v the_o water_n for_o better_a fish_n if_o the_o point_n of_o the_o dial_n be_v not_o fix_v they_o may_v vary_v the_o shadow_n but_o the_o sun_n keep_v it_o regular_a motion_n so_o if_o their_o gnomon_n be_v loose_a they_o may_v make_v the_o time_n to_o go_v for_o they_o but_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o as_o the_o author_n to_o the_o hebrew_n speak_v do_v in_o a_o uniform_a and_o regular_a course_n shine_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v equal_o set_v for_o all_o time_n only_o the_o roman_n make_v the_o variation_n who_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n follow_v the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n we_o need_v not_o then_o yet_o their_o oedipus_n who_o have_v a_o foot_n so_o great_a that_o he_o must_v wear_v a_o slipper_n the_o follow_a word_n in_o this_o section_n be_v somewhat_o cloudy_a and_o they_o do_v need_v a_o clue_n to_o show_v we_o their_o right_a connexion_n his_o drift_n seem_v in_o they_o to_o be_v this_o to_o make_v i_o destroy_v myself_o by_o two_o position_n first_o that_o the_o church_n be_v secure_a from_o damnative_a error_n though_o not_o from_o all_o simple_a error_n the_o second_o this_o heresy_n consist_v in_o opposition_n to_o clear_a scripture_n ans_fw-fr one_o will_v have_v think_v that_o a_o bad_a conclusion_n can_v not_o lawful_o be_v beget_v of_o these_o two_o position_n since_o special_o the_o second_o be_v such_o as_o be_v ancient_o hold_v by_o those_o who_o do_v understand_v distinct_o point_n of_o divinity_n and_o also_o i_o have_v think_v once_o that_o he_o have_v grant_v the_o former_a though_o now_o pro_fw-la re_fw-la na●a_fw-la he_o do_v think_v otherwise_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o stand_v to_o it_o then_o to_o abide_v the_o peril_n of_o the_o negative_a well_o but_o what_o from_o hence_o whence_o all_o those_o must_v needs_o be_v heretic_n who_o oppose_v clear_a scripture_n therefore_o all_o those_o who_o hold_v those_o prime_a point_n in_o which_o you_o and_o we_o differ_v with_o we_o against_o you_o be_v heretic_n for_o they_o hold_v these_o point_n which_o you_o say_v be_v against_o clear_a scripture_n ans_fw-fr the_o church_n be_v considerable_a in_o the_o quantity_n of_o it_o so_o it_o be_v universal_a or_o particular_a it_o be_v considerable_a in_o the_o quality_n invisible_a or_o visible_a the_o church_n invisible_a be_v distributive_o secure_a from_o all_o damnative_a error_n the_o universal_a visible_a may_v be_v secure_a from_o all_o damnative_a error_n this_o we_o say_v still_o but_o by_o what_o engine_n be_v this_o draw_v into_o his_o conclusion_n which_o he_o say_v shall_v proceed_v partly_o from_o this_o position_n but_o 2._o what_o if_o we_o grant_v all_o that_o those_o who_o have_v be_v with_o they_o against_o we_o in_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n be_v heretic_n it_o be_v but_o like_a for_o like_v for_o they_o familiar_o give_v we_o no_o other_o name_n then_o heretic_n and_o i_o think_v we_o shall_v do_v very_o few_o learned_a and_o sober_a man_n any_o harm_n
so_o they_o must_v at_o length_n rest_n in_o our_o principle_n in_o this_o numb_a beside_o somewhat_o in_o the_o beginning_n 48._o n._n 48._o answer_v before_o he_o will_v very_o fain_o repair_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o i_o have_v break_v by_o a_o instance_n of_o gen._n 3.15_o where_o it_o read_v ipsa_fw-la for_o ipsum_fw-la refer_v to_o the_o mother_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n to_o this_o he_o say_v it_o be_v clear_a some_o hebrew_n copy_n may_v most_o exact_o be_v translate_v ipsum_fw-la how_o know_v you_o the_o church_n follow_v the_o false_a hebrew_n copy_n satis_fw-la caute_fw-la some_o copy_n not_o all_o may_v be_v not_o be_v most_o exact_o be_v translate_v not_o some_o most_o exact_a copy_n well_o be_v not_o these_o copy_n the_o great_a number_n and_o indeed_o be_v they_o not_o the_o most_o exact_a yea_o can_v they_o true_o be_v translate_v otherwise_o and_o how_o know_v they_o that_o their_o church_n follow_v the_o true_a hebrew_n copy_n if_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o infallible_o or_o if_o they_o can_v know_v infallible_o that_o it_o do_v follow_v it_o infallible_o infallible_o they_o be_v undo_v because_o they_o be_v upon_o term_n of_o a_o infallible_a faith_n in_o a_o infallible_a church_n therefore_o though_o we_o can_v shake_v their_o foundation_n by_o our_o question_n they_o can_v settle_v their_o foundation_n by_o their_o question_n and_o yet_o we_o have_v another_o question_n he_o ask_v again_o how_o many_o most_o grave_a and_o most_o ancient_a father_n have_v also_o read_v ipsa_fw-la sure_o he_o do_v well_o to_o ask_v how_o many_o because_o he_o do_v not_o know_v how_o few_o their_o name_n may_v they_o not_o be_v write_v in_o a_o nut_n shell_n and_o bellarmin_n upon_o the_o place_n have_v not_o many_o for_o it_o and_o some_o of_o they_o sure_o not_o most_o grave_a and_o also_o most_o ancient_a father_n but_o as_o for_o st._n austin_n bellarmin_n may_v as_o well_o or_o better_o have_v leave_v he_o out_o of_o the_o catalogue_n for_o though_o he_o render_v it_o ipsa_fw-la in_o his_o 11._o de_fw-mi gen._n ad_fw-la literam_fw-la c._n 36._o and_o in_o another_o place_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o expound_v it_o as_o they_o of_o the_o virgin_n for_o he_o make_v it_o to_o be_v mystical_o understand_v significatur_fw-la semine_fw-la diaboli_fw-la perversa_fw-la semine_fw-la autem_fw-la mulieris_fw-la fructus_fw-la boni_fw-la operis_fw-la &_o illa_fw-la observat_fw-la caput_fw-la ejus_fw-la ut_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la initio_fw-la malae_fw-la suasionis_fw-la excludat_fw-la he_o may_v also_o have_v omit_v st._n ambrose_n in_o his_o 2._o b._n de_fw-fr fuga_fw-la saeculi_fw-la cap._n 7._o for_o there_o he_o interpret_v it_o moral_o not_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o virgin_n and_o both_o of_o they_o also_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n and_o their_o vulgar_a in_o the_o other_o word_n and_o follow_v the_o septuagint_n for_o they_o translate_v it_o ipsa_fw-la servabit_fw-la caput_fw-la tuum_fw-la which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o hebrew_n with_o which_o the_o vulgar_a in_o this_o do_v agree_v but_o bellarmine_n also_o name_v st._n chrysostom_n in_o his_o 17._o homily_n upon_o gen._n but_o then_o they_o must_v have_v some_o other_o edition_n of_o he_o if_o they_o will_v make_v use_n of_o his_o testimony_n for_o they_o for_o in_o three_o place_n of_o this_o homily_n he_o render_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o septuagint_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o he_o will_v think_v it_o may_v be_v to_o be_v for_o this_o use_n be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o her_o alone_a the_o woman_n but_o i_o will_v make_v her_o seed_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a enemy_n to_o thy_o seed_n yet_o upon_o this_o he_o do_v immediate_o subjoyne_v the_o text_n as_o before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o bellarmin_n do_v not_o yet_o bring_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d indeed_o all_o they_o can_v do_v be_v much_o too_o little_a to_o cure_v this_o breach_n for_o s._n jerom_n be_v more_o considerable_a in_o this_o criticism_n than_o all_o the_o father_n name_v and_o he_o say_v melius_fw-la in_o hebraeo_fw-la ipse_fw-la conteret_fw-la caput_fw-la tuum_fw-la nay_o bellarmin_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o he_o say_v he_o have_v see_v one_o copy_n he_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o as_o he_o will_v sure_o if_o he_o have_v can_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o where_o so_o that_o to_o speak_v at_o least_o the_o communi_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o read_n ipsa_fw-la be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n copy_n nay_o bellarmin_n do_v sweat_n at_o it_o and_o therefore_o say_v some_o copy_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a do_v interpret_v it_o ipse_fw-la in_o the_o former_a chap._n and_o this_o make_v a_o new_a difficulty_n on_o their_o part_n to_o reconcile_v the_o contrariety_n to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o both_o the_o church_n be_v deceive_v in_o one_o and_o where_o then_o be_v their_o infallibility_n they_o speak_v of_o this_o be_v their_o modesty_n then_o against_o the_o gender_n in_o the_o hebrew_n against_o the_o samaritan_n syriack_n arabic_a translation_n which_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o seed_n against_o all_o hebrew_n copy_n which_o bellarmin_n have_v see_v but_o one_o against_o some_o of_o their_o own_o copy_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a to_o make_v that_o scripture_n for_o the_o creature_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o also_o whether_o the_o father_n most_o grave_a and_o most_o ancient_a be_v for_o their_o interpretation_n we_o have_v examine_v and_o therefore_o he_o need_v not_o be_v so_o plain_a as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o loud_a lie_n of_o chemnitius_n to_o say_v the_o contrary_a and_o will_v they_o say_v so_o to_o lucas_n brugensis_n who_o say_v as_o much_o as_o chemnitius_n in_o this_o point_n almost_o all_o the_o father_n do_v read_v ipse_fw-la as_o be_v note_v let_v i_o then_o say_v it_o will_v become_v they_o here_o to_o give_v glory_n to_o christ_n immediate_o and_o to_o confess_v this_o fault_n and_o yet_o neither_o do_v he_o competent_o answer_v to_o the_o question_n make_v to_o he_o why_o the_o greek_a be_v not_o make_v infallible_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o latin_n that_o we_o have_v his_o declaration_n that_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a be_v authentic_a and_o not_o deficient_a in_o any_o point_n concern_v faith_n or_o manner_n this_o he_o say_v but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v as_o may_v appear_v thus_o a_o translation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o authentic_a can_v be_v authentic_a now_o let_v they_o determine_v whether_o it_o be_v make_v authentic_a or_o not_o if_o not_o make_v authentic_a be_v a_o translation_n as_o they_o say_v then_o how_o can_v the_o latin_a be_v so_o declare_v a_o authentic_a translation_n for_o then_o the_o church_n must_v have_v vim_o operativam_fw-la too_o not_o only_o declaratory_a and_o the_o effect_n shall_v exceed_v the_o material_a cause_n or_o if_o it_o be_v declare_v authentic_a what_o of_o a_o infallible_a translation_n 2._o whereas_o he_o say_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o any_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n to_o wit_v the_o latin_a translation_n we_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o that_o these_o word_n have_v a_o sense_n in_o they_o intend_v for_o their_o use_n namely_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v absolute_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o error_n at_o all_o therein_o but_o restrictive_o specificative_o no_o such_o error_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o in_o faith_n and_o manner_n so_o then_o when_o he_o have_v make_v use_n of_o his_o own_o word_n for_o his_o own_o turn_n we_o will_v make_v use_n of_o they_o for_o our_o purpose_n and_o we_o will_v not_o squeeze_v they_o neither_o the_o first_o corollary_n then_o from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o be_v this_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o stand_v to_o a_o absolute_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o every_o point_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o by_o mr._n knott_n argument_n he_o must_v abate_v of_o his_o former_a postulate_v of_o its_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o cause_n of_o faith_n 2._o thus_o much_o we_o may_v as_o well_o or_o better_o say_v for_o our_o translation_n that_o it_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o any_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n 3._o it_o seem_v then_o salvation_n be_v not_o in_o danger_n by_o some_o error_n otherwise_o their_o translation_n shall_v be_v deficent_fw-la in_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o upon_o danger_n of_o salvation_n have_v a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o decide_v all_o point_n emergent_a 4._o thing_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n be_v sufficient_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n for_o otherwise_o the_o latin_a translation_n must_v be_v deficient_a or_o else_o it_o must_v have_v more_o than_o the_o
original_n and_o then_o as_o to_o this_o it_o be_v not_o a_o translation_n yet_o 5._o then_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n be_v exclude_v for_o than_o it_o can_v not_o be_v true_o say_v that_o the_o latin_a bible_n be_v not_o deficient_a in_o any_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n 6._o exception_n against_o st._n matthew_n gospel_n which_o be_v not_o in_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o authenticness_n of_o the_o greek_a because_o the_o latin_a be_v authentic_a as_o not_o be_v deficient_a in_o point_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n 7._o we_o may_v infer_v from_o hence_o thus_o those_o error_n in_o the_o latin_a bible_n though_o not_o material_a to_o faith_n or_o manner_n may_v have_v be_v save_v by_o the_o church_n or_o not_o if_o they_o may_v have_v be_v save_v than_o the_o church_n may_v deceive_v our_o trust_n if_o they_o can_v not_o then_o it_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o so_o we_o have_v but_o a_o fallible_a ground_n for_o our_o assent_n to_o any_o of_o her_o definition_n and_o in_o particular_a for_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n matthew_n so_o that_o all_o his_o shift_n fail_v he_o in_o this_o important_a point_n sure_o this_o whole_a point_n about_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o great_a shift_n of_o he_o for_o the_o subject_n shall_v have_v be_v suppose_v in_o the_o dispute_n of_o the_o attribute_n the_o point_n in_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o scripture_n do_v clear_o propound_v thing_n necessary_a to_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o he_o have_v blot_v how_o much_o paper_n to_o debate_v our_o tenure_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v he_o have_v get_v nothing_o by_o it_o nor_o by_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o he_o have_v somewhat_o to_o say_v to_o only_o for_o himself_o the_o great_a part_n of_o this_o paragraph_n come_v too_o late_o and_o all_o that_o will_v seem_v to_o take_v away_o my_o former_a answer_n be_v take_v away_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o exception_n that_o luther_n do_v not_o see_v the_o apocalypse_v and_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n to_o be_v canonical_a be_v yet_o sufficient_a that_o the_o negative_a argument_n do_v not_o conclude_v he_o reply_v in_o our_o case_n it_o be_v a_o strong_a proof_n i_o again_o deny_v the_o consequence_n the_o object_n have_v themselves_o equal_o to_o all_o but_o they_o be_v not_o equal_o see_v sure_o not_o in_o this_o case_n because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v a_o free_a agent_n yea_o saint_n luke_n the_o 24.16_o their_o eye_n be_v hold_v that_o they_o can_v not_o see_v he_o god_n act_n upon_o object_n and_o in_o degree_n be_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o second_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a be_v it_o not_o if_o not_o how_o be_v we_o guide_v if_o so_o yet_o every_o one_o do_v not_o see_v they_o and_o three_o if_o luther_n have_v such_o a_o irradiate_v understanding_n why_o do_v he_o not_o yet_o see_v and_o spalatensis_n also_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n if_o he_o have_v not_o why_o do_v he_o say_v so_o the_o light_n be_v the_o same_o the_o proposition_n be_v the_o same_o his_o eye_n or_o understanding_n no_o better_o nor_o more_o assist_v why_o then_o do_v not_o they_o see_v what_o he_o see_v as_o to_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o second_o answer_n you_o see_v we_o do_v not_o follow_v he_o luther_n blind_o we_o need_v not_o return_v any_o thing_n but_o this_o that_o he_o mistake_v i_o in_o the_o term_n blind_o he_o suppose_v i_o to_o speak_v as_o in_o relation_n to_o this_o point_n about_o the_o book_n deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o by_o he_o but_o i_o speak_v it_o in_o general_a that_o we_o do_v not_o follow_v he_o with_o blind_a obedience_n as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v their_o general_n and_o though_o the_o apocalypse_v and_o other_o book_n be_v doubt_v of_o this_o do_v not_o prejudice_v we_o no_o more_o than_o it_o do_v they_o for_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o book_n apocryphal_a these_o book_n be_v receive_v by_o they_o because_o they_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v receive_v or_o not_o but_o arbitrary_o if_o the_o former_a why_o do_v not_o those_o before_o see_v they_o to_o be_v such_o if_o the_o latter_a than_o infallibility_n proceed_v by_o the_o will_v and_o so_o infallibility_n may_v be_v on_o either_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n and_o so_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o say_v any_o more_o if_o whatsoever_o they_o will_v say_v be_v infallible_a further_o he_o charge_v we_o with_o obtrude_a a_o canon_n of_o our_o own_o coin_v for_o judge_n of_o controversy_n here_o be_v two_o thing_n false_a first_o that_o we_o obtrude_v a_o new_a canon_n this_n not_o so_o we_o have_v the_o same_o canon_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v before_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n but_o they_o have_v make_v a_o new_a canon_n by_o take_v in_o the_o apocryphal_a and_o by_o canonise_a the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o the_o other_o be_v false_a for_o we_o do_v not_o obtrude_v the_o scripture_n as_o judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o any_o formal_a sense_n and_o again_o he_o will_v mar_v the_o canon_n all_o agree_v that_o divers_a book_n of_o the_o true_a canon_n be_v quite_o lose_v how_o often_o come_v this_o in_o but_o first_o he_o must_v go_v less_o not_o divers_a book_n which_o may_v import_v many_o one_o or_o two_o be_v not_o in_o common_a account_n divers_a if_o then_o he_o mean_v by_o divers_a many_o book_n so_o all_o do_v not_o agree_v if_o he_o mean_v one_o or_o two_o so_o not_o divers_a second_o he_o take_v the_o term_n the_o true_a canon_n either_o respective_o to_o those_o divine_a book_n which_o be_v inspire_v and_o yet_o never_o put_v into_o the_o canon_n as_o it_o be_v reveiw_v by_o s._n john_n as_o learned_a man_n suppose_v or_o after_o they_o be_v put_v in_o and_o acknowledge_v if_o the_o former_a he_o can_v say_v that_o we_o have_v not_o a_o true_a and_o just_a canon_n as_o to_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a and_o if_o he_o deny_v it_o he_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o celaeus_n porphyry_n and_o julian._n but_o if_o the_o latter_a than_o who_o lose_v they_o sure_o those_o who_o have_v the_o mind_n to_o keep_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o necessary_a use_n of_o tradition_n upon_o this_o account_n but_o if_o tradition_n be_v but_o as_o necessary_a as_o the_o trent_n council_n intend_v in_o those_o term_n pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la why_o may_v we_o not_o think_v that_o some_o of_o these_o may_v be_v lose_v also_o and_o then_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v the_o judge_n who_o be_v to_o determine_v of_o point_n by_o the_o tenure_n of_o tradition_n or_o else_o some_o of_o their_o most_o acute_a and_o learned_a man_n have_v lose_v their_o insight_n into_o ground_n of_o truth_n among_o we_o after_o the_o church_n declaration_n be_v notify_v concern_v any_o book_n for_o canonical_a you_o will_v never_o find_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o by_o any_o true_a catholic_n ans_fw-fr this_o argument_n conclude_v if_o true_a unity_n but_o not_o truth_n thing_n of_o divinity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o such_o a_o lesbian_a rule_n and_o this_o agreement_n can_v prove_v their_o canon_n good_a for_o unless_o the_o canon_n be_v good_a the_o agreement_n be_v not_o good_a 2._o if_o we_o shall_v bring_v thing_n of_o debate_n to_o no_o other_o test_n we_o shall_v never_o have_v any_o determination_n for_o what_o be_v there_o which_o be_v not_o question_v by_o some_o of_o they_o now_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o the_o romanist_n whether_o the_o canon_n be_v question_v or_o any_o thing_n else_o which_o the_o church_n propose_v since_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v all_o alike_o but_o to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n gregory_n be_v a_o true_a catholic_a gregory_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a after_o declaration_n by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n therefore_o that_o which_o he_o say_v be_v false_a the_o major_n be_v commend_v to_o they_o before_o the_o assumption_n they_o may_v see_v in_o the_o 19_o of_o his_o moral_n the_o 15._o ch._n therefore_o they_o have_v best_o hold_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a only_o so_o as_o to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n and_o if_o so_o only_o as_o saint_n jerom_n also_o hold_v then_o this_o book_n be_v not_o simple_o canonical_a if_o otherwise_o that_o which_o he_o say_v be_v not_o true_a and_o gregory_n be_v not_o of_o their_o opinion_n so_o then_o we_o have_v pares_fw-la aquilas_fw-la &_o pila_fw-la minantia_fw-la pilis_fw-la pope_n against_o pope_n infallibility_n against_o infallibility_n and_o since_o we_o know_v which_o be_v right_a we_o must_v deny_v both_o